Escolar Documentos
Profissional Documentos
Cultura Documentos
Edvard Glücksman
Biodiversity
and Earth History
Biodiversity and Earth History
Jens Boenigk • Sabina Wodniok • Edvard Glücksman
Edvard Glücksman
Environment & Sustainability Institute
University of Exeter, Cornwall Campus
Penryn, Cornwall, UK
Foreword
The detection of biological diversity and the understand eukaryotes in the context of geological history. The focus
ing of its underlying mechanisms – how it is generated and of this work, therefore, is to address areas not covered by
maintained – has preoccupied humans since antiquity. Snap conventional textbooks, specifically forging interdisciplinary
shots of information about biodiversity were developed as links to develop new methods of understanding known con
early as in Ancient Greece, especially by the philosophers cepts. To that end, we address the overall diversity of eukary
Aristotle and Theophrastus. In the 18th century, Carl Lin otes, avoiding the standard anthropocentric view of life as
naeus proposed a classification system for plants and ani mainly comprising animals and plants. We also cover, based
mals, initially to understand the Divine Order of God’s crea on highly advanced molecular studies, the phylogenetic de
tion. Roughly a century later, Charles Darwin published his velopment of species in the context of the planet’s geological
canonical ideas about species variability; his theory of evo development, weaving together the history of the Earth and
lution continues to drive global research into the molecular the evolution of life.
diversity of species, communities, and ecosystems, including We address classical biological and geosciences concepts
the Human Genome Project or the Census of Marine Life. in a fresh and innovative manner. Our approach represents a
Biodiversity is one of the most complex research topics. In definite break from the disciplinary segregation that charac
order to properly understand the mechanisms underpinning terises conventional textbooks; such a dramatic change could
species distribution patterns, researchers must bring together not be avoided. However, in our opinion, this ‘interdiscipli
information from a range of different disciplines, mapping narity’ is one of the book’s great strengths, broadening the
the evolution and development of organisms to their ecologi context of biodiversity studies and presenting new insights
cal adaptations and interactions, and linking physiological across centuryold disciplines.
and morphological diversity patterns to the interplay be This book covers a range of concepts largely underrepre
tween Earth’s geological development and the evolution of sented in the literature. For example, we describe at length
the planet’s life forms. the geological drivers behind the emergence of biodiversity
Tools from a wide variety of disciplines, especially in the and current global species distribution patterns. We also
life and geosciences, are needed to address the various com address in detail the enormous diversity of eukaryotes, em
ponents relating to biodiversity. Maintaining and developing phasising their massive but often overlooked microscopic
this interdisciplinary framework is the key to understanding component. Therefore, at the very least, the content of this
the emergence and preservation of species. Despite these book draws from geology and palaeontology, morphology
unique advantages of such a broadbased approach, such and physiology, chemistry and physics, biology and ecology,
work continues to face significant opposition, including from as well as from the most cuttingedge biological systematics.
more conventional, singlediscipline methods. Although to Our hope is that the truely transdisciplinary focus of this
a certain extent valuable as independent research strands, book will resonate with researchers, teachers, and students
such frameworks restrain and restrict our understanding of alike, as well as with members of the general public curious
the more multifaceted aspects inherent in global biodiversity to learn more about biodiversity – one of nature’s most fun
studies. damental and aweinspiring phenomena.
In this book we provide a balancing act between the geo
sciences and biosciences, aiming to examine the diversity of
VI Acknowledgements
Acknowledgements
We thank Susann Schiwy and Julia Nuy for their great We thank everyone at SpringerSpektrum, in particular
support in all aspects of this book’s design. In particular, we Meike Barth, Merlet BehnckeBraunbeck, Barbara Lühker,
thank Susann for her tremendous effort in compiling and and Andreas Held for the proofreading as well as everyone
managing the image database and Julia for her invaluable at Springer, in particular Stephan Klapp and Ulrike Strick
contributions to the book’s layout and graphics through her erKomba. For proofreading and editing, we also thank the
mastery of Adobe InDesign. staff from proofreadingservice.com and Deutsche Hochs
We also thank Wolfgang Boenigk and Lars Großmann for chulverband, and specifically Frederic Bartlett and Gabriele
their critical comments and editorial help in earlier versions Berberich.
of the manuscript. Finally, we are particularly grateful to our families and
We thank the late Michael Neugebauer and the rest of loved ones. In particular, JB thanks his wife, Stephanie, for
the Boenigk working group for their patience and support, her infinite patience throughout the countless hours of re
especially during the increasingly stressful periods leading up search, creation of figures, and during the writing process.
to the submission of both manuscripts. Her understanding gave him the time to bring this project
We are also grateful to many colleagues and photogra to fruition. SW thanks her partner, Thomas, and the rest of
phers for making the many images featured in this book her family for their loving support, patience, and encourage
available to us. Without them, this project would not have ment. EG thanks his partner, Antonia, for all her love and
been possible. inspiration, and his parents, Jerzy and Soulla, for a lifetime
of support.
Content VII
Table of contents
1 Introduction ..................................................................................................................................... 1
1.1 How do I use this book? .............................................................................................................. 2
1.2 Biodiversity ..................................................................................................................................... 4
1.3 Life .................................................................................................................................................... 6
1.4 Species ............................................................................................................................................. 8
2 Earth‘s History ................................................................................................................................ 11
2.1 Fundamentals of the geosciences ............................................................................................ 12
2.1.1 Construction and formation of the Earth .................................................................................. 14
2.1.1.1 Composition of the Earth’s layers .......................................................................................... 16
2.1.1.2 Plate tectonics ................................................................................................................... 18
2.1.2 Rockforming processes ............................................................................................................ 20
2.1.2.1 Magmatism and igneous rocks .............................................................................................. 22
2.1.2.2 Weathering, erosion, sedimentation and sedimentary rocks ...................................................... 24
2.1.2.3 Carbonate balance and carbonates ....................................................................................... 26
2.1.3 Eons ........................................................................................................................................... 28
2.2 The Precambrian ........................................................................................................................... 30
2.2.1 The Archean eon ....................................................................................................................... 32
2.2.1.1 Chemical evolution and origin of life ...................................................................................... 34
2.2.1.2 ‘RNA world hypothesis’ and formation of cells during the Archean ............................................. 36
2.2.1.3 The Archean carbon metabolism: fermentation ....................................................................... 38
2.2.1.4 Evolution of the Archean photoautotrophy:
energetics of the anoxygenic and oxygenic photosynthesis ....................................................... 40
2.2.1.5 Evolution of the Archean photoautotrophy: compartmentalisation ............................................ 42
2.2.2 The Proterozoic eon .................................................................................................................. 44
2.2.2.1 Biogenic and geochemical feedback loops of the Proterozoic oxygen evolution ............................ 46
2.2.2.2 Climatic effects of oxygen evolution: the Huronian glaciation (from 2.4 to 2.1 billion years) ........... 48
2.2.2.3 Metabolic effects of oxygen evolution: cytotoxic effect ............................................................. 50
2.2.2.4 Metabolic consequences of oxygen evolution: aerobic respiration ............................................. 52
2.2.2.5 Evolution of the eukaryotic cell in the Mesoproterozoic ............................................................ 54
2.2.2.6 Evolution of the eukaryotic algae in the Mesoproterozoic ......................................................... 56
2.2.2.7 The ‘boring billion’ years (1.850.85 billion years) .................................................................... 58
2.2.2.8 Evolution of complex multicellularity in the Neoproterozoic ..................................................... 60
2.2.2.9 Neoproterozoic glaciations (0.85–0.72 billion years) ................................................................. 62
VIII Content
2.3 The Phanerozoic eon ................................................................................................................... 64
2.3.1 The Phanerozoic eon: an overview ........................................................................................... 66
2.3.1.1 Plate tectonics and climate evolution during the Phanerozoic .................................................... 68
2.3.1.2 Lagerstätten....................................................................................................................... 70
2.3.1.3 Fossilisation – the formation of fossils .................................................................................... 72
2.3.1.4 Geochronology and stratigraphy ........................................................................................... 74
2.3.1.5 Termination and biostratigraphic definition of the Phanerozoic systems ...................................... 76
2.3.2 Fossil biodiversity ...................................................................................................................... 78
2.3.2.1 Foraminifers ...................................................................................................................... 80
2.3.2.2 Reefbuilders ..................................................................................................................... 82
2.3.2.3 Cephalopods ...................................................................................................................... 84
2.3.2.4 Benthic filterfeeders: brachiopods and bivalves ...................................................................... 86
2.3.2.5 Trilobites ........................................................................................................................... 88
2.3.2.6 Echinoderms ...................................................................................................................... 90
2.3.2.7 Graptolites and Conodonts................................................................................................... 92
2.3.2.8 Vertebrates ........................................................................................................................ 94
2.3.2.9 Land plants ........................................................................................................................ 96
2.3.3 The Palaeozoic era .................................................................................................................... 98
2.3.3.1 The Ediacaran and PhanerozoicPrecambrian boundary ............................................................ 100
2.3.3.2 Evolution of skeletal elements .............................................................................................. 102
2.3.3.3 The Cambrian period........................................................................................................... 104
2.3.3.4 The Ordovician period ......................................................................................................... 106
2.3.3.5 The Silurian period .............................................................................................................. 108
2.3.3.6 Colonisation of terrestrial environments ................................................................................ 110
2.3.3.7 The Devonian period ........................................................................................................... 112
2.3.3.8 The Carboniferous period .................................................................................................... 114
2.3.3.9 The Permian period ............................................................................................................ 116
2.3.3.10 Development of the cormus ............................................................................................... 118
2.3.3.11 Towards a smaller and shorterlived haploid generation (gametophyte) .................................... 120
2.3.3.12 Towards an increasingly dominant diploid generation (sporophyte) .......................................... 122
2.3.4 The Mesozoic era ...................................................................................................................... 124
2.3.4.1 The Triassic period .............................................................................................................. 126
2.3.4.2 Reproductive adaptations to terrestrial life ............................................................................. 128
2.3.4.3 The Jurassic period ............................................................................................................. 130
2.3.4.4 Sauria ............................................................................................................................... 132
2.3.4.5 The Cretaceous period ........................................................................................................ 134
2.3.4.6 EEvolution of pollination ...................................................................................................... 136
2.3.5 The Cenozoic era ....................................................................................................................... 138
2.3.5.1 The Palaeogene period ........................................................................................................ 140
2.3.5.2 The Neogene period ........................................................................................................... 142
2.3.5.3 Evolution of C4 photosynthesis .............................................................................................. 144
2.3.5.4 Physiological efficiency of C4 and CAM photosynthesis ............................................................. 146
2.3.5.5 The Quaternary period ........................................................................................................ 148
2.3.5.6 The Cenozoic Ice Age ........................................................................................................... 150
Content IX
2.3.5.7 Hominisation ..................................................................................................................... 152
2.3.5.8 The future ......................................................................................................................... 154
3 Distribution of presentday biodiversity ....................................................................... 157
3.1 Basics of the biogeographical distribution of taxa ............................................................... 158
3.1.1 Species descriptions .................................................................................................................. 160
3.1.2 The species concept .................................................................................................................. 162
3.1.3 Molecular diversity and OTUs ................................................................................................... 164
3.1.4 Biodiversity indices ................................................................................................................... 166
3.1.5 Spatial distribution of biodiversity ............................................................................................ 168
3.1.6 Species concept limitations: viruses ......................................................................................... 170
3.1.7 Species concept limitations: lichen ........................................................................................... 172
3.2 Biodiversity distribution .............................................................................................................. 174
3.2.1 Pattern and mechanisms .......................................................................................................... 176
3.2.1.1 Biodiversity hotspots ........................................................................................................... 178
3.2.1.2 Ecological niches ................................................................................................................ 180
3.2.1.3 Speciation mechanisms ....................................................................................................... 182
3.2.1.4 Island biogeography ............................................................................................................ 184
3.2.1.5 Global biodiversity gradients ................................................................................................ 186
3.2.1.6 Biogeography of microorganisms .......................................................................................... 188
3.2.1.7 Alien and invasive species .................................................................................................... 190
3.2.1.8 Cenozoic mass extinction ..................................................................................................... 192
3.2.2 Biogeographic regions ............................................................................................................... 194
3.2.2.1 Global precipitation and temperature distribution ................................................................... 196
3.2.2.2 Global wind systems and climate zones .................................................................................. 198
3.2.2.3 Tundra .............................................................................................................................. 200
3.2.2.4 Taiga ................................................................................................................................. 202
3.2.2.5 Temperate forests ............................................................................................................... 204
3.2.2.6 Temperate grasslands .......................................................................................................... 206
3.2.2.7 Montane and flooded grasslands .......................................................................................... 208
3.2.2.8 Mediterranean biome ......................................................................................................... 210
3.2.2.9 Hot and temperate deserts .................................................................................................. 212
3.2.2.10 Subtropical and tropical grasslands ...................................................................................... 214
3.2.2.11 Subtropical and tropical arid (xerophytic) forests ................................................................... 216
3.2.2.12 Tropical rainforest ............................................................................................................. 218
3.2.2.13 Lakes .............................................................................................................................. 220
3.2.2.14 Rivers .............................................................................................................................. 222
3.2.2.15 Oceans and seas ............................................................................................................... 224
X Content
4 Megasystematics .......................................................................................................................... 227
4.1 Basics of Megasystematics ......................................................................................................... 228
4.1.1 Historical and philosophical basis of megasystematics ............................................................. 230
4.1.1.1 Carl Linnaeus and the fundamentals of modern systematics ...................................................... 232
4.1.1.2 Basics of modern phylogeny: Darwin and Pasteur .................................................................... 234
4.1.1.3 What is a plant? ................................................................................................................. 236
4.1.1.4 What is an animal? ............................................................................................................. 238
4.1.1.5 What is a fungus? ............................................................................................................... 240
4.1.1.6 Phylogenetic trees .............................................................................................................. 242
4.1.1.7 Cladograms and phylograms................................................................................................. 244
4.1.1.8 Molecular diversity of the eukaryotic supergroups ................................................................... 246
4.1.2 The three domains .................................................................................................................... 248
4.1.2.1 Bacteria ............................................................................................................................ 250
4.2.2.2 Archaea ............................................................................................................................ 252
4.1.2.3 Eukarya ............................................................................................................................. 254
4.1.2.4 Eukarya: Cellular structures .................................................................................................. 256
............................................................................................................... 258
4.2.1 Holozoa ..................................................................................................................................... 260
4.2.1.1 Choanomonada .................................................................................................................. 262
4.2.1.2 Porifera ............................................................................................................................. 264
4.2.1.3 Placozoa, Cnidaria, Ctenophora............................................................................................. 266
4.2.1.4 Protostomia ....................................................................................................................... 268
4.1.2.5 Ecdysozoa.......................................................................................................................... 270
4.2.1.6 Spiralia .............................................................................................................................. 272
4.2.1.7 Deuterostomia ................................................................................................................... 274
4.2.1.6 Gnathostomata .................................................................................................................. 276
4.2.1.9 Amniota ............................................................................................................................ 278
4.2.2 Holomycota ............................................................................................................................... 280
4.2.2.1 Microsporidia and Chytridiomycota ....................................................................................... 282
4.2.2.2 Glomeromycota: arbuscular mycorrhizal fungi ........................................................................ 284
4.2.2.3 Zygosporeforming fungi ...................................................................................................... 286
4.2.2.4 Ascomycota ....................................................................................................................... 288
4.2.2.5 Basidiomycota .................................................................................................................... 290
4.2.3 Amoebozoa ............................................................................................................................... 292
4.2.3.1 Conosa.............................................................................................................................. 294
4.3 Excavata ........................................................................................................................................... 296
4.3.1 Metamonada ............................................................................................................................ 298
4.3.2 Discoba ...................................................................................................................................... 300
4.3.2.1 Euglenozoa: Euglenida ......................................................................................................... 302
4.3.2.2 Euglenozoa: Kinetoplastea ................................................................................................... 304
Content XI
4.4 Archaeplastida ............................................................................................................................... 306
4.4.1 Glaucocystophyta ...................................................................................................................... 308
4.4.2 Rhodophyta ............................................................................................................................... 310
4.4.3 Viridiplantae .............................................................................................................................. 312
4.4.3.1 Streptophyta ...................................................................................................................... 314
4.4.3.2 Basale embryophytes: bryophytes ......................................................................................... 316
4.4.3.3 Rhyniophytina and Lycopodiophytina .................................................................................... 318
4.4.3.4 Monilophyta (Ferns) ............................................................................................................ 320
4.4.3.5 Gymnosperms .................................................................................................................... 322
4.4.3.6 Magnoliopsida I: Overview ................................................................................................... 324
4.4.3.7 Basal Magnoliopsida and Monocotyledons ............................................................................. 326
4.4.3.8 Eudicotyledons I: Rosids ...................................................................................................... 328
4.4.3.9 Eudicotyledons II: Asterids ................................................................................................... 330
4.5 Rhizaria ............................................................................................................................................ 332
4.5.1 Cercozoa .................................................................................................................................... 334
4.5.2 Retaria ....................................................................................................................................... 336
4.5.2.1 Foraminifera ...................................................................................................................... 338
4.6 Alveolata and Stramenopiles ..................................................................................................... 340
4.6.1 Alveolata ................................................................................................................................... 342
4.6.1.1 Ciliophora .......................................................................................................................... 344
4.6.1.2 Dinophyta ......................................................................................................................... 346
4.6.1.3 Apicomplexa ...................................................................................................................... 348
4.6.2 Stramenopiles ........................................................................................................................... 350
4.6.2.1 Peronosporomycetes (Oomycetes) ........................................................................................ 352
4.6.2.2 Phaeophyceae ................................................................................................................... 354
4.6.2.3 Chrysophyceae ................................................................................................................... 356
4.6.2.4 Bacillariophyceae ............................................................................................................... 358
4.7 Hacrobia and eukaryotes of uncertain placement (incertae sedis) ................................ 360
4.7.1 Haptophyta ............................................................................................................................... 362
4.7.2 Cryptophyta .............................................................................................................................. 364
Glossary ................................................................................................................................................... 367
References ............................................................................................................................................. 379
Index .......................................................................................................................................................... 387
XII List of subject boxes
List of subject boxes
Cilium/Flagellum ............................................................................................................................................... 259
Protection from predation ................................................................................................................................ 261
Predatorprey size relationships ........................................................................................................................ 263
Motile and sessile lifestyles ............................................................................................................................... 265
Symmetry and body structure ........................................................................................................................... 267
Segmentation .................................................................................................................................................... 269
Freezing and thawing ........................................................................................................................................ 271
Why can some fossils not be found? ................................................................................................................. 273
Protection from UV radiation ............................................................................................................................ 275
The development of dinosaurs and angiosperms ............................................................................................. 277
Size and dimensions .......................................................................................................................................... 279
Cell wall materials ............................................................................................................................................. 281
Generational shift in parasites .......................................................................................................................... 283
Mycorrhiza......................................................................................................................................................... 285
Organisational morphology and phylogeny....................................................................................................... 287
Multinucleate cells ............................................................................................................................................ 289
Symbiosis / mutualism ...................................................................................................................................... 291
Pseudopodia ...................................................................................................................................................... 293
Chemical communication and semiochemicals ................................................................................................. 295
Phagocytosis ...................................................................................................................................................... 297
Hydrogenosomes ............................................................................................................................................... 299
Reducing of genome size in parasites ................................................................................................................ 301
Perception of light ............................................................................................................................................. 303
Position of the kinetoplastkinetosomeflagellar pocket complex .................................................................... 305
Chlorophyll ........................................................................................................................................................ 307
Are higherlevel organisms evolutionarily betteradapted? .............................................................................. 309
List of subject boxes XIII
Photo pigments and vertical ecological niches.................................................................................................. 311
Multicellularity .................................................................................................................................................. 313
Shape as protection against predation .............................................................................................................. 315
Cell wall and cuticula ......................................................................................................................................... 317
Alternation of generations – meiosis ................................................................................................................ 319
Vascular bundles ............................................................................................................................................... 321
Origin, radiation, and dominance of taxa .......................................................................................................... 323
Ancestry of the Magnoliopsida lineage ............................................................................................................. 325
Carnivory in plants and fungi............................................................................................................................. 327
Distribution mechanisms (wind and animal) ..................................................................................................... 329
Coevolution within pollination biology ............................................................................................................. 331
Nucleomorph .................................................................................................................................................... 333
Paulinella: a model for the emergence of plastids ............................................................................................ 335
Biogenic minerals .............................................................................................................................................. 337
Biomineralisation .............................................................................................................................................. 339
Organelles.......................................................................................................................................................... 341
Model organisms ............................................................................................................................................... 343
Endosymbiotic algae .......................................................................................................................................... 345
Bioluminescence ............................................................................................................................................... 347
Compartmentalisation ...................................................................................................................................... 349
Osmoregulation ................................................................................................................................................. 351
The chemical basis for life ................................................................................................................................. 353
Buoyancy ........................................................................................................................................................... 355
Phototrophy, mixotrophy, heterotrophy ........................................................................................................... 357
Locomotion by gliding ....................................................................................................................................... 359
Eukaryotic biocenosis and the ‘microbial loop’ ................................................................................................. 361
Algal blooms ...................................................................................................................................................... 363
Surface scales .................................................................................................................................................... 365
XIV Biographies
Dr Sabina Wodniok is a researcher in the Biodiversity Department at the University
of DuisburgEssen, where she is currently exploring the evolution and ecological signifi
cance of plastid reduction in algae, their molecular evolution and phylogeny, as well as the
biodiversity and distribution patterns of protists more generally. She teaches biodiversity,
molecular evolution, and different aspects of botany to undergraduate students and coor
dinates the faculty’s study courses. Dr Wodniok previously studied the genome evolution
of Viridiplantae, which formed the bulk of her doctoral work, carried out at the University
of Cologne. She also holds a Diploma from the University of Bielefeld, which included a
research project on establishment of genetic transformation in green algae.
Dr Edvard Glücksman is a scientist based at the University of Exeter’s Environment and
Sustainability Institute, where he is currently researching strategies for responsible mining.
He has previously worked both as a postdoctoral fellow in microbial ecology at the Uni
versity of DuisburgEssen and as a professional science communicator with the European
Geosciences Union, Europe’s largest organisation in the Earth and planetary sciences. In
addition, Dr Glücksman has served as an advisor to the UK Parliamentary Office of Sci
ence & Technology, where he wrote a briefing on marketbased biodiversity conservation
schemes. He is also an active member of the transatlantic Emerging Leaders in Environ
mental and Energy Policy (ELEEP) network, jointly coordinated by the Atlantic Council
and Ecologic Institute think tanks. Dr Glücksman holds a DPhil and MSc in Zoology from
the University of Oxford, a BSc from the University of St Andrews, and a BA from McGill
University.
1
How do I use this book?
This book is aimed at students of the Life and Earth Sci palaeontology, geology, and geography. Due to the breadth
ences as well as to all those interested in biodiversity and of the subject matter of this book, sections differ in their level
its development. Beyond the fragmented view of animal and of difficulty in accordance with the educational background
plant diversity it focusses on the total diversity of eukaryotes: of the reader.
their diversity and distribution on Earth as well as the geolo Each topic is presented in the same way across a twopage
gical development of presentday biodiversity. spread, including one page of text and one with explanatory
This book aims to link geoscientific concepts, such as figures. The text is further divided into an introductory sec
Earth’s history and macroevolution, to topics in the biosci tion, featuring general principles, and a section building on
ences, including biodiversity and its distribution in the natu the basics, showing selected aspects in depth.
ral environment. The text is intentionally oriented at the in The figure pages contain explanatory text boxes emphasi
terface of both disciplines, in order to illustrate correlations zing distinct aspects in order to clarify and link content to the
between the development of the planet and the evolution of main text. In addition to providing content relating directly
life: the effects of geological and climatic development on to the text, the the figure pages often put subject matter in a
the evolution of life and, conversely, the effects of the origin greater context or offer starting points for further study.
and evolution of life on the geological and climatic evolution As a result of its rigid structure, the book invites readers
of the Earth. either to work through its content chapter by chapter – par
The book is divided into three main subject areas: the first ticularly applicable to material in the geosciences – or to na
section deals with the geological development of the Earth vigate through thematically, moving between related aspects
and biodiversity, the second illustrates the current distributi by way of the cross references.
on of Earth’s diversity, and the third provides an overview of With this distinctively themebased approach, we hope
the diversity of eukaryotic organisms. Each of these topics is that this book closes gaps in the textbook landscape and fa
preceded by an introductory chapter, providing background cilitates learning.
and an explanation of basic concepts on aspects of biology,
Introduction 3
Textbook structure:
Text pages are generally divided into an introductory (1) and an advan
4 Introduction
1.2
Biodiversity
Life can be found everywhere on Earth, from the deepest tinct, total diversity counts are estimated to comprise over 5
oceanic valley to the highest mountain peaks and from the million animal species and over 400,000 plant species. The
coldest polar ice deserts to the hottest deserts and hydro diversity of microorganisms, which has been far less inten
thermal vents. Presentday biodiversity and its distribution sively studied, is probably much greater: the ‘tree of life’,
on Earth is the result of over 4 billion years of evolution. based on the analysis of species at the genetic level, reflects
Since the origin of life, biodiversity levels on the planet have this vast microbial diversity and confines multicellular life
experienced several sharp fluctuations. Five major and many to a few barely noticeable side branches. A quote from the
smaller extinction events have been recorded since the emer journal Nature (2004) highlights this point: „It is now time for
gence of complex multicellular life forms, causing sudden biologists to cease presenting to their students and the public
sharp declines in global biodiversity. Today, primarily as a re a perspective of life on Earth that is so biased towards the
sult of human activity, rates of biodiversity loss have reached visible. This will not be easy. The first part of the challenge is
or even exceed rates of the other five major extinction events. accepting that the contribution of visible life to biodiversity
Even though over 99 % of Earth’s total species have gone ex is very small indeed.“
biodiversity: -
-
Introduction 5
C C TAG CG
ATG GA
AT
C G G AT C G AG
TA CC
T T C TAT
AT CA
CG
ATA
GT
Krautschicht
layers, and tree layers
Euglena gracilis);
Corvus corone [the carrion crow], Corvus cornix [hooded crow]);
)
6 Introduction
1.3
Life
The question of what exactly constitutes life initially ap ‘foreign’, mainly prokaryotes (especially the intestinal flora).
pears to be easy to answer. However, it is very difficult or even Likewise, most higher plants live in symbiosis with mycor
impossible to provide a clear definition of life, and those that rhizal fungi and parasites about in nature, living in narrowly
exist are surprisingly different from each other. Among the defined interdependencies with their hosts. Many freeliving
frequently mentioned criteria for life are movement, selfsus organisms also live in close reciprocal relationships with
tainment, reproduction, selforganisation, and metabolism. other lifeforms; their viability therefore depends on other
If we restrict ourselves to defining life according to what is freeliving organisms. In this sense, the inclusion of viruses
already known on Earth, we can narrow the definition down within the definition of life is justified: their dependence on
further. In this case, all life is made of highly developed cells other lifeforms is only more pronounced. However, including
(or is at least highly dependent on the reproduction of cells the need to interact with or to depend on other life into the
– as is the case with viruses) dependent on nucleic acids and definition of life would even cover the properties of biomole
proteins. cules. Thus, excluding biomoleculaes from the definition of
Another key feature of life is selfsufficiency. Although life will become problematic. Furthermore, autonomous ro
this seems selfevident, this view is problematic: most living bots with artificial intelligence, also challenge conventional
organisms are in the very least strongly dependent on other definitions of life. It is therefore relatively easy to recognise
lifeforms. For example, only around 10 % of cells within the life – at least life on Earth – yet, it remains difficult, if not
human body are human, whereas the remaining 90 % are impossible, to provide a unique and striking definition of life.
life: -
Introduction 7
8 Introduction
1.4
Species
The most commonly used unit of biodiversity is the spe ly that a single universal definition will ever be found. Bio
cies. Around 1.6 million species have been described so logical diversity is simply too diverse to allow for a unified
far. However, the total number of living eukaryotic species approach to the species concept.
is estimated to be around 9 million, of which 5 million are The most widely used approach for defining a species is
animals and 400,000 are plants. The number of prokaryotic using the biological species concept, which postulates that
species is difficult to estimate. The vast majority of species each species exists in reproductive isolation. In practice, eu
that once existed over the course of Earth’s history are now karyotic species are mainly distinguished based on morpho
extinct: the total number of species thought to have evolved logical similarities. To what extent these morphologically
during the Phanerozoic alone (i.e. during the past 542 my) is differentiated species differ from the true biological species
thought to be around one billion. concept definitions remains unclear.
However, what is a species? Which individuals belong to The variability of species and the splitting of existing
gether within such a grouping? And which level of ranking species into new ones has other problems: cryptic species,
do we refer to, when we speak of a species? Even though the species complexes, and ring species represent just some
answers to these questions seem obvious, they become more examples of ways by which the species concept, simple to
difficult – even impossible – to solve upon closer inspection. grasp on first thought, is in fact complex and highly difficult
As a result, there currently exists no species definition that to interpret.
can be applied across all organismal groups, and it is unlike
species complex: :
-
: :
: -
: -
Introduction 9
Heliconius erato (top row) and
11
2. Earth‘s History
This chapter focuses on the development of the Earth quent exposure of fossils. Plate tectonics and the position of
since its formation, roughly 4.6 billion years ago. The plan continents during different geological periods impact climate
et’s geological development is closely linked to the evolution and, therefore, the development of life.
of life, which evolved approximately 4 billion years ago on The chapters that follow deal with the evolution of life,
Earth. essential metabolic pathways, and their feedback with geo
This introductory chapter explains the precise nature of chemical and climatic processes.
the relationship between biological evolution and the devel Of particular importance for the evolution of life is the
opment of Earth. It opens with a survey of the composition evolution of atmospheric composition: the availability of
of the planet’s oceanic and continental crust, their inter free oxygen, but also the concentrations of greenhouse gases
action within plate tectonic processes, and their behaviour such as carbon dioxide and methane: the increase in oxygen
during weathering, erosion, and sedimentation, vital in un concentration creates the preconditions for the emergence
derstanding geochemical flows of material across the planet. of eukaryotic cells. A billion years ago the oxygen concen
Igneous rock formation processes play a role in the absolute tration exceeded 1 %, which led to the formation of a first
age determination of material (geochronology), based on ozone layer a few hundred million years later. Thereby, the
the decay of radioactive elements incorporated into the rock colonisation of the Earth‘s surface was facilitated or even
crystals. Sedimentation, weathering, and erosion processes made possible. The current oxygen content of nearly 21 %
are also significant, as they drive the formation and subse was finally achieved some 350 million years ago.
2.1 Basics of the Geosciences
2.2 The Precambrian eon
2.3 The Phanerozoic eon
2.3.1 Overview
2.3.2 Fossil Biodiversity
2.3.3 The Palaeozoic era
2.3.4 The Mesozoic era
2.3.5 The Cenozoic era
Fundamentals of the geosciences
The biodiversity, distribution, and phylogenetic develop For an understanding of the feedback loops between the
ment of life on Earth are closely linked with the formation origin and development of life, on the one hand, and the for
and evolution of the planet. Earth’s climatic and geochemical mation and development of Earth on the other, knowledge
cycles have, thus, been vital for the origin and development regarding some of the fundamentals of the geosciences is
of life. Conversely, the activity of living organisms affects the necessary. These include the formation of Earth, aspects of
planet’s atmospheric composition (and thus the climate) and rock formation, and plate tectonics, as well as an overview of
erosion processes. In addition, its biogenic sedimentation en the temporal structure of Earth’s history.
abled the formation of rock in many geologic settings.
erosion: exogenic processes leading to the removal of soil and sediments: deposits of material on the Earth’s surface, trans
rock from the Earth’s surface and its transportation from one ported by wind, water or ice
location to another weathering: the breaking down of rocks in mechanical or
chemical processes
See also
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 13
a tectosilicate a sorosilicate
Fern frond of
Lonchopteris rugoso
14 Earth‘s history
2.1.1
The universe began with the Big Bang roughly 13.7 billion (rockloving) elements were pushed to the planet’s outer ar
years ago and it continues to expand until today. Our solar eas. As a result, the Earth comprises an ironrich core and a
system was formed around 4.7 billion years ago from the silicaterich mantle and crust.
centre of a solar nebula. The accumulated mass in the centre The mantle and the heavy oceanic crust are richer in iron
of the solar nebula was so large that nuclear fusion processes and magnesium than the lighter continental crust. The latter
were initiated. floats as slabs on the heavier, partially molten, material of
Matter located furthest away began to concentrate along the upper mantle, known as the asthenosphere.
elliptical orbits, forming protoplanets. Like other planets, The time since the formation of the Earth is divided
Earth was initially formed as a protoplanet by an accu into the Phanerozoic and Precambrian. The Phanerozoic
mulation of dust and largersized material. Due to further includes the last approximately 541 million years. The Pre
collisions with other debris Earth’ mass increased and the cambrian encompasses the time since the formation of Earth
released gravitational energy increasingly heated the Earth. until the beginning of the Phanerozoic. The Precambrian is
Earth became a liquid planet on which subsequently in turn divided into the Hadean, the Archean and Proterozo
melted rock rich in silicates and melted metals rich in iron ic. The first life arose in the Archaean some 3.8 billion years
split. The denser siderophiles (ironloving elements) were ago, after the Earth‘s surface had cooled enough to allow for
enriched in the Earth’s core, whereas the lighter lithophilic the existence of liquid water.
The Hadean was the first stage of Earth’s development, concentrated across the planet’s mantle, crust, and atmos
covering a period from 4.7 to 4 billion years ago. In this phere. The primordial atmosphere consisted mainly of water
phase the Earth was subjected to frequent collisions with vapour (H2O, up to 80 %), carbon dioxide (CO2, up to 20 %),
meteorites. hydrogen sulfide (H2S), ammonia (NH3), and methane (CH4).
The moon was formed approximately 4.5 billion years Prior to around 4.2 billion years ago, the surface tempera
ago, probably due to a collision of the Earth with a very large ture of the Earth sank below 100 °C. The Earth’s crust subse
body. Since then, the moon’s mass slows down the Earth’s quently solidified and liquid water first appeared.
speed of rotation. A day on Earth in the in early Precam The ensuing period of 4–2.5 billion years ago is known as
brian lasted only around eight hours. Consequences of this the Archean. With the onset of the formation of the oceans,
rapid daynightchange were strong storms with wind speeds atmospheric water vapour levels dropped and, by UV radia
well over 500 km/h. To the presentday, the moon slowed tion from the sun, water, methane, and ammonia molecules
down the Earth‘s rotation by ocean tides up to the pres were photochemically disassembled partially. Lighter gases,
ent day length of 24 hours. In addition, the rotation of the such as hydrogen and helium, volatilised for the most part
Moon around the Earth contributes to the stabilisation of into space, leaving behind nitrogen to make up the largest
the Earth‘s axis and thereby maintaining longterm climatic constituent of the atmosphere over the past 3.4 billion years.
stability: without a stable earth‘s axis, the Earth’s alignment The resulting carbon dioxide was for the most part dissolved
with the sun would fluctuate greatly, as would the position into the oceans, acidifying them to around pH 4. Subsequent
of the Equator and polar regions. In short, the moon creates ly, chemical and later biogenic precipitation of carbonates
the preconditions for a consistent seasonal climate and the (limestone, dolomite, etc.) decreased the concentration of
occurrence of stable climate zones on Earth. dissolved CO2, causing oceanic pH to slowly rise again.
Initially, the Earth had no solid surface. Highdensity el Chemical evolution started in the Archean, through
ements, in particular iron, were concentrated within the the abiotic formation of organic molecules. Life appeared
Earth’s core. Elements with lower density were subsequently around 3.8 billion, but at the latest 3.6 billion years ago.
protoplanet: (Grk.: protos ultraviolet: radiation having a wavelength shorter than that of
around a star and thought to be developing into a planet the violet end of the visible spectrum but longer than that of
solar nebula: thick clouds of interstellar matter remaining fol
lowing the explosion of a supernova
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 15
asteroids belt gas planets
Neptune
Uranus
Venus Saturn
Mars
Jupiter
% ni
%)
16 Earth‘s history
2.1.1.1
felsic: dark, rockforming minerals which are rich in magnesium
igneous minerals rich in silicic acid and iron (Lat.: ferrum
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 17
magnesium
aluminium
potassium
sodium
calcium
silicon
iron
crust
upper
mantle
lower m mantle
antle
magnesium
silicon
iron
outer
core
core
residue
iron
inner core
% are re
fe si
O ) consist of
i.e.
i.e.
O
are
% are
ma ferric i.e. magnesium
% of silicate are ad
Si O6
poor in
silicate
SiO
18 Earth‘s history
2.1.1.2
Plate tectonics
Plate tectonics, on the one hand, is important to explain African plate) with the Eurasian plate. The Rocky Moun
the distribution and exchange of species between conti tains were formed by the collision and subduction of the Pa
nents, on the other hand it is based on orogeny and the car cific plate beneath the North American Plate and the Andes
bonatesilicatecycle and thus has a climatically effect. resulted by the subduction of the Nazca plate beneath the
Although the rocks of the mantle are mostly solid, there South American Plate.
is also a plastic flow, as it occurs also in glass, salt or gla The oceanic crust formed from mantle material has a high
cial ice. The mantle‘s convection is driven by differences in density, since it is rich in iron and magnesium. The conti
temperature and density between upper and lower mantle. nental crust, however, is poorer in iron and magnesium; it
This convection drives the movement of the Earth‘s crust. consists of lighter silicates and has a lower density. At con
The different plates are displaced in relation to one anoth vergent plate boundaries, therefore the heavy oceanic crust is
er. New crust is formed by ascending mantle material where usually subducted underneath the lighter continental crust.
the plates drift apart. When the plates are compressed, the The cycle of crust formation – especially at oceanic ridges
Earth‘s crust is either subducted or its collision leads to the – and subduction takes approximately 200 million years.
uplift of mountains. Therefore and as a rule, oceanic crust is younger. Only in a
The Himalayas are the result of the collision of the Indian few marine basins, such as in the Mediterranean, older oce
plate with the Eurasian one. The Alps arose as a result of the anic crust is sporadically found.
collision of the Adriatic (as an offshore microplate of the
adaptive radiation: the emergence of a multitude of new life converge: (Lat.: convergere
forms from a single ancestor as the result of adaptation to differ er, to herd, to rally
ent ecological environments oxygenation:
convection: acceptor is oxygen
in density subduction zone: convergent boundary between one tectonic
plate of the lithosphere and another on the Earth’s upper crust
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 19
20 Earth‘s history
2.1.2
Rockforming processes
The evolution of life and rockforming processes are in as plate tectonics. This leads to the subduction of usually
terrelated. Biogenic sediments, particularly limestone, are oceanic plates at one hand and on the other hand, to the for
of key importance to the global carbonatesilicate cycle. The mation of new crust, mainly along midocean ridges.
volcanic eruption of plutonic rocks (with a higher proportion On the Earth‘s surface weathering of rocks takes place
of calcium and magnesium) leads to a higher input of these due to the influence of temperature fluctuations and wind,
ions into the sea and thus affects the precipitation of lime. water and ice. These weathered rock fragments are eroded
Due to diffusion equilibria the atmospheric carbon dioxide and deposited again as clastic sediments. In addition to the
concentrations are reduced. As a consequence, this process clastic sediments, chemical sediments (i.e. rock salt) and bio
acts on the climate and on the evolution of life. genic sediments (i.e. coral limestone, coal) play an important
The various rockforming processes are closely interre role. The sediments are solidified by increasing pressure and
lated: the formation of igneous rocks from rock melts, the solution processes within the pore water, a process called di
formation of sedimentary rocks from weathered and eroded agenesis. Due to increasing temperature and pressure con
rock fragments, the formation of metamorphic rocks under ditions, some minerals start transformation processes, also
high temperatures and pressures in deeper regions of the known as rock metamorphism. If temperatures rise more
Earth‘s crust and the anatexis, the (partial) remelting of and more, the rocks are partially (anatexis) or completely
rocks. (igneous rocks) remelt again. Such remolten rocks can be
The convection of mantle rock driven by thermal gradi transported as plutonic or volcanic rocks by uplift processes
ents leads to movements of the Earth‘s crust, also addressed in higher regions of the Earth‘s crust.
anatexis: partial melting of rocks in the continental crust dur erosion: exogenic processes leading to the removal of soil and
ing highgrade regional metamorphism rock from the Earth’s surface and its transportation from one
burial metamorphism: metamorphism caused when rocks location to another
are buried at great depth in the ground mineral: homogeneous, naturallyoccurring solid, usually anor
contact metamorphism: metamorphism caused by tempera ganic with a crystal structure
ture increases due to hot magma rock: mixture of minerals occurring in solid form
diagenesis: rock metamorphism: changes in rocks under high pressure
cal, physical or biological change at relatively low temperatures and temperatures without them melting into liquid magma
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 21
we
athe
rin
g
li
u p
ero
sio
n
sediment (loose rocks)
dia
gen
e sis
me
tam sediment (solid rock)
orp
his
m ism
rph
amo
met
metamorphite
magma
22 Earth‘s history
2.1.2.1
Magmatism refers to processes that affect the rock melt, volcanic activity, also significantly influence the atmospheric
the magma. A differentiation is made between nearsurface composition.
processes – volcanism – and processes occurring in deeper Especially carbon dioxide can be released by volcanic
regions of the crust – plutonism. activity in large quantities and thus contribute to climate
Plutonic rocks stay at greater depths and therefore cool down change. Due to volcanism hot rock melts are transported to
very slowly. Since the melts slowly cool down, there is a very or near the Earth‘s surface. Ascending magmas reaching the
long periods of time for crystal growth. Plutonites are there Earth‘s surface are also referred to as lava. Here, the melts
fore characterised by larger crystals. cool down quickly. Therefore, crystallisation time of miner
Volcanism is usually found in tectonically active regions, als is short and the crystals in the resulting rocks are usually
in particular at the divergent plate boundaries such as mid small.
ocean ridges and subduction zones of converging plate Magmas, rich in silicate (felsic) usually solidify as light
boundaries. Rocks and gases are transported from the lower rocks: close to the surface, for example, as fine crystalline
crust and upper mantle to the Earth‘s surface. The hot source rhyolite, at greater depths as coarsely crystallised granite.
rock melts mostly by pressure release during its ascent and Magmas, poorer in silicate but iron and magnesiumrich
concentrates in magma chambers. From there, it ascends (mafic) mostly solidify as dark rocks – close to the surface,
via narrow vents towards the volcanoes. The released gases for example, as fine crystalline basalt, at greater depths as
can, in particular in geological periods of time of increased coarsely crystallised gabbro.
igneous rock: rhyolite: acid igneous rock
plutonism: geological process in which a pluton develops as volcanism:
the result of magma crystalising under the Earth’s surface matic processes near the Earth’s surface
pyroclasts: fragmented material consisting of volcanic (erup
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 23
surface
% silicate are referred to as ultra maf
i.e.
aries
24 Earth‘s history
2.1.2.2
clastische sediments: rock fragments consisting of other rocks Loess:
and minerals which have been subject to mechanical destruction moraine: accumulation of debris transported and deposited by
conglomerate: hardened clastic sediment with clasts >2 mm, glaciers
fragments usually rounded
stones carried downriver by currents erate consisting of compacted pebbles
sequence of claystone and sandstone formed during sedimentes: deposits of material on the Earth’s surface, trans
orogenesis in a deep marine facies ported by wind, water or ice
glacial till: heterogeneous glacial sediment which has been tillite: sedimentary rock composed of compacted glacial till
abraded and deposited by a glacier
hydrolysis: (Grk.: hydro = water, lysis
molecules through a reaction with water
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 25
Frost wedging Salt weathering
erosion
transport
e.g.
Carbonate balance and carbonates
Carbonates and carbon dioxide play an important role carbonic acid, hydrogen carbonate and carbonate via reac
both for the evolution of life on Earth and for geochemical tive balances. Reversely, the concentration of dissolved car
processes. Carbon dioxide is also relevant to the climate, bonates is in solution equilibrium with (precipitated) calcium
since the shortwave solar radiation penetrates to the Earth‘s and magnesium carbonates. Carbonate forms slightly solu
surface largely unhindered, the longwave thermal radiation ble salts with calcium and magnesium. An increase in the
from the Earth‘s surface is absorbed by carbon dioxide and is carbonate, or magnesium and calcium concentration beyond
partly reflected to Earth (the greenhouse effect). the solubility product results in the precipitation of calcium
Since 1950, the carbon dioxide concentration of the at carbonate (calcite, aragonite) and calciummagnesium car
mosphere is increased from 0.03 % to approximately 0.04 %. bonate (dolomite).
In the Earth‘s history, the carbon dioxide concentration, Moreover, in water, the solubility of carbon dioxide is
however, was significantly higher – at the beginning of the temperature dependent. The heating of carbon dioxiderich
Cambrian period about ten times higher at 0.45 %. The high water induces degassing: carbonic acid is formed out of
er carbon dioxide concentrations caused climatic conditions hydrogen carbonate and hydronium ions. According to the
similar to the ones of presentday, despite the still weaker decrease of hydronium ions, the pH rises and carbonates
solar radiation. precipitate. Such temperatureinduced carbonate precip
In water, the atmospheric carbon dioxide concentration itations can be found at springs, for example, where cool,
is in equilibrium with the concentration of dissolved carbon carbonaterich deep water is heated during discharge. Lime
dioxide (imbalances can occur in the shortterm). The car formed in such a way is referred to as sinter.
bon dioxide concentration in the water is in balance with
dissociation: separation of salts into ions, or of a molecule into hydronium ion: positively charged water molecule (H3O+
its constituent elements
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 27
+ + +
‐ ‐ ‐
carbonic acid carbonate
H₃O +
H₃O +
Ca Ca Ca Ca
Ca Ca Ca Ca
Ca Ca
Dolomit Mg Mg
Ca Ca Mg Mg
Ca Ca Ca Ca
Ca Ca Ca Ca
)
.
28 Earth‘s history
2.1.3
Eons
The time since the formation of Earth is geologically di The eons are generally divided into eras, only the Hadean
vided into four periods of time, the eons. The oldest eon, is not further subdivided. The Archean is divided into sec
the Hadean, roughly covers the period from the formation tions of 400 million years, the Eoarchean, Palaeoarchean,
of the Earth to the formation of a solid Earth‘s crust and the the Mesoarchean and the ‘only’ 300 million years lasting
formation of the primaeval oceans. Neoarchean. These sections are geochronologically defined
The Hadean is followed by the Archean. In this eon according to the absolute geological age. Also, the Proterozo
prokaryotes already existed, but no eukaryotes. In Prote ic is geochronologically divided into the Palaeoproterozoic,
rozoic eukaryotes finally emerged, but they had been uni Mesoproterozoic and Neoproterozoic. The recent geological
cellular or sparse cellular organisms due to the low oxygen sections are, however, globally defined by a defined bound
availability. Only at the beginning of the most recent eon, ary stratotype, i.e., a point within a particular geologic out
the Phanerozoic, the oxygen concentrations reached values crop. This applies to the transition to the Phanerozoic and
that favoured the evolution of complex multicellular organ the subdivision of the Phanerozoic into the Palaeozoic, Mes
isms. Hardly any fossils are passed on from the first three ozoic and Cenozoic eras.
eons. However, from the Phanerozoic, a variety of fossils are The eras are further divided into geologic periods (or sys
known. tems), epochs (or series) and age (or stages).
See also:
Fundamentals of the geosciences 29
66 Ma
rence of macroscopic organisms
Hindeodus parvus
of the trace fossil Trichophycus pedum
correlated with the end of the Marinoan glaci
N
30 Earth's history
2.2
The Precambrian
The Precambrian, which covers the period of time from oxygen was geochemically bound. The first sharp increase
Earth’s creation to the beginning of the Phanerozoic eon, in its atmospheric levels only occurred a few hundred mil
comprises the three oldest eons in Earth’s history: the Ha lion years later. The availability of free oxygen affected via
dean, Archean, and Proterozoic. a reduction in greenhouse gases (methane and carbon di
The development of Earth and the evolution of life are oxide) the climate. A drastically cooling of the planet, the
reciprocal processes. To that end, the evolution of oxygen, Huron glaciation, was the consequence. On the other hand,
hence, the formation of free oxygen played a key role. There oxygen served a prerequisite for the emergence of eukaryotic
was no free oxygen in the Hadean and Archean, whereas cells. After oxygenation of the atmosphere eukaryotes, ex
in the Lower Proterozoic oxygen levels reached values of isting in the shallower depths of alreadyoxygenated oceans,
around 0.2 %. It was only in the Upper Neoproterozoic, at could survive. However, eukaryotes remained insignificant
the Phanerozoic boundary, that oxygen concentrations be in the nutrientpoorer oceans. With increasing oxygenation
gan to increase up to presentday values. of deep ocean waters that was accompanied by an increase
Within the geochemical balance and without the activity of nutrients 700 million years ago, eukaryotic algae became
of living organisms, free oxygen would only be available in more important. Oxygen levels therefore rose alongside an
trace amounts; the atmosphere nearly oxygenfree. Higher increase in global primary production. The oxygenation of
oxygen concentrations can be maintained only by continu Earth’s atmosphere also had an effect on climate patterns,
ous biogenic formation, through oxygenic photosynthesis, causing extensive glaciations; ultimately, the rise in atmos
a process originating in cyanobacteria at least 2.5 billion pheric oxygen levels were a prerequisite for the development
years ago (but likely earlier than that). Initially, originating of complex multicellular organisms.
banded iron: (mainly Precambrian) marine sedimentary rock greenhouse gases: gaseous matter which absorbs infrared
containing ironrich layers radiation emitted from the Earth, thereby contributing to the
biogenic: (Grk.: bios = life) of biological or organic origin warming of the atmosphere
erosion: exogenic processes leading to the removal of soil and oxygenation: provision of oxygen; oxidation where the elec
rock from the Earth’s surface and its transportation from one tron acceptor is oxygen
location to another primary production: the synthesis of biomas from inorganic
Great Oxidation Event: great oxygen crisis 2.45 billion years compounds
ago caused by the appearance of dioxygen
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 31
Important Precambrian events
Origin of life
32 Earth's history
2.2.1
The Archean eon
The earliest eons in Earth’s history are the Hadean and in Greenland, dating back to around 3.8 billion years, though
the Archean. individual rock findings from northern Canada date back
The Hadean is geologically defined as the period since the even further to around 4.3 and 4 billion years. Single zircon
formation of the Earth until the start of the Archean roughly minerals from the Australian Yilgam craton can be dated
4 billion years ago. It is not further subdivided. back to 4.4 billion years.
The Archean, on the other hand, is geochronologically It is likely, however, that a continuous solid crust and the
defined as the period between the end of the Hadean (4 bil formation of the first oceans took place near the end of the
lion years ago) and the start of the Proterozoic (2.5 billion Hadean, when the temperature of the Earth's surface cooled
years ago). It is divided into the Eoarchean (4–3.6 billion to below 100 °C.
years ago), Paleoarchean (3.6–3.2 billion years ago), Mesoar The Archean is therefore characterized by the further dif
chean (3.2–2.8 billion years ago), and Neoarchean (2.8–2.5 ferentiation of the Earth’s crust, the formation of cratons,
billion years ago). and by the origin and evolution of life.
In the Archean, Earth’s atmosphere was entirely oxy
genfree. The oldest known rock formation is the Isua Gneiss
The protoEarth was formed during the Hadean. Its formation of continental crust increased; life evolved in the
mass subsequently increased through collisions with mete oceans.
orites and other protoplanets. Around 4.5 billion years ago, In the Eoarchean, the Earth had a solid crust, leading to
the moon formed as a result of a collision between the pro the formation of the oceans. In the Lower to Middle Eo
toEarth and another protoplanet. archean, Earth’s surface was exposed to a huge number of
In the Lower Hadean, differentiation processes of the asteroid impacts until impacts died down after roughly 3.8
mostly liquid melt of the protoEarth started. Heavy chem billion years. The atmosphere remained anoxic and reduc
ical elements, especially iron and nickel, sank to form the ing environmental conditions prevailed. Early life probably
Earth’s core. Lighter elements, including silicon and oxy already existed in the Eoarchean, continuing to develop dur
gen, formed the Earth's mantle. In the early Hadean, Earth’s ing the Paleoarchean. The oldest stromatolites date back to
mantle started to solidify, launching the process of plate tec the Mesoarchean. A widespread glaciation of the Earth oc
tonics. Initially, the crust was exclusively oceanic, forming its curred roughly 2.9 billion years ago (the Pongola glaciation).
first continental blocks near the end of the Hadean. In the Neoarchean, the continental crust reached a thick
In the Archean, Earth possessed a crust. This was initial ness allowing for the formation of higher mountains for the
ly oceanic and was, like today's oceanic crust, subducted at first time. The end of the Archean eon is characterized by the
plate boundaries again and again. During the Archean the evolution of oxygen (the Great Oxidation Event) due to the
increasing prevalence of photosynthesis.
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 33
Neoarchean
A
Mesoarchean
R
C
H
A
N
Paleoarchean
Hadean
34 Earth's history
2.2.1.1
hydrothermal: relating to the action of heated water in the monomers: (Grk.: monos = single, meros = part) individual
Earth’s crust (under pressure to temperatures above 100 °C) molecules which can bind together to make polymers (macro
molecular bonds)
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 35
cooling coil
36 Earth's history
2.2.1.2
catalysis: (Grk.: katalysis = dissolution) bringing about, acceler splicing:
ating or decelerating a chemical reaction using a catalyst during transcription
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 37
O
O O
- P O
O - P
O O
O
H2C O
H2C O
O
O
cytosine CH2
O O cytosine guanine
- P OH O
O - P
O O
O
H2C O
H2C O
adenine O
O adenine thymine CH2
O OH O
- P O
O - P
O O
O
H2C O
H2C O
uracil O
thymine adenine CH2
O OH
O OH
O
- P H
O
O
H2C O
guanine
OH OH
38 Earth's history
2.2.1.3
Life evolved roughly 4.2–3.8 billion years ago. The first of substances. NADH provides electrons as reducing equiv
cells were heterotrophic, taking up organic material by diffu alents. On the one hand, the electrons are used to reduce
sion processes through still simpleconstructed membranes. various molecules; on the other hand a proton gradient is
During glycolysis monosaccharides such as glucose are de built up across a membrane by both, the electron transport of
graded to pyruvate. This oxygenindependent pathway could photosynthesis and respiration. This proton gradient is used
even take place under the anoxic conditions of the Archean. by ATPase to synthesize ATP from ADP and phosphate.
First the glucose is converted to fructose1.6bisphosphate Both ATP and NADH are composed of simple compounds
by the consumption of two ATP. During further degradation (ribose, phosphate residues, organic bases), which probably
to pyruvate, the socalled amortization phase, four ATP and already being formed by abiogenic processes early in Earth's
two NADH are formed. Since NADH is usually present only history.
in low concentrations in cells, the reduced NADH must be Phylogenetic analyses of organisms from all three do
reoxidized to NAD. Under the anoxic conditions during the mains (Eukarya, Bacteria, Archaea) suggest that roughly 2.8
Archean the electrons were transferred to organic molecules. billion years ago, 27 % all major modern gene families (genes
These socalled fermentation pathways are distinguished ac which code for structurally similar proteins) had been creat
cording to the target molecule and product. ed. This mainly includes genes for electron transport, respi
The most important molecules of energy metabolism are ration and coenzyme metabolism, while genes for metabolic
adenosine triphosphate (ATP) and nicotinamide dinucleo pathways using redoxsensitive metals or oxygen arose later.
tide (NADH). ATP provides chemically bound energy ready This early evolution of gene families is known as 'archaic
for the basic energy consuming processes of all living beings, genetic expansion'.
such as the synthesis of organic molecules or active transport
domain: reduction: gain of electrons or a decrease in oxidation state by
a molecular, atom, or ion
oxidation: the loss of electrons siderite: (Grk.: sideros = iron) mineral composed of iron car
redox reaction: reductionoxidationreaction; chemical reac bonate (FeCO3)
tion in which electrons are transferred between species
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 39
NH 2 NH 2
C C
N N
N C N C
CH CH
HC C HC C N O O
N O O O H2O N
N
H2C O P O P O P O‐ H2C O P O P O‐
O O O
O‐ O‐ O‐ O‐ O‐
HC HC HC HC
H H HO P O ‐ + H+ H H
C C C C
O‐
OH OH OH OH
Adenosine triphosphate (ATP) Adenosine diphosphate (ADP)
+
NH 2 NH 2
O C CH H+ 2 e‐ CH2
O C
C CH C CH
O‐ O‐
HC + CH HC CH
N H2C O P O N H2C O P O
O O
HC HC HC HC
H H H H
C C C C
NH 2 NH 2
HO HO O HO HO O
C C
N C N N C N
CH CH
HC C N HC C N
N N
H2C O P O H2C O P O
O O
O‐ O‐
HC HC HC HC
H H H H
C C C C
OH OH OH OH
Glycolysis
2 ATP
2 ADP
2 NAD+
2 NADH/H+
4 ADP
2 H2O 4 ATP
2 CO2
40 Earth's history
2.2.1.4
convection: PQCycle:
to differences in density none (PQ)
molecular oxygen: molecule consisting of two oxygen atoms
(O2)
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 41
–1.25
P700*
–1.0
P680*
–0.75
–0.5
–0.25
+0.25
+0.5
PS I
+0.75
e-
+1.0
PS II
–1.25 P840*
–1.0
P870*
–0.75
–0.5
–0.25
+0.5
+0.75
+1.0
42 Earth's history
2.2.1.5
abiotic: (Grk.: a = not, bios = life) not living lent corresponds to one mole of electrons (due to the transfer of
C5sugar:
photooxidation: oxidation caused by the action of light
protocyanobacteria: extinct ancestors of current cyanobacteria thylakoids: (Grk.: thylakoeides = sacklike) systems of mem
reducing equivalent: branes in chloroplasts
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 43
4 e-
i
i.e.
i
Pi
H
H i
H
e- H
44 Earth's history
2.2.2
The Proterozoic eon
The Proterozoic eon extends from the Archaean (2.5 bil The eukaryotes developed throughout the Proterozoic
lion years ago) until the start of the Phanerozoic eon (541 so that almost all known major groups existed by the eon’s
million years ago). The start of the Proterozoic is geochron end. However, the fossil record from this time period only
ologically fixed, whereas its end, and beginning of the Phan improved near the end of the Proterozoic, with the develop
erozoic respectively, is stratigraphically defined by the first ment of multicellular life forms and, in particular, with the
appearance of the index fossil Trichophycus pedum. appearance of hard skeletal elements in many organismal
During the Proterozoic the atmosphere contained oxygen, groups.
which changed the climate and erosion patterns in terrestrial
environments.
Atmospheric oxygen concentrations began to rise in the a number of narrow mountain belts in the Upper Ectasian
Upper Neoarchean and the Lower Paleoproterozoic. Simul and Stenian.
taneously, atmospheric carbon dioxide and methane levels Multicellular eukaryotes appeared for the first time dur
decreased. This reduction in greenhouse gases led to a long ing the Neoproterozoic. Most major continental masses were
and severe period of global cooling, known as the Huroni unified at the beginning of the Neoproterozoic era, forming
an glaciation, which extended throughout the Siderian and the super continent Rodinia. However, this super continent
Rhyacian periods. The Orosirian period, which followed, began to break apart into smaller continents in the Upper To
was characterized by increased orogeny, whereas the subse nian and during the subsequent Cryogenian. The planet was
quent Statherian period featured the stabilization of cratons. covered by huge glaciers as a result of extensive glaciations.
Many of those central continental areas suffered no tectonic Contrary to earlier theories (known as 'Snowball Earth'), at
deformation since that time. least the planet’s equatorial areas remained icefree. The eu
The super continent Rodinia emerged during the Meso karyotes subsequently spread and radiated during the warm
proterozoic. At the same time, the eukaryotes emerged. Dur er phases of the Cryogenian and throughout the Ediacaran
ing the Calymmian and Ectasian periods, extensive sediment period. This phase was characterized by the radiation of ma
basins formed around the cratons, subsequently forming jor eukaryotic groups.
the super continent Rodinia accompanied by the uplift of
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 45
541 Ma
635 Ma
Neoproterozoic
850 Ma
Tonian
1,000 Ma
1,200 Ma
P
R
O Mesoproterozoic
T
1,400 Ma
R
O
Z
O
I 1,600 Ma
1,800 Ma
Paleoproterozoic 2,050 Ma
2,300 Ma
2,500 Ma
46 Earth's history
2.2.2.1
Biogenic and geochemical feedback loops
abiotic: (Grk.: a = not, bios = life) not living biotic: (Grk.: bios = life) living
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 47
Respiratory chain
Feedback with geochemical processes (below):
48 Earth's history
2.2.2.2
In the Upper Archaean, roughly 2.8 billion years ago, the billion years. Iron compounds became more easily oxidized
formation of continental crust increased. As a result, shal within terrestrial environments and subsequently deposited
low marine continental shelf areas were formed at conti as red sediments. These circumstances lessened further the
nental margins and ocean convection started. There was an formation of banded iron ores. Meanwhile, the freely availa
increase of nutrients supply within nearsurface water layers, ble oxygen also increasingly oxidized atmospheric methane.
eventually leading, together with larger habitat availability to Methane decreased in concentration and thus weakened
the spread of stromatolites. At the same time, photosynthetic the greenhouse effect, leading to widespread glaciation (the
production became more significant, as did the availability Huronian or Makganyene glaciation) extending at least into
of free oxygen. the subtropics. This widespread spread of ice reduced the
In the beginning, the atmosphere remained free of oxygen. dispersal of stromatolites. At the same time, oxygen and
Iron compounds released through weathering processes were methane concentrations in the atmosphere levelled off. The
washed into the oceans in their reduced forms and were sub trigger point for the end of the Huronian glaciation remains
sequently precipitated by chemolithoautotrophic bacteria. unclear, though reinforced volcanism is considered to be a
This process resulted in banded iron ores. Later, atmospheric possible cause.
oxygen concentrations rose to around 0.2 % by around 2.3
red sediment: sediment which is coloured red due to the pres Precambrian ice ages, but it remains a moot point whether the
ence of Fe(III) minerals
Snowball Earth: term given to the hypothesis that the Earth’s stromatoliths: (Grk.: stroma = blanket, lithos = stone) biogen
ic sedimentary rock formed by the trapping and binding of sedi
covered in ice; the term is used in discussions relating to several mentary particles or the accumulation of salts resulting from the
growth of microorganisms
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 49
50 Earth's history
2.2.2.3
Atmospheric oxygen produced by the onset of photosyn dases which decomposed free oxygen and oxygen radicals.
thesis directly impacted the global climate and therefore the The remaining, broadly dispersed, anoxic habitats allowed
further evolution of life on Earth. Moreover, oxygen had a for the survival of some organisms lacking such detoxifica
direct impact on organisms: tion mechanisms.
Oxygen and oxygen radicals in particular are toxic to Photosynthetic processes were also influenced by rising
cells, for a wide variety of organic molecules reacting with oxygen concentrations in the atmosphere. The enzyme rib
oxygen. Exposed cell structures, such as the outer cell mem ulose1.5bisphosphate carboxylase/oxygenase (RubisCO)
brane, became exposed to increasing levels of atmospheric can use both, carbon dioxide and oxygen as a substrate. The
oxygen. Fatty acids, especially unsaturated fatty acids, react incorporation of oxygen, thus, leads to the formation of
ed with free oxygen radicals forming aldehydes. The radi phosphoglycolate, which cannot be used in the Calvin Cycle
cals formed within these reactions provoked the onset of a and must be converted by other metabolic pathways. This in
chain reaction to further destruction of organic molecules. corporation of oxygen, known as photorespiration, became
The emergence of free atmospheric oxygen therefore likely relevant only later, when atmospheric oxygen concentrations
led to a mass extinction event, since only organisms with the rose significantly. With oxygen levels remaining relatively
appropriate detoxification mechanisms survived the newly low during the Paleoproterozoic, photorespiration played a
oxygenated conditions. Surviving organism possessed oxi minor metabolic role for life on Earth.
The energy problems inherent in effective carbon fixation In streptophyte algae and land plants, glyoxylate is further
by way of RubisCO were solved in a number of ways by the metabolized by peroxisomes and mitochondria, in a process
different organismal groups: that is linked to, among others, the amino acid metabolism.
In cyanobacteria, carbon is actively accumulated within Ultimately, glycerate is formed and after phosphorylation,
carboxysomes. Due to the high resulting intracellular carbon fed back to the Calvin cycle. In other green algae, the Chlo
dioxide concentrations, the oxygenase function of RubisCO rophyta, the metabolic pathways run in a similar manner, but
is largely negligible. Photorespiration is, however, proved in without the involvement of peroxisomes.
cyanobacteria. The resulting phosphoglycolate is turned into Some other groups of algae do not further convert gly
glyoxylate, which is subsequently metabolised by way of a colate, but excrete it. Depending on algal group, however,
number of different metabolic pathways in eukaryotic algae mechanisms to increase concentration of intracellular car
and land plants. bon dioxide are present. This reduces the effect of photores
piration.
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 51
O
H2C O
O
HC O
Lactobacillus plantarum
O
H2C O
i
-
4e
8 H+
Pi
H
52 Earth's history
2.2.2.4
ATP: adenosine triphosphate – transporter of energy within cells pyruvate: anion of pyruvic acid; provides energy for the citric
acid cycle and is the endproduct of glycolysis
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 53
Glykolysis
i.e.
i
Citric acid cycle
i
H
54 Earth's history
2.2.2.5
Eukaryotic cells originated around 1.8 billion years ago. drogenosomes – in all eukaryotic cells, they must have been
They are fundamentally different in their organizational added to the eukaryotic cell architecture either at the origin
structure compared with prokaryotic cells. Firstly, eukar of the eukaryotic cell or shortly thereafter. In some extant
yotes possess an endomembrane system. Their nucleus, anaerobes, mitochondria have been secondarily reduced.
surrounded by a double membrane, is connected to the en Older eukaryotic fossils are usually difficult or impossi
doplasmic reticulum. Some of their organelles are also sur ble to classify. These are collectively known as acritarchs, or
rounded by double membranes, including mitochondria and organic fossils with an uncertain systematic classification.
– in the case of the photosynthetic lineages – also plastids. Some of these ancient fossils possess cell structures typical
In contrast with prokaryotes, eukaryotic cells are capable of of eukaryotes. Geochemical evidence suggests, therefore,
ingesting by way of phagocytosis. that eukaryotes may have emerged earlier than previously
Since mitochondria are monophyletic and are generally thought.
present – with some variations, such as mitosomes or hy
The origin of eukaryotes is unclear. Their genome con the corresponding phagocytosis mechanisms. The develop
tains both genes originating in gramnegative bacteria as well ment and finer details of eukaryotic cell emergence processes
as those stemming from archaea. remain, therefore, disputed.
Furthermore, it remains unclear whether the formation of The intracellular membrane system allows the cells to
the eukaryotic cell and the cell’s mitochondria assimilation compartmentalize metabolic pathways. In this manner, the
were separate or part of the same process. nucleus and nuclear envelope provide separate physical lo
The classical view relates to eukaryotic precursor cells, cations for transcription – the formation of mRNA – and
which, by the uptake of a gramnegative bacterium via en translation – the formation of proteins at the ribosome. This
docytobiosis, developed into a mitochondrion. This theory spatial segregation is necessary in eukaryotes because genes
remains problematic for a number of reasons: Firstly, there contain many noncoding introns; these likely spread across
is no evidence of eukaryotes that had been primary free of the genome when eukaryotic cells took up mitochondria.
mitochondria – these groups, if they ever existed, must all Introns must be cut out, or spliced, before the start of the
be extinct. Secondly, this symbiosisbased theory is unlikely RNA translation process. In eukaryotes, this takes place in
because, as in aerobic mitochondrial respiration free oxygen specific RNAprotein complexes, known as spliceosomes.
radicals are formed – that is just the reactive oxygen species. Since this process takes place relatively slowly, the nuclear
Consequently, the problem of oxygen detoxification would envelope provides the spatial segregation necessary to pre
have been aggravated by taking on a mitochondrion. vent nonspliced raw RNA to be processed at the ribosomes.
An alternative theory proposes that the eukaryotic cell However, it remains unclear to what extent the need to sep
emerged by way of a symbiosis between a facultative anaero arate these processes has contributed to the evolution of the
bic bacterium with an archaeon. The cell organization char nuclear envelope. Since bacteria generally carry little or no
acteristic of eukaryotes would, therefore, have developed introns, the separation of transcription and translation pro
secondarily. This scenario is energetically more plausible, cesses is not necessary.
though at the moment there are no known prokaryotes with
phagocytosis: (Grk. : phagein = to devour, cytos = cell) process spliceosome: structure in eukaryotic cells which acts as a cata
in which eukaryotic cells actively consume particles
reactive oxygen species (ROS): on the one hand free radicals, transcription:
such as the hyperoxide anion, the hydroxyl radical, and the per
oxyl radical, on the other hand stable molecular oxidising agents translation: synthesis of proteins in the cells of living organisms
such as peroxide, ozone and the hypochlorite anion, as well as
unstable oxygen molecules, also known inaccurately as oxygen
radicals
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 55
56 Earth's history
2.2.2.6
Fossil evidence from eukaryotic algae can be traced back ed between the two plastid membranes. Even their pigment
around 1.2 billion years to the Mesoproterozoic. The endo is similar to that of cyanobacteria, composed of chlorophyll
cytobiosis of a cyanobacterium, creating eukaryotic algae a and phycobilisomes.
is likely to have evolved shortly after the emergence of the Since cyanobacteria possess two cell membranes, endo
eukaryotic cell. Likewise, plastids evolved as a result of en cytobiosis by phagocytosis should results in a structure sur
docytobiosis of a cyanobacterium within an eukaryotic cell. rounded by three membranes. The outer membrane should
The plastids of eukaryotic algae, correspondingly, are mor correspond to the feeding vacuole of the eukaryotic host,
phologically similar to cyanobacteria. Among other things, whereas the inner membranes are both bacterial. Primary
they possess circular DNA and 70Stype ribosomes, indicat plastids are, however, only surrounded by two membranes.
ing a bacterial origin. Additionally, molecular phylogenies of It is assumed that the cyanobacterial outer membrane was
plastids demonstrate their relationship to cyanobacteria. reduced.
Glaucocystophyta possess a primordially plastid type. It
features a murein layer, a relic of the bacterial cell wall, locat
All plastids are monophyletic and can be traced back to endocytobioses are known. In two algal groups, the Chlo
a single endocytobiosis event. Plastids then spread across rarachniophyta (Rhizaria) and the Euglenida (Excavata),
different eukaryotic lineages through secondary endocytobi the endocytobiont was a green algae. In the Alveolata, Stra
osis, a process that includes the ingestion of an eukaryotic menopiles, Haptophyta, and Cryptophyta, the plastid can be
alga by an eukaryotic host cell and the subsequent reduc traced back to an endocytobiosis of a red alga. In these cases,
tion of this ingested algae into a secondary plastid. Plastids however, it is not yet clear whether the plastids come from a
which emerged via a secondary endocytobiosis possess more single endocytobiosis event or multiple independent events.
than two plastid membranes. They also sometimes possess Members of the Dinophyta (dinoflagellates) also possess
structures that relate them back to their eukaryotic origins, several different plastid types, which can be traced back to
such as a nucleomorph, the greatly reduced nucleus of the even more complex origins. Some taxa possess plastids that
ingested alga. emerged through an endocytobiosis event with an alga with
Secondary plastids can be observed in many different al secondary plastids; these are known as tertiary plastids. Why
gal groups. These can be traced back to a number of different such complex endocytobioses occur, and why exclusively in
ingested algal species. At least three independent secondary dinoflagellates, remains unknown.
70Sribosome: prokaryotic ribosome with a sedimentation co murein:
phagocytosis: (Grk. : phagein = to devour, cytos = cell) process
to ingest: consume, take in in which eukaryotic cells actively consume particles
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 57
Glaucocystophyta
Phycobilisomes
Cyanobacteria
70S ribosoms
58 Earth's history
2.2.2.7
The 'boring billion' years (1.85–0.85 billion years)
After the extensive glaciation events of the Paleoprotero ciesrich fossil record exists only in the period after the Neo
zoic, the Earth’s climatic and geochemical conditions stabi proterozoic glaciations.
lized. The evolution of life hardly progressed over the follow In this phase, the super continent Rodinia was formed
ing billion years. This time period of environmental stability from all known land masses: Laurentia, Siberia, northern
is therefore known as the 'boring billion'. China formed a continental mass, as well as Australia and
Eukaryotic cells appeared at the beginning of this period, east Antarctica around 1.1 billion years ago. A number of
around 1.8 billion years ago, and the radiation of eukaryotes other cratons, and Baltica, were still separated from these
probably begun shortly after that. In contrast, fossil evidence continental masses by oceans.
of eukaryotes is significantly younger than this: among the Around 900 million years ago, all these known continen
oldest known fossil eukaryotes is a 1.2 billion years old red tal masses were merged into a super continent (Rodinia).
alga Bangiomorpha pubescens. Roughly 850 million years ago, Around 825 million years ago, magmatic activity increased
the number of eukaryotic fossils increased, but the more spe and around 750 million years ago, Rodinia started to break
apart into individual cratons.
Baltica: continental plate covering northern and eastern Europe Huntington/Chuckanut Formation:
craton: continental shield; central region of a continent which
was formed in the early Precambrian and which has suffered no Canada)
tectonic deformation since the Precambrian Era Laurentia:
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 59
Bangiomorpha pubescens
60 Earth's history
2.2.2.8
Simple multicellularity arose independently on multiple rect contact with the external medium, a threedimensional
occasions. The term 'simple multicellularity' refers to the structure and organization for supplying nutrients to cells
formation of filaments, clusters of cells or cell layers, each inside the body is of central importance. The evolution of
stemming from a single progenitor cell. Differentiation into mechanisms that bypass the limitations of diffusion process
somatic and reproductive cells is also common in simple es, can therefore be regarded as a key development.
multicellularity. Further differentiation cannot be found, Oxygen concentration was a major limiting factor in the
and all cells are generally in direct contact with the external development of eukaryotic cells in the Upper Proterozoic.
medium. Though oxygen was present in the atmosphere and the sea,
On the other hand, complex multicellularity only its concentrations (around 1 % of the presentday concen
emerged on six occasions: in the embryophytes, the Meta tration) was low at first. Internal cells were further limited
zoa, the Basidiomycota, the Ascomycota, the Rhodophyta, by low oxygen concentrations caused by the long diffusion
and the Phaeophyceae. Moreover, complex multicellularity pathways into cell clusters and only an indirect supply of ox
is more than just a mere aggregation of cells, with cells op ygen to internal cells. Evolution of multicellularity was thus
erating in intensive contact with each other. Cell communi made possible only by strong increases of oxygen concentra
cation and (generally) tissue differentiation are characteristic tions around 600–700 million years ago.
of complex multicellularity. Since only a few cells are in di
A vital prerequisite for the evolution of complex mul larity possess these channels, though their structure differs
ticellularity was the organization of the eukaryotic cell, in across groups. For example, in metazoans such pores are
particular featuring the cytoskeleton and the possibility of achieved via a protein complex, known as gap junctions.
active transport of signalling molecules within membrane Embryophytes have plasmodesmata, larger channels that are
vesicles (endosomes). The evolution of complex multicellu traversed by extensions of the endoplasmic reticulum; brown
larity started in all cases with the inclusion of genes respon algae have similar designed plasmodesmata. Red algae pos
sible for cell adhesion. sess 'pit connections' locked by proteins, whereas multicellu
Critical steps within evolution of complex multicellulari lar fungi (Basidiomycota and Ascomycota) possess a variety
ty had been molecular channels for cell communication and of complex pores.
the transfer of nutrients and signalling molecules. Exchang With the further development specialized transportation
es of signalling molecules, electrical signals, and nutrients tissue eligible for longdistance transport of nutrients, gases,
require direct celltocell communication via specialized water and metabolites are added.
channels. All organismal groups with complex multicellu
cell adhesion: state of binding between cells mation, and aids cell migration; it aids intracellular transport and
cytoskeleton: movement
which serves to provide shape, mechanical resistance to defor
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 61
62 Earth's history
2.2.2.9
The diversification of green algae and metazoan was syn continent was largely covered by ice, erosion was reduced
chronous with the oxygenation of the oceans and the exten during glaciation and only a few nutrients were released into
sive glaciations. Regardless of the precise extent of glacia the ocean. These nutrientlimited conditions (additionally
tion climatic conditions have had a strong selective influence lightlimited conditions blow the ice cover) are expected to
on the development and diversification of eukaryotes. have been significant for the evolution of Chlorophyta, es
In the green algae, different metabolic pathways are found pecially for the energy preserving modification of photores
with regard to photorespiration. The Chlorophyta have a mi piration.
tochondrial glycolate dehydrogenase, and use the resulting Streptophytic algae (including the precursor of land
NADH in the respiratory chain. In contrast, the Strepto plants) lived in fresh water – in icefree waters in equatorial
phyta transform via a catalase glycolate in the peroxisomes areas and in the periodically thawing freshwater ponds on
releasing hydrogen peroxide at the same time. In this case or at the edge of the glacier ice. The limnic habitats near the
there is no formation of NADH. This difference matches the equator had been neither light nor nutrientlimited. Metabol
different habitats of Streptophyta and Chlorophyta. ic fluxes within photorespiration of these organisms could
In the green algae Chlorophyta were adapted to marine therefore be optimized.
conditions and lived in the open areas of the oceans. As the
hotspot: limited, stationary geographical location with anoma dark, rockforming minerals which are rich in magnesium
lously hot areas in the asthenosphere due to mantle plumes and iron (Lat.: ferrum)
hotspot volcanism: particularly active volcanism at hotspots,
also at great distances from the edges of tectonic plates
See also:
The Precambrian eon: the Archaean eon 63
630 Ma
720 Ma
750 Ma
900 Ma
64 Earth‘s history
2.3
The Phanerozoic eon
The Phanerozoic eon is usually divided into the Palaeo ary (PTB). Although the first reptiles appeared as early as
zoic, Mesozoic, and Cenozoic eras. The largest Phanerozoic in the Palaeozoic, these were ecologically relatively insig
mass extinction event tags the Permian–Triassic boundary, nificant compared to fish and amphibians until the Upper
which also serves as the boundary between the Palaeozoic Permian. Reptiles, and dinosaurs in particular, subsequently
and Mesozoic eras (252 million years ago). Another nota dominated terrestrial habitats following the PermianTriassic
ble mass extinction event tags the Cretaceous–Palaeogene mass extinction event. At the same time, mussels replaced
boundary, also the boundary between the Mesozoic and Ce brachiopods as the dominant filterfeeders in marine benthic
nozoic eras (66 million years ago). These eras roughly align habitats. Trilobites disappeared completely, along with 96 %
with evolution steps of vertebrates: the Palaeozoic was dom of marine animal species.
inated by fish and amphibians, the Mesozoic by reptiles, and Many dominant groups also disappeared, and over 75 %
the Cenozoic by birds and mammals. The evolution of land of species are thought to have been affected, by the mass ex
plants, on the other hand, is temporal shifted, especially in tinction event at the CretaceousPalaeogene boundary. Am
view of the colonisation of terrestrial habitats and the sub monites in the oceans and most vertebrates in terrestrial hab
sequent domination of ferns (Palaeophytic), gymnosperms itats went extinct, only some smaller species survived. Birds
(Mesophytic), and the angiosperms (Cenophytic). were the only surviving dinosaurs. Overall, species depend
Many dominant floral and faunal groups disappeared ei ent on primary producers, those feeding on terrestrial plants
ther completely or were replaced by other groups during the or algae, were more strongly affected, whereas detritivorous
mass extinction event at the at the PermianTriassic bound organisms were more resilient.
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: an overview 65
Cenozoic
Mammuthus Carpinus grandis
Mesozoic
Tyrannosaurus rex Zamites feneonis
Palaeozoic
Cleithrolepis extoni Asterophyllites
66 Earth‘s history
2.3.1
The Phanerozoic eon: an overview
Species have become extinct at any time since the ori ‘Big Five’. Presentday species extinction is often referred to
gin of life. Individual species usually survive between a few as the sixth mass extinction event. On the other hand, Pre
thousand and several million years. However, this requires cambrian mass extinction events are usually not taken into
a ‘natural’ extinction rate of a few percent of total species account, as they are difficult to prove based on fossil records
per million years. A mass extinction event occurs when the and are often indirectly detected based on changes of geo
number of species decreases disproportionately within a chemical conditions.
short geological period of time. Such occurrences can often The ‘Big Five’ mass extinction events occurred during the
be attributed to a mass extinction of species. In contrast, the Upper Ordovician, the Upper Devonian, at the PermianTri
Devonian and Triassic mass extinction events were mainly assic boundary, the Upper Triassic, and the CretaceousPal
driven by decreased rates of speciation. aeogene boundary. Of these, the largest mass extinction in
In most cases, mass extinctions can be attributed to a spe Earth’s history occurred at the PermianTriassic boundary:
cific cause or combination of causes. Mass extinction events over 50 % of families and 80–96 % of species became extinct.
are global and affect a wide range of ecosystems, usually en It is possible that other extinction events, at the boundary
compassing aquatic and terrestrial habitats. between the Proterozoic and Phanerozoic, i.e. in the Upper
Although Earth’s history has been characterised by many Ediacaran and Lower Cambrian, were of comparable impor
extinction events, the five most widespread are known as the tance.
chemical weathering: processes leading to the chemical alter
ation or dissolution of minerals large expanses of land with basalt lava
See also:
67 The Phanerozoic eon: an overview 67
66 Ma
%
68 Earth‘s history
2.3.1.1
During the Silurian, the continents Baltica and Laurentia Upper Cretaceous, the Adriatic microplate, which segregat
drifted towards each other and collided, forming the super ed from the African plate, collided with the Eurasian plate,
continent Laurussia (= OldRedKontinent). The Caledoni setting off the Alpine orogeny which continued into the Pal
an mountains were formed as a result of the collision. Con aeogene. Also during the Palaeogene, the Indian and Eura
tinental collisions, and thus orogeny, ended during the De sian plates collided, forming the Himalayas. A land bridge
vonian. The Caledonian mountains forms the hull mountain between the North American and South American plates
ridges of Scandinavia, the British Isles, and parts of the Ap was formed during the Neogene, facilitating the exchange of
palachian Mountains of North America. The Rheic Ocean, flora and fauna between the two American continents.
which lay in between Laurussia and Gondwana, reached its The Cambrian and Lower Ordovician climate was very
greatest extent during the Silurian. warm before the planet cooled sharply, by around 5 °C, dur
In the Upper Devonian, the collision of the north conti ing the Upper Ordovician. This sudden temperature shift
nent Laurussia with the south continent Gondwana started, led to a glaciation of parts of Gondwana. Traces of this gla
causing the Variscan Orogeny which formed the Central Eu ciation event can still be detected in the Sahara (hence, the
ropean, eastern North American, and Central Asian moun Saharan glaciation). The climate warmed again during the
tain ranges. Silurian and Devonian, before cooling yet again – by around
During the Permian, the continent Siberia collided with 8 °C – during the Carboniferous, leading to the PermoCar
the two other major continents, uniting all major continen boniferous glaciation which lasted until the Lower Permian.
tal masses within the super continent Pangaea. The Tethys The Permian was also characterised, as a result of the large
Ocean opened up as a large bay to the continent’s east. Sev continental land masses, by a relatively dry and increasingly
eral rift systems began to form in the Upper Triassic, which warming climate. The Triassic, was characterised by a large
eventually led to the presentday continental configuration ly hot and dry climate and, consequently, by large desert are
through the break apart of Pangea during the Jurassic. This as. The Jurassic and Cretaceous climates were also generally
development occurred firstly with the separation of North warm, with the increasing continental fragmentation leading
America from Eurasia, leaving behind the southern conti to a more stable and humid climate. The climate began to
nents unified as the Gondwana super continent. The south cool again in the Upper Cretaceous, a trend which continued
ern continents finally drifted apart during the Cretaceous: into the Palaeogene, leading to further extensive glaciation
the South American plate separated from the African, and events in the Neogene.
the Indian plate began to drift towards the north. During the
The colonisation of terrestrial environments by land ly, high oxygen concentrations required only relatively less
plants probably supported the global cooling of the Upper effective respiratory organs, many animals were adapted to
Ordovician. On the one hand, land plants fixed carbon di high oxygen concentrations. Those less efficient respiratory
oxide, but their presence increased chemical weathering and organs caused problems and contributed to the Upper Per
thus the release of calcium and magnesium into the oceans. mian mass extinction event, when atmospheric oxygen levels
The resulting precipitation of carbonates drastically reduced began to decrease yet again.
atmospheric carbon dioxide concentrations. The development of land plants was also responsible for
At the same time, the emergence and development of the third major Neogene and Quaternary glaciation event. As
plant life was vital in driving climatic changes during the the Indian and Eurasian plates collided, the Himalayas were
Carboniferous. Treelike ferns and club mosses spread wide created, at the same time increasing the release of calcium
ly during the Devonian and Carboniferous along humid cos and magnesium from weathering products into the oceans.
tal lines and flood plains, forming extensive swamp forests. This process increased the ocean precipitation of carbonates,
Since the decomposing food chains were initially poorly withdrawing carbon dioxide from the atmosphere: carbon
developed, plant biomass was for the most part not con dioxide reacts with water to form carbonic acid and, subse
sumed and, instead, was deposited, eventually turning into quently, by way of equilibrium reactions turns into hydrogen
coal. Therefore, large amounts of carbon dioxide were with carbonate and carbonate. At the same time, C4 and CAM
drawn from the atmosphere, but on the other hand, oxygen photosynthesis became increasingly important. Carbonate
was strongly enriched. During the Carboniferous, oxygen precipitation and more efficient photosynthetic pathways led
concentrations reached over 30 %. The high oxygen concen to a sharp decline in atmospheric carbon dioxide concentra
tration was a prerequisite for gigantism in insects. Basical tions during the Palaeogene.
simple salts in carbonic acids contain weathering: the breaking down of rocks in mechanical or
ing the HCO3– anion chemical processes
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: an overview 69
66 Ma
S
70 Earth‘s history
2.3.1.2
Due to the exceptionally well preservation of fossils in The exceptional preservation of such deposits can be
KonservatLagerstätten, fossils offer deeper insights into the or attributed to a number of different factors. In stagnation
ganisation and behaviour of organisms, as pure hardshelled Lagerstätten, fossils are exposed to hostile environments, in
fossils would provide. Such deposits are therefore vital for cluding anoxic and sulfidic conditions (such as oil or black
palaeoecological reconstructions and for the better under shales). An example of this type of deposit is the Messel pit,
standing of the anatomy of extinct organismal groups. Germany. High salt concentrations, such as those present
A particularly important discovery from a KonservatLa during the formation of the Solnhofen Plattenkalk (or Sol
gerstätten is the discovery of a conodont animal in Carbonif nhofen limestone), have a preservative effect. Another type
erous oil shales near Edinburgh. By this discovery conodonts of KonservatLagerstätten are the Obrution Lagerstätten, where
were recognised as toothlike elements of basal chordates. groundlevel fauna is suddenly buried by finegrained sedi
Another example relates to the discovery of Ediacaran ment before decay or decomposition can take place.
fauna, which demonstrates that metazoans radiated well The Burgess Shale or Bundenbacher Schiefer are exam
before previous, hardshelled fossil evidence from the lower ples of such deposits. A third type of KonservatLagerstätten
Cambrian. are conservationtraps, where organisms are rapidly embed
ded, as in moors or asphalt and bitumen lakes.
Lagerstätte: (German: Lager = storage; Stätte = place) is a sed Fossillagerstätte whereas Lagerstätte in German refers to differ
imentary deposit that exhibits extraordinary fossils with excep ent kinds of deposits including ore deposits
tional preservation. In German the corresponding term would be oil shale: sedimentary rock rich in liquid or gaseous hydrocar
bons
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: an overview 71
The Messel Pit
66 Ma
Archaeopteryx
The Rhynie Chert
Rhynia Horneophyton
The
The
Dickinsonia
72 Earth‘s history
2.3.1.3
Fossils represent the geological evidence for past life on Some environments may be more conducive to the preser
Earth. These can be in the form of fossilised bodies, tracks, vation of soft tissues than are others. These habitats include
burrows, or excrements. Most often, though not always, fos bitumen, bogs, or salt. However, these same environments
sils are mineralised (petrified). are not always the best for permanent fossilisation: salt, for
Fossilisation, or the formation of fossils, takes place on example, will eventually dissolve embedded organisms and,
a geological period of time, beginning with the death of an similarly, bodies buried in bogs will only be preserved if the
organism in an environment in which the carcass is not de bog dries out or the fossil is reburied.
stroyed by microbial degradation and scavengers. A rapid embedding, which cuts off the carcass from at
Soft tissues decay relatively quickly. As a result, these are mospheric oxygen and the access of scavengers, is an essen
less abundant within the fossil record compared with hard tial prerequisite for fossilisation. Surrounding rocks solidify
tissues as bones or shells. The quite abrupt start of a good throughout the process of diagenesis and, subsequently, due
fossil record in the Ediacaran to Lower Cambrian is attrib to increased pressure, drain and compact the carcass to form
uted to the emergence of shells and skeletal elements on a fossils. Exchange processes in the soil solution lead to leach
number of different animal groups, and represented a piv ing; finally, the fossil gets the same crystalline structure as
otal time point in the creation of the fossil record of Earth’s the environment.
history. This almost simultaneous appearance of hard parts If the fossilcontaining rock is exposed to too high pres
across so many taxa was most likely ecologically caused by sures or temperatures, the fossils will finally be destroyed.
increased predation by multicellular eukaryotes. Metamorphic rocks, therefore, contain no fossils.
(Lat.: bitumen = earth pitch) organic mixture formed compaction: the process in which increased stress levels cause
from petroleum sediment to densify and consolidate
formation of organic fossil materials releasing diagenesis:
2
and hydrocarbons and leaving almost only pure car physical or biological change at relatively low temperatures
bon leaching:
seeping into the ground from the upper soil horizon
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: an overview 73
74 Earth‘s history
2.3.1.4
metamorphism caused when rocks are metamorphic rock: rock formed by being subjected to high
buried at great depth in the ground pressure or temperatures without losing its solid form
contact metamorphism: metamorphism caused by tempera type locality:
ture increases due to hot magma
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: an overview 75
66 Ma
Isarcicella
isarcica
Isarcicella
staeschei
Hindeodus
parvus
Neogondolella
taylorae
Hindeodus
changxingensis
Neogondolella
maishanensis
Neogondolella
yini
76 Earth‘s history
2.3.1.5
Phanerozoic systems
The onset of the Phanerozoic systems is defined in terms however, linked to the defining of systems. Newer (accurate)
of type localities. These type localities are known as GSSP dating of these rock layers can therefore lead to slight shifts
(Global Stratotype Section and Point ). The beginning of in the age dating. The systems derive their names from the
each system correlates with the occurrence or disappearance geographical regions in which they are present at the surface;
of certain index fossils, used to define the system bounda for example, the Cambrian is named after Cambria (Wales),
ries. The age of typelocalities is geochronologically quite ac or the Devonian from Devonshire, UK.
curately dated, though these geochronological data are not,
See also:
77 The Phanerozoic eon: an overview 77
Paragloborotalia kugleri
66 Ma
Hindeodus parvus
Beriasella jacobi
Psiloceras spelae
Streptognathodus isolatus
Hindeodus parvus
Streptognathodus isolatus
Siphonodella sulcata
Siphonodella sulcata
Monograptus uniformis
Akidograptus ascensus
Trichophycus pedum Trichophycus pedum
78 Earth‘s history
2.3.2
Fossil biodiversity
Different palaeontological analyses focus on different ecologically differing habitats. A worldwide distribution of
properties in target organisms. This will be illustrated taking target organisms would thus enable researchers to synchro
stratigraphy and palaeoecology as examples: stratigraphy nise rock formations in various regions of the world. Any
aims to understand relative temporal classification whereas spread of organisms into various habitats facilitates synchro
the goal of palaeoecology is to reconstruct habitats and eco nisation of different biospheres. As a result, planktic species,
logical conditions. which are usually widespread (or even drift after having died)
Organisms with narrow ecological niches and a low ten and can be detected in a variety of habitats and geographi
dency for dispersal are most suitable for palaeoecological cal regions, are particularly suitable for chronostratigraphic
analyses, since these organisms provide the basis for conclu analyses.
sions of specific habitat characteristics. To that end, species Index fossils are fossils that allow for a stratigraphic clas
that are stationary (sessile), or even buried in sediment, such sification of rock formations. Therefore, they should have
as mussels, are particularly appropriate study subjects. The lived in a geologically short period of time only to allow the
morphology of these organisms allows researchers to better closest possible chronostratigraphic classification. At the
understand their way of life. Furthermore, due to their en same time, these species need to have existed in high frequen
dobenthic lifestyle, such organisms are usually found only in cies in order to ensure their identification within respective
their former habitats. strata. Index fossils are therefore often small organisms, no
On the other hand, chronostratigraphic analyses are bet tably conodonts, graptolites, and foraminifers.
ter based on fossils that are geographically widespread across
drifting: passive distribution of organisms in their different niche: (Lat.: nidus = nest) totality of abiotic and biotic factors
morphological phases which are necessary for a species to survive and reproduce
endobenthic: living in the sediment suture: (Lat.: sutura = sew together) seam; the lobe line in ceph
alopods
See also:
79
Trilobites
Graptolites
Corals
Brachiopods
Ammonoids
Foraminifers Foraminifers
Belemnoids
Crinoids
Echinoids
Bivalves
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity
Gastropods
79
80 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.1
Foraminifers
Foraminiferan fossils are known since the Cambrian, of cellular plasma emerge. Most of the tests are usually made
though the group likely evolved far earlier than that. At of calcium carbonate, usually calcite, but sometimes arago
present, around 10,000 recent and 40,000 fossil species are nite. In agglutinating foraminifers, the casing is composed of
known. The calcareous skeletons of foraminifers are often small pieces of sediment that are glued together by proteins.
well preserved and serve as important index fossils, especial In the Allogromiida, the casings are purely made of proteins
ly of the Cretaceous period and Cenozoic era. or they are missing; as a result, this group plays no role in the
Foraminifers are singlecelled organisms, usually some fossil record.
100 μm in size, but larger specimens may be several centime Foraminifers are predominantly marine, only a few spe
tres in size. Foraminifers are characterised by a multicham cies occur in freshwater. Most species are benthic, with the
bered skeleton, featuring perforations from which fine strands exception of the planktic Globigerinida.
agglutinated: consisting of clumps of particles coiled:
aggregation: (Lat.: aggregatio = accumulation) accumulation, hyaline: with a glassy or translucent appearance
clustering Tethys: ocean that existed between Laurasia and Gondwana be
tween the Permian and the Tertiary
See also:
Endothyracea
.
Fuslinacea
Lituolacea
Textularia
Orbitolinacea
Miliolacea
Alveolinidae
Miliona
Nodosariidae (Lagenida)
Discorbidae
Rotaliidae
. Lagena
Rotaliida
Rosalina
Globigerinoides
.
Globotrunaca .
Orbitoididae
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity
Globigerinida
81
82 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.2
Reefbuilders
Reefs are complex threedimensional structures arising after the extinction of the Archaeocyathids. During the Or
from the growth and aggregation of calcifying organisms. dovician, the diversity of reefbuilding organisms increased
There are a number of main types of reef, including, shallow yet again until the Upper Ordovician mass extinction. In the
marine reefs made of hypercalcified organisms (i.e. animals Silurian and Devonian tabulate corals and stromatoporids
with a high skeletonbiomass ratio), deep and cold water played a significant role. After the Upper Devonian mass
reefs, as well as microbial reefs, where animals occur only extinction the reef community changed radically. Microor
sporadically. ganisms, rugose corals, bryozoans, and chaetetide sponges
Speciation rates in reefs tend to be higher than in other dominated the reefs until the Upper Palaeozoic.
benthic communities. Similarly, reef species richness is also During the Upper Permian, calcified sponges became in
relatively high compared to other marine habitats. creasingly important reefbuilders, followed by scleractinian
The first reefs were microbial, made primarily of cyano corals in the Upper Triassic. During the Cretaceous the im
bacteria and other bacteria. During the Proterozoic, these portance of scleractinian corals was replaced by bivalvian
reefs became increasingly complex, due to the absence of Hippuritoida (rudists). After the extinction of the rudists,
predators. Metazoan species became important reefbuilders scleractinian corals became again important during the Ce
during the Phanerozoic: Archaeocyathids were important nozoic. Additionally, the proportion of calcified red algae
within the Cambrian reef communities, but microorganisms found in reefs increased.
once again came to dominate reefs in the Upper Cambrian
aggregation: (Lat.: aggregatio = accumulation) accumulation, Scleractinia: stony corals; they dominate modern coral reefs;
clustering septa are present in all six sectors, therefore displaying radial
Rugosa: ‘wrinkled’ coral; Palaeozoic coral taxon with additional symmetry
septa in only four of the six sectors, therefore displaying bilateral solitary: living alone
symmetry Tabulata: Paleozoic group of corals; they always possess six
septa (therefore displaying radial symmetry) but they are often
incomplete
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity 83
Pharetronida
Sphinctozoa
Chaetetes
Rugosa
Stromatoporoidea
Tabulata
Archaeocyatha
Stromatoporoida (Vermutlich
Demospongia kalkig-Strukturen )
##
84 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.3
Cephalopods
Cephalopoda (cephalopods) are thought to have existed Argonauta spp. (Nautiloidea, paper nautiluses). The casing of
since the Upper Cambrian. 1,000 extant and over 30,000 nautiloids is either elongated (orthocon), bent (cyrtocon), or
extinct fossil species are known. Cephalopods can be fur coiled.
ther broken down into the Nautiloidea, Ammonoidea, and The ammonoids still had an outer casing, which was
Coleoidea, though precise phylogenetic relationships between generally coiled. In the Coleoidea, the casing was displaced
the lineages remains unclear. Cephalopods are the most im within the body or completely reduced. The seams between
portant group of macroscopic index fossils, particularly for the casing and the chamber septa are known as sutures or su
the timespan between the Devonian and Cretaceous periods. ture lines. In the nautiloids, these are either straight or slight
The Nautiloidea were most diverse from the Ordovician to ly curved, whereas in the ammonoids they are increasingly
the Devonian, the Ammonoidea from the Carboniferous to complex folded.
the Cretaceous, and the Coleoidea during the Neogene. Cephalopods are an exclusively marine and widely dis
The primaeval cephalopods had an external casing. Ex tributed group.
ternal casings are also found in members of the extant genus
lobe: suture: (Lat.: sutura = sew together) seam; the lobe line in ceph
lobe lines: suture lines between the shell and the chambers in alopods
the phragmocone (septa) in fossil Ammonoidea and nautiloids
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity 85
Sepiida
Octopoda
Teuthida
Clymeniida
Discosorida
Ammonoidea Coleoidea
Ammonoidea
86 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.4
The Brachiopoda (brachiopods; Lophotrochozoa) pos were distinctively prevalent during the Devonian. Around
sess an upper and lower valve, with a symmetry axis running 300 species are thought to be alive today.
perpendicular to the valves and thus dividing these into left The brachiopod body is surrounded by a doublelobed
and righthand, symmetrical valves. In contrast, the bivalves mantle that secretes the valve. The eponymous arm appara
(mussels; Mollusca) possess left and righthand valves, with tus (lophophore) is located inside the animal. Brachiopods
a symmetrical axis running along the edge of the valve. As are marine sessile filterfeeders.
a result of their similar benthic, filterfeeding lifestyle and Mussels (Bivalvia) have been around since the Cambri
their being made up of two outer valves, these two groups an. Their diversity sharply increased during the Ordovician.
are presented together here, although they are systematically They became a significant component of ecosystems only
different. after the PermianTriassic mass extinction event. Around
Brachiopods have been around since the early Cambri 20,000 fossil and 8,000 extant species of mussels are known.
an, from 530 million years ago until today. Around 30,000 In the Palaeozoic, mussels were predominantly found in
brachiopod species are thought to have existed, all of which coastal habitats but subsequently, especially in the Mesozoic,
are divided into three subphyla (eight classes with 26 orders). they began to dominate offshore shelves, previously occu
The brachiopods were most diverse in the Palaeozoic but pied by brachiopods.
articulated: yolk sac: organ providing nourishment attached to the embryo
planktivorous: planktoneating in various animals
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity 87
Brachiopoda
Bivalvia
Cyrtospirifer verneuili
88 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.5
Trilobites
Arthropods are the most speciesrich metazoan group. To for classification purposes as well as for understanding tri
that end, trilobites, in particular, are important index fossils lobite functional morphology. Their exoskeleton is divided
for the Palaeozoic era. into three lobes along the longitudinal axis of the body: the
Trilobites are an extinct group of marine arthropods, axial lobe flanked on each side by right and left pleural lobes.
The axial lobe protects the inner organs, whereas the left and
right pleural lobes protect the body’s appendages. Trilobites
million years ago). Their prominence in the fossil record is derive their name from their threelobed body (Grk: trilo
largely due to their calcium carbonate exoskeleton, which bite = three lobed). They are the oldest known animals with
is generally well preserved. Over 15,000 trilobite species are eyes.
known, divided into nine orders. The first appearance of tri Most trilobites lived in benthic environments, with dis
lobites defines the boundary for the start of the second epoch tinct species or taxonomic groups in different habitats.
within the Cambrian. From Series 2, the Cambrian ages are Most known fossils are from shallow marine habitats. More
correlated with the first appearances of various trilobite spe streamlined trilobite body forms are known from the Ordo
cies. Trilobites reached their peak diversity during the Cam vician and these were presumably active swimmers. Most
brian and Ordovician. trilobites are thought to have been predatory or scavengers,
Trilobites display a morphology typical of arthropods, though some derived forms were also filter or sedimentfeed
featuring a cephalon (head), thorax (chest), and pygidium ers. Many lineages displayed pronounced spines, which like
(tail piece). The sutures on the cephalon are important both ly offered protection from predators.
lobe: pygidium: posterior body part in trilobites and other anthro
pleura: lateral part of body segments in trilobites pods; also the unsegmented section of annelids
provincialism: term given to the division of animal communi series: stratigraphic time scale
ties into distinct fauna provinces (roughly equivalent to faunal suture: (Lat.: sutura = sew together) seam; the lobe line in ceph
kingdoms) alopod
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity 89
}
}
}
}
}
} Dolichoharpes . Phillipsia .
Taihungshania
Paradoxides . .
T
Dalmanites limulurus
Reedops cephalotes
Odontopleurida
Phacopida
Lichida
Asaphida
Corynexochida
Trilobita
Ptychopariida
Redlichiida
Boedaspis ensifer
90 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.6
Echinoderms
The Echinodermata (echinoderms) likely emerged in the up of 620 extant and around 4,000 extinct species, whereas
Upper Precambrian, initially radiating during the Cambrian. Eleutherozoa comprise 5,700 extant and 9,000 extinct spe
However, many of the major Cambrian echinoderm groups cies.
went extinct relatively soon thereafter. Modern echinoderm The Echinodermata belong to the bilateral metazoans.
groups evolved from the Eocrinoidea and Edrioasteroidea, Their bilateral larvae develop the pentameral symmetry
which emerged in the Cambrian and began their radiation in (fivefold organisation of skeleton) during the ontogeny.
the Ordovician. Echinoderms comprise Pelmatozoa, which The echinoderms are a predominantly marine and ben
include with the Crinoidea (sea lilies and feather stars) as the thic organismal group. While sea lilies are mainly feeding on
only extant representatives, and the Eleutherozoa, which in plankton, sea urchins are grazers, mainly eating algae and
cludes the Asterozoa (Asteroidea – starfish and Ophiuroidea aufwuchs; the starfish are predators of mussels and other
– brittle stars) and the Echinozoa (Echinoidea – sea urchin benthic animals. Finally, sea cucumbers include both, plank
and Holothuroidea – sea cucumbers). Pelmatozoa are made tivorous and sedimentgrazing taxa.
The Pelmatozoa include the extant Crinoidea as well as a The Crinoidea (Ordovician to present) possess a calyx of
number of extinct groups. Most taxa were sessile and used a either five basal plates (monocyclic) or two rings of five basal
specialised stem to secure themselves at the sea floor. Eocri plates each (dicyclic), followed by numerous radial and bra
noidea (Lower Cambrian to Silurian) were characterised by chial plates (arm plates), featuring either branched or non
cuplike or flattened calyx (theca) fixed to a stem from where branched brachioles.
with two to five food gathering appendages (brachioles). Eo The Eleutherozoa includes both extant groups and the
crinoidea were sessile; a stem securing the organism at the extinct Edrioasteroidea (Ediacaran to Carboniferous), which
sea floor. The Paracrinoidea (Middle Ordovician) were sim had a spherical to saclike calyx and a mouth located cen
ilar to the Eocrinoidea, featuring an irregularly structured trally on its upper side, as well as an anus located laterally
calyx with irregularly shaped plates. between the ambulacral grooves.
The Blastoidea (Ordovician to Permian) possessed a calyx The Asteroidea (starfish; Ordovician to present) are
made of at most 13 interconnected plates: three basal plates freeliving and have a mostly flat central disk with a min
(basalia), five plates located around the mouth (deltoid), and imum of five, but up to 25, arms emerging outwards. The
five radial plates (radialia). In the upper part of the calyx, mouth is located centrally on the body’s underside whereas
a set of folded thecal entrances (hydrospires) was located, the anus sits on the body’s upper surface.
probably acting as respiratory organs. The Blastoidea also The Ophiuroidea (brittle stars; Ordovician to present)
featured many brachioles, attached to two alternating rows have five sharply defined arms, up to 60 cm in length, ema
of plates. nating from the central plate.
The Diploporita (Middle Cambrian to Devonian) had a The Holothuroidea (sea cucumbers; Ordovician to pres
calyx made of numerous irregularly arranged plates with ent) have an elongated, cucumbershaped body and a mouth
pairs of irregularly ordered double pores (diplopores) and at the body’s anterior end, usually surrounded by branched
two rows of nonbranched brachioles. tentacles.
The Rhombifera (Upper Cambrian to Devonian) had a The Echinoidea (sea urchins; Ordovician to present) are
calyx structure similar to the Diploporita but, rather than di almost spherical or discshaped and have a casing made of
plopores, featured a rhombicshaped array of simple pores. interconnected calcite plates.
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity 91
Echinoidea
Asteroidea
Echinoidea
Coe
lopleurus coronalis from
Mellita
Crinoidea
quinquiesperforata
Crinoidea
Agaricocrinus amer
icanus
Comaturella
formosa
92 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.7
Graptolites and Conodonts
Graptolites and conodonts are important index fossils Conodonts’ basal cavity was made of toothlike structures
from the Palaeozoic. Nevertheless, their phylogenetic classi of around 0.1–2 mm in length consisting of layers of skeletal
fication remains unresolved. phosphates and organic substances. These are often the only
Graptolites, rodlike fossils, can be found in the fossil remaining conodont animal body parts found in the fossil
record from the Middle Cambrian to the Upper Carbonif records. From an evolutionary perspective, conodonts are
erous. They are particularly widespread in rocks from the likely convergent with the teeth of vertebrates, resembling
Lower Palaeozoic. Graptolites built tubular skeletons of half each other in shape because of their similar function. Since
tubes, brought together by a zigzagging stitch. Initial, sexu most species occurred for only a relatively short period of
ally formed zooid of colony (sicula) giving rise to additional time, and due to their abundance and mostly pelagic lifestyle,
chambers by budding (theca). they serve as important index fossils from the Palaeozoic and
Graptolites are sometimes considered the fossil body Lower Mesozoic.
housings of hemichordates. The primaeval graptolites were Fossilised conodonts are also used as palaeothermom
benthic, a way of life retained in the Dendroidea whilst the eters, for they change their colour at higher temperatures,
Graptoloidea developed towards a planktic lifestyle. such as those rock experienced during diagenesis and met
Conodonts are fossils from the Cambrian to the Upper amorphism. This property of the conodonts is particularly
Triassic. Around 3,000 conodont species have been identi important for the oil and natural gas exploration industry:
fied, of which the greatest diversity was achieved in the Or since hydrocarbons are unstable at higher temperatures, only
dovician. Conodont animals were likely pelagic predators, rock layers that have not been exposed to such temperatures
reaching a length of only a few centimetres, and are widely may be potential reservoir rocks.
thought to be basal chordates.
Although the Dendroidea (lower Lower Ordovician to droidea. Due to a reduction of the number of arms thecae
Carboniferous) were the primaeval graptolites, their mor differentiated in the Graptoloidea. In addition, the arms of
phology was relatively complex. They rhabdosomes are mul some taxa were positioned above the sicula and featured
tibranched. Three different kinds of thecae make up their outgrowths; resulting in species displaying double rows of
simple stipes: autothecae, bithecae, and stolonothecae. The thecae (Diplograptidae) in the Upper Ordovician. A thecal
rhabdosoma were connected either directly or via an adhe reduction led to the emergence of uniserial morphologies,
sive disc and short stem to the sicula. Some species, such as known as Monograptidae.
the genus Dictyonema, lived hemiplanktic. This genus was Conodonts can morphologically be identified within three
the ancestral lineage which eventually developed a reduction different types: single cone type, platform type, and bar type.
in the number of arms and thecae. The conodonts generally display a concentric lamellar skele
The Graptoloidea (lower Middle Ordovician to mid ton. They lack the pulp cavity of real teeth.
dle Lower Devonian) can be traced back to simple Den
contact metamorphism: metamorphism caused by tempera rhabdosomes: rodlike colonies of graptolites
ture increases due to hot magma rock metamorphism: changes in rocks under high pressure
diagenesis: and temperatures without them melting into liquid magma
physical or biological change at relatively low temperatures
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity 93
Isarcicella staeschei Isarcicella staeschei
Dendroidea Graptoloidea
Monograptus
Conodonts
Diplograptus
Didymograptus murchisoni
Rhabdinopora .
94 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.8
Vertebrates
Vertebrates (Vertebrata; or craniates (Craniata)) possess environments by animals required more efficient anatomi
an internal skeleton and a head, which contains the brain cal supporting structures – bones – as well as adaptations
and main sensory organs. This concentration of brain for osmoregulation and sensory organ developments. Am
and sensory organs within the head in this arrangement is phibians remained highly water dependent, at least for the
unique. In addition, the internal skeleton grows quickly and reproductive portion of their life cycles. As the egg of the
is better suited – compared to an exoskeleton – to support amniotes (Amniota) was better protected against desicca
ing the relatively heavy tissues of large animals. In addition, tion, they were largely waterindependent. The Amniota
damage to the exoskeleton can be repaired only by external emerged in the Lower Carboniferous, with major groups –
tissue (such as in mussels and graptolites) or by moulting (ar the Anapsida, Diapsida, and Synapsida – developing during
thropods). Taken together, these two developments, the in the Carboniferous and Permian. The amniotes eventually be
ternal skeleton and head, were key elements in the evolution came ecologically significant after the PermianTriassic mass
of vertebrates. extinction event.
The first vertebrates are known from the Cambrian. Reptiles dominated the Mesozoic. At the same time, mam
Conodonts were the dominating species during the Cambri mals developed successively during the Mesozoic, emerging
an and Ordovician. In addition, jawless fish (‘agnatha’) were from the primaeval synapsids. The first mammallike ani
also prevalent vertebrates at the time. After the evolution of mals already emerged in the Triassic, almost simultaneously
the jaw, several jawbearing vertebrates (Gnathostomata) with the dinosaurs. The mammals radiated strongly during
emerged during the Devonian: the first armoured prehis the Upper Jurassic and Lower Cretaceous but only became
toric fish (placoderms) during the Devonian, the Actinop dominant after the extinction of dinosaurs. Birds emerged
terygii (rayfinned fish) and the Sarcopterygii, the ancestors over the course of the Cretaceous, radiating more strongly
of tetrapods. Subsequently, the colonisation of terrestrial during the Palaeogene.
Placoderms (Placodermi; armoured prehistoric fish, Up The Anapsida (Upper Carboniferous to present) include a
per Silurian to Upper Devonian) are a group of extinct, fish number of extinct groups. It remains unclear whether turtles
like, jawbearing vertebrates. They were characterised by belong to this group or not.
heavy bony armour on the head and along the torso, made The Diapsida (Upper Carboniferous to present) include
of cosmine. The largest species were approximately 10 m in the Archosauromorpha (Crurotarsi, including the croco
length. diles, pterosaurs, and dinosaurs including birds), Lepido
The Acanthodii (spiny sharks; Silurian to Permian) are sauromorpha (lizards, snakes, Sauropterygia), as well as the
the sister group of bony fish (Osteichthyes), which together Ichthyosauria (ichthyosaurs), and other extinct reptiles.
form the taxon of Teleostomi. The membranous fins of the The Synapsida (Upper Carboniferous to present) include
Acanthodii were supported by a sting at their front edge. the mammals and extinct vertebrate groups, in particular the
The Lepospondyli (Carboniferous to Permian) are an paraphyletic Pelycosauria (pelycosaurs) and the therapsids.
extinct group of amphibianlike, primitive, and morpholog The pelycosaurs were coldblooded, reptilelike vertebrates,
ically very diverse terrestrial vertebrates (Tetrapoda). The exhibiting the first substantial progress of crawling to run
skeleton was only weakly ossified; the eponymous spin ning, from which therapsids emerged. The therapsids were
dleshaped vertebral bodies may have been an adaptation to the dominant amniotes in the Permian and Lower Triassic,
a small body size, and thus a reduction feature. Their exact before the emergence of dinosaurs. Therapsida represent an
systematic relationship to amphibians (Lissamphibia) and intermediate between the reptilelike pelycosaurs and mam
Labyrinthodontia is unclear. mals. Developed therapsids had legs located underneath
The Labyrinthodontia (Upper Devonian to Lower Creta their body and a developed secondary temporomandibular
ceous) are not a natural group but, rather, a taxonomic col joint, where elements from the primary jaw became auditory
lective of species linking the bony fish and terrestrial verte ossicles. Most pelycosaurs and therapsids went extinct at the
brates. As a result, these taxa feature different combinations PermianTriassic boundary, yet extant mammals emerged
of amphibian and reptilianlike features. It remains unclear, from one of the surviving therapsid groups, the Cynodontia.
however, whether either amphibians or reptiles were derived
from this group.
amniotes: vertebrates in which the embryo is surrounded by an conodonts: toothlike structures made of apatite and layers of
additional covering called the amnion – including reptiles, birds organic material, probably from basal chordates
and mammals
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity 95
Squalomorpha
Lissamphibia
Galeomorpha
Batoidea
Anapsida
Lepidosauromorpha
Crurotarsi
Aves
Theria
Myxiniformes
Protheria
Ornithodira
Therapsida
Archosauro
morpha
Pelycosauria
Diapsida
Lepospondyli
Holocephali
Sarcopterygii
Elasmobranchii
Synapsida
Amniota
Thrinaxodon .
Acanthodii
Tetrapoda
Placodermi
Monorhina
Diplorhina
Archaeopteryx lithographica
Gnathostomata
Elginerpeton .
Discosauriscus pulcherrimus
jawless organisms
Eastmanosteus
Gemuendia stürtzi
96 Earth‘s history
2.3.2.9
Land plants
For the first land plants a socialisation with fungal com lineages of spore plants during the Devonian, including the
munities was probably essential. Fungal communities served Lycopodiopsida (club mosses), Equisetopsida (horsetails),
both, as decomposers of organic matter and as nutrient sup and Polypodiopsida (ferns). Vast forests emerged during the
plier, and on the other hand as mycorrhizal symbionts. The Carboniferous. Seed plants emerged as early as the Palaeo
prerequisites for the evolutionary success of plants within zoic, with the gymnosperms (Cordaitopsida, Cycadopsida)
terrestrial environments were therefore likely offered by a initially radiating during the Carboniferous and Permian
preliminary terrestrial colonisation by fungi. The oldest li and then again later, during the Mesozoic (Coniferopsida,
chen fossils were recorded from the Doushantuo formation Gnetales, Bennetitales). After the mass extinction event at
in China (Ediacaran). However, the oldest land plant fossils the PermianTriassic boundary, the gymnosperms domi
from the Cambrian remain controversial: moss tetraspores nated terrestrial vegetation. The angiosperms subsequently
have been found dating back to the Middle Ordovician, radiated during the Cretaceous, dominating the global flora
whereas the first verified vascular plant fossils date back to after the mass extinction event at the CretaceousPalaeogene
the Silurian. boundary.
Plants colonised terrestrial environments during the Or
dovician and Silurian, subsequently developing into various
See also:
97
Isoetales
Lepidodendrales
Selaginellales
Zosterophyllopsida
Lycopodiopsida
Trimerophytopsida
Equisetopsida
Polypodiopsida
Psilotopsida
Progymnospermen
Cycadopsida
Ginkgopsida
Cordaitopsida
Coniferopsida
Rhynia
Gnetales
Glossopteridopsida
Lepidodendron
Otozamites obtusus
Magnoliopsida (Angiosperms)
The Phanerozoic eon: fossil biodiversity
97
98 Earth‘s history
2.3.3
The Palaeozoic era
The Palaeozoic is the oldest era within the Phanerozoic The Upper Devonian (Frasnian) witnessed another mass
eon, covering the time from 541 to 252.2 million years. It is extinction event, which led to an increased carbon deposi
divided into six periods: the Cambrian, Ordovician, Silurian, tion in sediments. The event, known as the Kellwasser event,
Devonian, Carboniferous, and Permian. is named after the location in Harz, Germany, where such
The Cambrian period is divided into four epochs and ten characteristic rock layers were first described.
ages, some of which remain unnamed. The end of the Cam The Carboniferous period is divided into two subsystems,
brian was characterised by a mass extinction event, likely trig the Mississippian and the Pennsylvanian, which are in turn
gered by climatic change and associated fluctuations in sea divided into three epochs each. In Central Europe, fossil rich
level. In Central Europe, Cambrian rocks are rarely exposed. limestones (Kohlenkalkfazies) and, eroded material of the
The Ordovician period is divided into three epochs and Variscan Orogeny (Kulmfazies) to the South, date back to
seven ages. Limestones from the Ordovician are exposed in the Carboniferous. Typical are coalbearing strata. In the
Scandinavia, whereas argillaceous shale from that period Upper Carboniferous the most extensive coal deposits were
can be found in some regions of Germany. The Upper Or formed worldwide.
dovician was also characterised by a mass extinction event, The Permian period is divided into three epochs and nine
likely due to the climatic changes driven by the spread of ages. In Central Europe, peculiar redcoloured rocks from
land plants. the Lower and Middle Permian and the Kupferschiefer from
The Silurian period is divided into four epochs and eight the Upper Permian are remnants from the Permian period.
ages. Dark bituminous argillaceous shales known as grapto In the Upper Permian, global climatic conditions led to four
lite shales are characteristic for the Silurian in Central Eu major evaporation cycles leaving behind the largest known
rope. Phanerozoic salt deposits. The end of the Permian is char
The Devonian period is divided into three epochs and acterised by the largest Phanerozoic mass extinction event,
seven ages. Compact reef limestone, mudstone, and sand driven by the heaviest volcanic activities of the Phanerozoic;
stone are characteristic of the Devonian in Central Europe. the notorious Siberian magma fields emerged in this context.
bituminous slate: oil slate, a soft form of clay slate impregnat Variscan Orogeny: a mountainbuilding event in the Paleozoic
ed with bitumen caused by the collision of Gondwana and Laurussia
lithostratigraphy:
stratigraphy
See also: Fossils: 2.3.2, 2.3.1.2, 2.3.1.3
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 99
Lopingian Changsingian
254.1 Ma
Guadalupian Wuchiapingian
272.3 Ma 259.8 Ma
Permian Kungurian
283.5 Ma Capitanian
Cisuralian 265.1 Ma
290.1 Ma Wordian
Sakmarian
295.5 Ma 268.8 Ma
Asselian
298.9 Ma Roadian
Pennsylvanium
Gzhelian
Upper P. Kasimovian 303.7 Ma
307.0 Ma
Middle P. Moskovian
315.2 Ma
Lower P. Bashkirian
323.2 Ma
Carboniferous Upper M. Serpukhovian
330.9 Ma
Mississippium
Middle M. Visean
346.7 Ma
Lower M. Tournaisian
358.9 Ma
Famennian
Upper Devonian 372.2 Ma
Frasnian
382.7 Ma
Pridolian
Middle Devonian 387.7 Ma
Devonian Eifelian Ludfordian
423.0 Ma
393.3 Ma 425.6 Ma
427.4 Ma
Emsian Homerian
430.5 Ma
Lower Devonian 407.6 Ma Sheinwoodian
Pragian 433.4 Ma
410.8 Ma
Lochkovian Telychian
419.2 Ma 438.5 Ma
Pridoli Aeronian
440.8 Ma
Ludlow Rhuddanian
443.4 Ma
Wenlock 445.2 Ma
Silurian
Llandovery
453.0 Ma
Upper Ordovician Sandbian
458.4 Ma
467.3 Ma
Dapingian
Lower Ordovician 470.0 Ma
485.4 Ma Floian
Age 10
489.5 Ma
Furongian Jingshanian 477.7 Ma
Paibian 494.0 Ma
497.0 Ma
Guzhangian
500.5 Ma Tremadocian
Epoch 3 Drumian
504.5 Ma
Age 5
509.0 Ma
Age 4
Cambrian Epoch 2 514.0 Ma
Age 3
521.0 Ma
Age 2
529.0 Ma
Terreneuvian
Fortunian
541.0 Ma
100 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.1
The Ediacaran and PhanerozoicPrecambrian boundary
The Ediacaran period ranged from 635 to 541 million ‘broke up’ rock formations and exposed new rock layers, the
years, roughly the timeframe since the glaciations of the chemical weathering subsequently released huge quantities
Cryogenian and the beginning of the Cambrian (and thus of phosphates into the ocean over a long period of time. This
the Phanerozoic). increased availability of phosphates likely contributed to the
Originally, the onset of the Cambrian was defined by the formation of massive algal blooms, preserved within the
first mass occurrence of fossils but subsequently fossils were Doushantuo formation (acritarchs). Emitted phosphates and
found in far older strata. The ‘Cambrian explosion’, i.e. the ascending iron (II) ions resulted in steep increases of atmos
sudden appearance of fossils of many different metazoa pheric oxygen. As a result of increasing oxygen availability,
groups, is now recognised to date back to younger Precam metazoans diversified. Although the fossil record provides
brian strata from the Ediacaran period. a poor reflection of this phenomenon (i.e. Ediacaran) since
The Ediacaran featured a variable climate, which led to these organisms still lacked hard skeletons.
local glaciation events (Gaskiers glaciation). These local gla Ediacaran animals possessed a hydro skeleton. The most
ciations contrasted with glaciation events of the Cryogenian lineages were either osmotrophic, grazing on microbial
period, which were global in nature. mats or living in symbiosis with photosynthetic symbionts.
Apart from local glaciation events, the Ediacaran climate These symbionts lived either within the animal’s body or on
was generally warm. The sudden onset of global warming their outer surface membrane, as in the case of Dickinsonia,
triggered the sudden release of methane from methane clath which was covered with a layer of cyanobacteria. Overall,
rates, which likely further accelerated the warming trend. the ‘Cambrian explosion’ lasted longer than the name sug
Higher temperatures increased rock weathering and raised gests and took place largely before the Cambrian period itself
salinity levels in the oceans. After the glaciers physically started.
Ediacaran habitats and ecosystems are typically named Demospongiae) for multicellular organisms dates back to
after important fossil deposits such as the Avalontype bio 600–550 million years. Aerobic protozoa and simplycon
ta (calm, undisturbed deposits within the continental shelf structed metazoans were able to survive in roughly onehun
region), White Seatype biota (near shore facies marked by dredth of the presentday oxygen concentration. However,
the influence of waves and currents), and Namatype biota rising oxygen concentrations served as a prerequisite for
(fluviomarine facies). The evolution of multicellular eukary the evolution of more complex multicellular organisms. To
otes already began in the Middle Precambrian. The extremes that end, an atmospheric oxygen level equivalent to around
climatic fluctuations brought on by the glaciations of the onetenth of presentday values is required for the synthesis
late Precambrian (possibly) accelerated their diversification. of collagen, which provides the basis for connective tissues
They became ecologically important organisms in particular in higher metazoans. The oxygenation of the atmosphere,
during the oxygenation of the deep oceans. roughly 635 million years ago, predates the oxygenation of
Molecular analyses suggest that multicellular metazoans the deep oceans by around 55 million years. In other words,
must have emerged before the Ediacaran. Even the biochem the deep oceans were oxygenated around 580 million years
ical evidence for sponges reaches back to the Cryogenian. ago, an essential prerequisite for the settlement of the sea
Fossil evidence (silicate needles from Hexactinellida and floor by larger eukaryotes.
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 101
Kaiyangites sp. (right)
541 Ma
The Namafauna (550–541 million years,
phur suggests that bacterial sulfate dis
holds the oldest fossil evidence for biominer
Cloudina and Namaca
sulphur compounds requires intermediate lathus)
Cloudinia sp.
availability The White Seafauna (560–550 million years)
is known for its high level of diversity, includ
core group of Bilateria. These are coastal sed
the Gaskiers was local in nature
The diversity of phytoplankton expanded
Ediacarian
right: selected detail)
635 Ma
Cryogenian equatorial regions were icefree at that point. However, in terrestrial habitats, the ice was likely pushed all the way to the equator
102 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.2
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 103
tors and their mouthparts – their assault weapons. Similar
ment of military technology. By this analogy, increasing
modernday lamprey) dominated, no strong armour was
necessary. This dynamic changed as simple mandibular
trend can be observed in the Dunkleosteus, the armored
mouthparts or weapons, not useful. On the contrary, he
armour now causing more of a hindrance to the increas
mers. Again, similar to the development of military tech
bility and manoeuvrability at the expense of armor
104 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.3
The Cambrian period
The Cambrian period stretches between 541 and 485 mil level and an increase in atmospheric carbon dioxide concen
lion years. It is divided into four epochs, the Terreneuvian trations to around 4.5 ‰, roughly 15 times the present value.
(541–521 million years ago), Epoch 2 (521–509 million years This was the highest atmospheric carbon dioxide concentra
ago), Epoch 3 (509–497 million years ago), and the Furongi tion in the Phanerozoic. At the same time, the concentration
an (497–485 million years ago). of oxygen increased slightly during the Cambrian, remaining
During the Cambrian, the planet’s large land masses were lower than it is today, at around 14 %.
largely located south of the equator. These continents were Almost all modern animal phyla developed during the
the Laurentia (parts of North America and Greenland), Bal Cambrian period. During the same time period, many spe
tica (NorthEast Europe) and Siberia, as well as the large cies developed hard skeletal parts or housing. It is thought
southern continent Gondwana. Gondwana comprised the that the almost simultaneous development of skeletal ele
land masses of Africa, South America, India, Madagascar, ments in many organismal groups was an adaptation to in
Australia, Antarctica, Saudi Arabia, as well as smaller sub creases in predation. For these hard parts of the skeleton are
continents. The Iapetus Ocean separated Gondwana from better fossil records, the number of fossils sharply increased.
the northern continents and the Panthalassic Ocean took up No land plants are known from the Cambrian period,
most of the northern hemisphere. The global climate warmed though terrestrial fungi are thought to have existed; their fos
strongly during the Cambrian, accompanied by a rising sea sils are, however, controversial.
sclerite: hard parts in the body of invertebrates transgression:
advances rapidly into continental regions and is caused by a drop
See also: Hard skeleton: 2.3.3.2; Metazoa: 4.2.1; Fungi: 4.2.2.3
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 105
There were no land plants in the Cambrian. Fossil Acritarchs (here:
Pikaia gracilens, which belonged to the Cephalochordata, is regarded as Timofeevia lancarae
Panthalassic Ocean
Siberia
Gondwana
Sahara
Cape Siberia
Cambrian fossil reef (right): One of the most important reefbuilding organisms Persian Gulf Ruhr area
Protolyellia sp.) and the
Great Lakes South China
Mexico Australia
Amazon Basin
The Ordovician period
The Ordovician period ranges between 485 and 443 mil first graptolites and bryozoa can be found in great numbers
lion years ago and is divided into the Lower (485–470 million within the Ordovician fossil record. Within the vertebrates,
years ago), Middle (470–458 million years ago), and Upper different lineages of jawless fish and the conodonts appeared.
(458–443 million years ago) epochs. Plants colonised the land in the Upper Ordovician, ini
During the Ordovician, Laurentia and Siberia drifted tially mosslike organisms whereas vascular plants evolved
northward towards the equator. At the same time, Baltica later. The colonisation of terrestrial habitats by land plants
also drifted northward and slightly away from Gondwana. increased chemical weathering, which in turn increased
Laurentia and Baltica drifted towards each other and the the release of calcium, magnesium, and iron. In effect, car
Iapetus Ocean, which separated to the two continents, be bonate depositions in the oceans increased. This phenom
gan to close. During the Lower Ordovician, the climate was enon eventually reduced the concentration of atmospheric
still very warm and the poles were not frozen yet. However, carbon dioxide through balanced reactions. Therefore, the
the Upper Ordovician included one of the largest glaciation colonisation of terrestrial habitats by plants is presumably
events of the Phanerozoic, covering a vast majority of the causally related to the cooling and subsequent glaciation of
southern hemisphere in ice. the planet in the Upper Ordovician. Furthermore, the ocean
Biodiversity increased markedly during the Ordovician, in ic currents likely shifted at the beginning of the Ordovician
particular featuring an explosion of (food) specialist species, Ice Age, moving oxygenpoor deep waters to shallow shelf
following on from the Cambrian domination of generalists. areas.
Corals also formed in the oceans, especially Rugosa and The lateOrdovician glaciation led to a mass extinction
Tabulata, as well as bryozoans and stromatoporoids making event, causing many families of organisms to completely go
up major reef components. The brachiopods underwent a extinct. In the ocean, around 57 % of genera and 80 % of
strong radiation during the Ordovician and became a domi species disappeared, especially those living in deeper marine
nant group of marine benthic filter feeders. In addition, the habitats.
Jawless fish can be found in fossils dating back to the The myelin sheath, which surrounds nerve fibers, is also a
Upper Cambrian, though the group underwent a radiation differentiation of the neural crest cells and its presence ena
not before the Ordovician period. In addition to the cono bles a faster stimulus conduction compared to invertebrates:
donts, the polyphyletic ‘Agnatha’ (jawless organisms) and vertebrates can reach action potential speeds of 50–100 m/s
chondrichthyes (cartilaginous fish) were present during the with an axon diameter of only 1–40 µm, compared with in
Ordovician. vertebrates reaching speeds of only 1 m/s (with the exception
A key evolutionary step within the development of verte of cephalopods, which increase their action potential speed
brates was the emergence of a new embryonic cell type from through a broadening of the nerve by several millimetres).
which the neural tube and subsequently the central nervous The myelin sheath is therefore of central importance for the
system with brain and spinal cord, gill apparatus, and senso evolution of animals with larger bodies.
ry organs (eyes, nose) emerged. This new cell type therefore The development of the myelin sheath appears to have
enabled the development of a novel body plan, in particular accompanied the emergence of jaws. Recent jawless species
related to the development of a head with complex sensory have no myelin sheath, and presumably this was missing in
organs. This new body shape gave organisms the ability to the extinct ostracoderms and conodonts. The Chondrichthy
orient themselves directionally, a change that likely played es already had a myelin sheath. It is therefore likely that the
an important role in the subsequent shift in dietary habit sheath arose before the Chondrichthyes lineage split from the
from filter feeding to active predation. A funnellike sucking other Gnathostomata during the Ordovician.
mouth, such as the one in recent lampreys, can be seen for
the first time in jawless fish fossils from the Cambrian.
bryozoa: Rugosa:
continental shelf: underwater landmass extending out from septa in only four of the six sectors, therefore displaying bilateral
the edge of a continent (up to a depth of 200 m) symmetry
generalists: organisms able to survive under a variety of con stromatoporoida:
ditions as sponges which were important reefformers in the Silurian and
graptolites: Devonian
Tabulata:
septa (therefore displaying radial symmetry) but they are often
incomplete
See also: Reef forming organisms: 2.3.2.2; ‘Agnatha’: 4.2.1.7, 4.2.1.8
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 107
Sacabambaspis
show a threeYshaped arrangement of colpi, such as present in club
mosses and ferns: sp.
Synorisporites
trilete spores (right)
Panthalassic Ocean
Siberia
Gondwana
Rheic Ocean
Sahara
Cape Siberia
Persian Gulf Ruhr Area
edly during the Ordovician, and remain important index fossils. Mostly, these
Great Lakes South China
are represented by toothlike structures (top: Lenodus variabilis), with the fossil
Mexico Australia
Amazon Basin
Seelilien
(Ordovizium)
Graptolites are among the most important The Crinoidea (sea lilies) radiated rapidly The trilobites order Asaphida (here: Subasaphus
during the Ordovician and were an important platyurus) is recorded from the Upper Cambrium
known from the Ordovician (here: Didymograptus component of marine benthic fauna (here:
murchisoni) and are characterised by having )
angle of under 180°
108 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.5
The Silurian period
The Silurian period ranges from 443 to 419 million years the continental shelves. As a result of the rapidly spreading
and is divided into the Llandovery (443–433 million years), terrestrial vegetation, levels of atmospheric carbon dioxide
Wenlock (433–4276 mya), Ludlow (427–423 million years), decreased whereas oxygen concentrations rose.
and the Pridoli (423–419 million years) epochs. At low latitudes, extensive reefs formed in the shallow seas.
Laurentia and Baltica collided in the lower Silurian, clos Corals (Tabulata and Rugosa) were important reefbuilders.
ing the Iapetus Ocean and subducting the oceanic plate un The first jawed vertebrates, gnathostomata, also emerged in
derneath the two continents. The merge of Laurentia and the Silurian. The first Placodermi emerged in the Lower Si
Baltica created the super continent Laurussia (= old red lurian and the first bony fish are thought to have appeared in
continent, named after its characteristic reddish sandstone) the Upper Silurian.
and formed the Caledonian orogenic belt. In the Silurian, the The first vascular plants arose in the Middle Silurian: pri
Rheic Ocean reached its maximum extension. In the Upper mordial plants, such as Rhyniophytina, as well as the Zos
Silurian, the HunSuperterrane broke off from the northern terophyllopsida, presumably an evolutionary link between
edge of Gondwana and drifted northward towards Lauras the Rhyniophytina and the club mosses. For example, mem
sia. The Rheic Ocean, located between the HunSuperter bers of the genus Cooksonia (Rhyniophytina) spread across
rane and Laurussia, was subducted underneath the HunSu Laurussia and members of Baragwanathia (Zosterophyllop
perterrane and the PalaeoTethys Ocean began to open. The sida) spread across Gondwana. The earliest vascular plants
Silurian climate was again generally temperate to warm, and branched dichotomously and had no leaves. The oldest con
the occurrence of glaciation events is backed up only by rare firmed lichen fossils date back to the Silurian whereas lichen
and anecdotal evidence. During the Silurian, the sea level fossils from the Ediacaran remain unconfirmed.
was very high, thus forming extensive shallow seas along
See also: Liverwort: 4.4.3.2
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 109
(below) with the ancestors The genus Cooksonia
less axes were forked and possessed stomata and terminal sporangia. The
genus Cosmoclaina
ing algae belonging to the Nematophytales
Panthalassic Ocean
Siberia
ne
e rra Gondwana
rt
pe
Su
Rheic Ocean n
Ocean Hu
Sahara
Cape Siberia
Eurypterus remipes) lived from the Silurian to Persian Gulf Ruhr area
the Devonian and are considered to be arthropodes. They are characterised by Great Lakes South China
the last prosomal (‘head’) extremitypair serving as a swim organ
Mexico Australia
Amazon Basin
The echinoderm Paracrinoidea were, along with Tabulate corals (tabulata) were among the most
important Silurian reefbuilders Silurian coral group
marine benthic fauna
110 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.6
In general, terrestrial primary producers and terrestri ship involves the evolution of detoxifying enzymes in ani
al food webs are a prerequisite for the colonisation of land mals as well as an increase in the presence of sporopollenin,
by animals. Nevertheless, it is possible that arthropods col and thus in the thickness of spore walls in plants. Thus, fungi
onised terrestrial habitats before the vascular plants. Rep and herbivores were only able to efficiently exploit plant bio
resentatives of the first terrestrial fauna probably lived as mass by the end of the Carboniferous period
detritivores on the basis of the biomass produced by algae, The colonisation of terrestrial habitats was made most
lichens, and mosses. ly from fresh water (vertebrates, land plants, Annelida [Oli
The first vascular plants were hardly eaten by animals: gochaeta]). Some organismal groups were able to reach the
lignin and the toxic byproducts of lignin synthesis led to a terrestrial environment by way of interstitial habitats (for ex
decoupling of terrestrial primary production and the deg ample, nematodes), or directly from marine habitats such as
radation of organic material until the Carboniferous. The the marine littoral, salt marshes, or mangroves (for example,
ligninsynthesizing peroxidases of fungi arose only in the Pulmonata, Isopoda, Chelicerata). Most waves of terrestri
uppermost Carboniferous. In addition, vertebrate and insect al colonisation by animals were correlated with periods of
herbivory also developed in the Carboniferous: these early elevated atmospheric oxygen, allowing for the survival of
herbivores were initially specialised to consume the mostly organisms with yet underdeveloped breathing organs. This
nontoxic plant parts (young shoots, seeds, spores) and broke holds particularly true for the terrestrial colonisation by ar
down their plant food with the help of symbiotic fungi and thropods during the Silurian, but also for the diversification
bacteria. To that end, the coevolution between plants and of terrestrial tetrapods during the Carboniferous.
herbivorous insects arose in the Carboniferous: this relation
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 111
Neogene
23 Ma out the planet’s history, terrestrial species
ganismal groups. Other lineages have de
Palaeogene
form physical boundaries for the colonisa
66 Ma Sand dunes in the Sahara
terrestrial life remains controversial within
the academic literature
145 Ma Land snail fossils
Jurassic
pled. Herbivory began during the Carbon
201 Ma iferous. Since this period feeding traces
can be found on fossilised parts of plants.
Triassic
Fossilised feeding damage (Neogene) Fossilised lacewing (Cretaceous)
252 Ma The Ichthyostega lived in the Upper Devo
rarily terrestrial tetrapods. These species
Permian are characterised by a number of special
features, such as seven toes, a very rigid
chest with overlapping ribs, and – unusual
298 Ma for tetrapods – very long forelimbs rela
Limb of Ichthyostega Skull of Ichthyostega
Carboniferous
the terrestrial environment before the
land plants. With the advent of liverworts,
359 Ma
mats and fungi were replaced by associa
or other terrestrial arthropods
Devonian
Fossilised spiders (Cretaceous)
443 Ma
mats and organic materials recycled by
fungi and bacteria
Ordovician
Fossil fungal spores (Ordovician)
485 Ma
Microbial mats appeared on land around
1.6 billion years ago. Since the late Pre
cambrian or early Palaeozoic, these ter
Cambrian restrial microbial mats likely comprised cy
anobacteria and heterotrophic bacteria, as
541 Ma
112 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.7
The Devonian period
The Devonian period ranges from 419 to 358 million years the same time, trilobites were in decline, perhaps due to the
and is divided into the Lower (419–393 million years), Mid emergence of fish with jaws. The Placodermi (armored fish)
dle (393–382 million years), and Upper Devonian (382–358 emerged as the most diverse vertebrate group, including the
million years) epochs. largest living predatory fish of the time, growing to around
The Caledonian orogeny, between the former continents 10 m in length. The Placodermi died out by the end of the
Baltica and Laurentia, continued into the Devonian. The Devonian. Spiny sharks also reached their greatest diversity
Rheic Ocean was subducted as a result of microcontinents during the Devonian, though they went extinct by the Per
(HunSuperterrane, Armorica) drifting from Gondwana to mian.
wards Laurussia, opening up the PalaeoTethys. The Rhe During the Devonian lungfish and coelacanths developed;
noherzynic Ocean, which emerged from the Rheic Ocean, from the latest Upper Devonian the first tetrapoda (land ver
formed within the collision area between the microconti tebrates) are known. These include the genera belonging to
nents and Laurussia. It began to close again during the De the Labyrinthodontia Ichthyostega and Acanthostega. On land
vonian as a result of the collision between Laurussia and the first winged insects emerged in the Devonian.
Gondwana. The rocks of the Rhenish Massif were formed During the Devonian, primordial fernlike and lyco
within these sedimentary basins. The Devonian climate was podlike vascular plants further spread out. From the De
warm and dry and the temperature difference between the vonian period, the first secured findings of mycorrhizal are
equatorial and polar regions was lower than it is today. The recorded. The plants increased in size During the Devoni
sea level remained high. During the Upper Devonian tem an period. In the Upper Devonian first forests with treelike
peratures cooled down. As a result, a further glaciation event ferns and lycopods developed in tropical swamps. For the
occurred at the polar regions. This cooling may have been first time flat leaves and flowers developed. True seeds first
the cause of the Upper Devonian extinction events; in par emerged in the Upper Devonian. Atmospheric carbon diox
ticular, marine fauna has been affected, including trilobites, ide concentration decreased and the oxygen concentration
corals, brachiopods, and fish. The heavily armored early Pal strongly increased due to the increasing primary production
aeozoic fish species were increasingly replaced by sharks and by land plants and increased weathering processes associated
bony fish. Terrestrial taxa were less affected. with the spread of land plants. Terrestrial food webs had to
The Ammonoidea, which were important macro in arise. Therefore, a large proportion of plant biomass was not
dexfossils for the Middle Devonian to the Upper Mesozo initially decomposed, but deposited.
ic, developed during the uppermost Lower Devonian. At
The first land plants were still missing megaphylls (flat er hand, were less prone to overheating during the Lower
leaves). Lower Devonian plants still had no leaves, with the Devonian. Levels of atmospheric carbon dioxide strongly
exception of, for example Eophyllophyton, which carried very decreased during the course of the Devonian as a result of
small (< 5 mm wide) leaves. Although flat leaves would pro plant photosynthesis and, on the other hand, indirectly as a
vide a higher photosynthetic capacity, large flat leaves did result of stronger chemical weathering by plant roots: More
only develop during the course of the Upper Devonian ions entered the oceans forming, above all, calcium and mag
The relatively late appearance of flat plant leaves can be nesium carbonates.
attributed to the high concentrations of atmospheric car Levels of atmospheric carbon dioxide therefore dropped
bon dioxide and otherwise generally unfavourable climatic as plants increased their presence in the terrestrial environ
conditions during the Devonian. The number of stomata is ment. Consequently, the size of plant leaves suddenly began
correlated with carbon dioxide concentrations: lower levels to grow and the uptoeightfold increase in stomatal density
lead to many stomata, higher levels of atmospheric carbon ensured a volume of transpiration sufficient to prevent over
dioxide lead to plants possessing fewer stomata. During heating. As a consequence of the increased leaf size and as
the course of the Devonian plants developed only few sto sociated rates of transpiration, Devonian plants also devel
mata. As a result, transpiration was characteristically low oped improved vascular bundles.
and leaves would often overheat; leafless stems, on the oth
stomata: pore in a plant which serves to regulate gas exchange
See also: Vascular bundles: 4.4.3.4; Telome: 2.3.3.10
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 113
Eusthenopteron
Sarcopterygii) are likely homologous to the arm of tetrapods, such as that Archaeopteris grew to
shown here in the amphib Acanthostega
and toes deviated from the typical tetrapod body plan: Acanthostega had deciduous, their fronds were frequently observed in the fossil record
humerus
radius
ulna
Panthalassic Ocean
Siberia
PalaeoTethys
Ocean
n
cea
e ic O
Rh
Gondwana
Sahara
Cape Siberia
Persian Gulf Ruhr area
genus Hexagonaria (above) were widespread within Devonian reefs. Following Great Lakes South China
Mexico Australia
again during the Mesozoic
Amazon Basin
The
of the Devonian marine benthic fauna. Broad remains the only extant group of They were the most common group of Ammo
shells were typical of the Devonian brachiopods,
Plicathyris ezquarrai (top) an. The surface of their shell features a series of
and Mucrospirifer thedfordensis narrow, wavy sutures
114 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.8
The Carboniferous period
The Carboniferous period ranged between 358 and 298 a result, carbon dioxide was progressively withdrawn from
million years ago. The Carboniferous is divided into two the atmosphere and atmospheric oxygen concentrations rose
epochs, the Mississippian (358–323 million years ago) and to around 35 % during the Carboniferous. These changes
the Pennsylvanian (323–298 million years ago), which are reduced the greenhouse effect and cooled the planet, lead
further divided into the Lower (Tournaisian, 358–346 mil ing to several cooler periods and partial glaciations around
lion years ago), Middle (Visean, 346–330 million years ago), the South Pole. The strongest cooling event and climax was
and Upper Mississippian epochs (Serpukhovian, 330–323 the PermoCarboniferous glaciation that covered much of
million years ago) and the Lower (Bashkirian, 323–315 mil Gondwana with ice. Traces of this glaciation can be seen in
lion years ago), Middle (Moscovian, 315–307 million years the fossil record of glacial sediment (tillites) found, for exam
ago), and Upper Pennsylvanian (Kasimovian + Gzhelian, ple, in the presentday Sahara.
303–298 million years ago) epochs. Following the lateDevonian mass extinction, the oceans
During this time, the megacontinents Laurussia and were likely relatively oxygenpoor for a long period. This
Gondwana drifted towards each other. They collided already timeframe is characterised by a sparse fossil record, and is
during the Devonian with the smaller continents lying in be referred to as the ‘Romer Gap’ after palaeontologist Alfred
tween. These collisions were the starting point of the Var Romer. Marine animal diversity and radiations of different
iscan orogeny (upfolding of mountains), which continued animal groups only recovered in the middle of the Lower Car
through the Lower Carboniferous and led to the upfolding of boniferous. Rayfinned fish and ammonoids developed into
mountains in large areas of Central Europe, North America, the major components of the pelagic fauna. Foraminifera,
and Asia. The collision between Laurussia and Gondwana especially Fusulinida, and bryozoans were prominent with
led to the super continent Pangaea, which in turn was finally in benthic ecosystems. On land, high oxygen concentrations
formed by Siberia‘s collision with this continent during the promoted animal gigantism, including in the dragonfly Meg
Permian. aneura, which had a wingspan of 70 cm and the spiderlike
During the Carboniferous, extensive tropical and subtrop extinct Eurypterid group comprising genus Megarachne, with
ical forests fixed large volumes of carbon dioxide. Much of a body length of 60 cm. Land snails and landdwelling anne
the Upper Carboniferous biomass was deposited as coal. As lids also emerged at the latest in the Carboniferous.
radiation: Variscan Orogeny: a mountainbuilding event in the Palaeozoic
of new forms caused by the collision of Gondwana and Laurussia
supercontinent: large landmass formed from several conti
nents or cratons
See also: Carbonates: 2.1.2.3; Gymnospermae: 4.4.3.5
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 115
Hyolomenus, which lived in the Upper Carboniferous around 312 million
Sigillaria sp.; right: leaf fossil of
Linopteris sp. seed fern within Ruhr Carboniferous)
had an early amnion
Panthalassic Ocean
Siberia
Laurussia
PalaeoTethys
Ocean
Gondwana
Sahara
Cape Siberia
Fungi and herbivorous insects developed the ability to degrade lignin and other Persian Gulf Ruhr area
complex organic molecules only during the course of the Upper Carboniferous,.
Great Lakes South China
Thus, plant biomass accumulated, forming the now vital global coal reserves
during the Upper Carboniferous (here: coal seam beneath a sandstone layer) Mexico Australia
Amazon Basin
the smooth sutures on their shell
116 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.9
The Permian period
The Permian period ranged between 298 and 252 million endured four global evaporation cycles: Progressively, car
years ago and was divided into the Cisuralian (298–272 mil bonates, gypsum (calcium sulfate), halite (rock salt, NaCl)
lion years ago), Guadalupian (272–259 million years ago), and, finally, potassium and magnesium chlorides, precipi
and the Lopingian (259–252 million years ago) epochs. tated in each cycle. As a result, the richest Phanerozoic salt
During the Lower Permian, Siberia collided with the al deposits emerged during the Permian, up to 1,500 m thick.
readyunited continents Laurussia and Gondwana, which The Permian is also characterised by the extensive radia
led to the creation of the Ural mountains. At that point, all tion of the Amniota. Many reptilelike groups thus emerged,
major land masses were connected as the super continent several of which became extinct already by the end of the
Pangaea. Near the equator, the Tethys Ocean opened to the Permian. During the Permian, the Anapsida (including
East and, in the Upper Permian, Pangaea began once again various extinct lineages as well as likely also the turtles),
to disintegrate. The PermianCarboniferous glaciation per the Diapsida (lizards, dinosaurs, birds), and the Synapsida
sisted in the Lower Permian and the global climate warmed (mammals and extinct lineages, such as the therapsids) had
sharply in the later Permian. Due to the large Pangaean con already separated. About 90 % of animal species became ex
tinental land mass the climate was dry. tinct during the PermianTriassic transition, including many
The upper Permian was the most volcanically active time major groups which disappeared completely, including the
of the entire Phanerozoic and was based around the Siberi trilobites and the eurypterids.
an plate. This volcanism contributed to the global warming During the Permian, gymnosperms (nakedseeded plants)
trend, dramatically heating the atmosphere by up to 10 °C displaced the ferns and club moss as the dominant group
and, along with its geochemical consequences, resulting in of plants, in part because of the dry climate characteristic
the largest Phanerozoic mass extinction event. Intraconti of this era. During this time, Glossopteris flora spread across
nental and coastal areas with shrinking access to the oceans Gondwana’s circumpolar regions.
The oldest fossils belonging to major tetrapod lineages a heterodental dentition, with incisors, canines, and fangs
(amphibians and amniotes) are 338 million years old, re as molars. The Sphenacodontoidea (Pelycorsauria: Upper
covered from East Kirkton, Scotland. Early tetrapods were Carboniferous to Upper Permian) had still further differen
carnivorous and likely insectivores. Herbivory developed tiated teeth and were also characterised by the mammalian
only during the Upper Carboniferous. Early tetrapods likely gait, with legs placed underneath the body rather than spread
breathed using buccal pumps, like extant amphibians, which towards the sides as in reptiles). Therapsids emerged in the
means they presumably had to eventually pause during late Upper Permian, with Tetraceratops as the first known rep
breathing. Breathing with the ribs developed later on with resentative lineage. Compared with the earlier Pelycosauria,
the emergence of Amniota. Around 310 million years ago, therapsids possessed an enlarged temple fenestrae, a forward
the Synapsida (the lineage comprising mammals and their facing jaw joint, reduced dentition at palate, as well as chang
ancestors) separated from the ancestral lineages of the Anap es to the shoulder and pelvis girdle. Sex chromosomes also
sida and Diapsida, in other words from the lineages includ emerged around 320–240 million years ago.
ing reptiles and birds. The oldest known ancestral reptiles The transition from Pelycosauria to therapsids also al
were the small insectivorous anapsids Cotylosauria (Family tered the structure of ecosystems and food chains. Early
Romeriidae, Upper Carboniferous to Middle Permian). terrestrial ecosystems were dominated by insectivorous tetra
One of the oldest Pelycosauria was the 50 cm tall predator pods. However, by the Upper Permian, a relatively large and
Archaeothyris (Pelycosauria: Ophiacodonta, Upper Carbonif diverse group of herbivores became the nutritional founda
erous to Middle Permian). The emergence of Pelycosauria tion for a small number of carnivores. Likely as a result of a
was an important time point in the evolution of dental dif heightened pressure on their terrestrial niches by therapsids,
ferentiation: Archaeothyris had uniformly sharp teeth accom amphibians became increasingly aquatic during the Upper
panied by larger canines. Higher Pelycosauria had already Permian.
culature in order to pump air between the lungs and oral cavity mouth
while its mouth is closed
See also: Anapsidic skull, Heterodont, Temple fenestrae: 4.2.1.9
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 117
Panthalassic Ocean Siberia
Laurussia
Tethys
Pangaea Ocean
Gondwana
Sahara
Cape Siberia
Persian Gulf Ruhr area
Great Lakes South China
Mexico Australia
Amazon Basin
they never again fully recovered
118 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.10
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 119
of light by swimming into the upper layers of the water
fusion
overgrowing
Rhynia
(fossil, Silurian)
club moss
The roots of land plants also increase their surfacetovolume area
120 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.11
Many organisms undergo an alternation of generations sis happens for each syngamy and the recombination rate
(also known as alternation of phases or metagenesis) be remains relatively low whereas the rate of propagation is
tween a haploid and a diploid generation. This type of life relatively high with four meiospores – and thus four new in
cycle decouples meiosis (reductive division resulting in dividuals – per syngamy.
daughter cells with half a chromosome set), from syngamy Diplonts achieve a high rate of recombination since many
(the fusion of two cells) during reproduction. The haploid cells per organism can undergo meiosis. On the other hand,
generation forms sex cells (gametes) by mitotic division, the propagation rate, with a production of just one individu
which fuse after fertilisation to become a diploid zygote, and al per syngamy, is relatively low.
eventually grow into a diploid generation. The diploid gener In addition to the rates of recombination and propaga
ation, in turn, forms haploid cells, by meiotic division, which tion, water dependence also plays a central role within these
are distributed (usually as spores) and grow into a haploid reproductive processes: the processes of fertilisation are de
generation. pendent on an aqueous environment in which male gametes
The significance of the haploid and diploid generations can swim towards the female gametes (ovum). As a result,
respectively varies greatly in different organismal groups. In the gameteforming generation, the gametophyte, is highly
the case of land plants and their evolution, however, most water dependent. Whereas this gametophyte is the dom
striking is the increasingly reduced state of the haploid, gam inant, longlived generation in mosses, it is already greatly
eteforming generation (= gametophyte). The high recombi reduced in ferns. In seed plants, on the other hand, the game
nation rates of the diploid generation seems to have been ad tophyte consists of only a few cells and must be nourished by
vantageous for the transition to life on land, perhaps because the sporophyte.
the terrestrial habitats are less stable than those found in the Because of the water dependency of gametes and with
aquatic environment. that of the gametophyte, this generation must remain rela
In order to better understand this development in land tively small according to the substrate. Bryophytes (gameto
plants, it is important to note the advantages and disadvan phyte is the dominant generation) are physically smaller than
tages of being haploid (haploid organisms, only zygotes dip ferns and seed plants (sporophyte is the dominating genera
loid) and diploid (diploid organisms, only gametes haploid). tion).
In haplonts, haploid organisms arise directly from diploid
zygotes as a result of meiosis. As a result, only one meio
See also: Sporophyte: 2.3.3.12
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 121
Metzgeria sp.) or foliose
Lophocolea sp.). The gametophytes of mosses are foliose (centreright: Polytrichum sp.; right: antheridium of Polytrichum sp.)
Dicksonia Equisetum hyemale (Equisetopsida, right)
of the embryo sac, forming the triploid endosperm
The male gametophyte of angiosperms (pollen grain) is re The female gametophyte of angiosperms (embryo sac) is re
duced to seven cells: a central, binucleate cell, one ova accom
tube, and two forming sperm cells
cell
sperm cells
Pollen grain of Light microscopic cut showing an ovule
Gametophytes are most strongly reduced in angiosperms
122 Earth‘s history
2.3.3.12
carposporophyte: formed by the fusion of haploid gametes in haplobiontic: organisms with either one haploid or one diploid
the threestage lifecycle of red algae generation, but not both
diplobiontic: organisms with two generations (a haploid and tetrasporophyte: the second sporophytic generation in red al
diploid generation) gae formed from a carpospores
See also: Gametophyte: 2.3.3.11
The Phanerozoic eon: the Paleozoic era 123
Calypogeia
the leafy liverwort Lophocolea sp.; second from the right: sporophyte of the moss Dicranoweisia sp.; right: sporophyte of the moss Brachythecium sp.
) and horsetails (centre: mature strobilus; right: enlarged view of the sporangia). The
Crocus
and carpels also emerge from the sporophytes; these are the equivalent of sporangia stands in
spore plants
124 Earth‘s history
2.3.4
The Mesozoic era
The Mesozoic era followed the Palaeozoic, spanning from The Cretaceous period is divided into two epochs, the
252.2 to 66 million years ago. It is divided into the Triassic, Lower and Upper Cretaceous, which in turn comprise twelve
Jurassic, and Cretaceous geologic periods. ages. Spanning around 80 million years, the Cretaceous is
In turn, the Triassic is divided into three epochs: the Low the longest period within the Phanerozoic. It is character
er, Middle, and Upper Triassic. These are further divided into ised by its distinctive chalkstone deposits (e.g. at Dover or
seven ages. The end of the Triassic is characterised by anoth Rügen) of widespread fossil calcium carbonate skeletons of
er mass extinction event, possibly related to the breakup of various organismal groups (such as haptophytes). These are
super continent Pangaea. also found in other rock formations, such as the equally com
The Jurassic period is divided into the Lower, Middle, and mon Cretaceous sandstones. The end of the Cretaceous was
Upper Jurassic epochs, which in turn comprise eleven ages. also characterised by a large mass extinction event, probably
The terms Lower Jurassic, Middle Jurassic, and Upper Ju associated with a meteorite impact and associated volcanic
rassic denote internationally recognised chronostratigraphic activity.
epochs.
When it comes to the Triassic and Jurassic periods, Cen such as gypsum, anhydrite, and halite dominate. Sandstones
tral European time scales sometimes differ from those adopt and mudstones dominate Keuper rocks.
ed more internationally. The Jurassic is regionally subdivided into the Black,
The Triassic is divided into Buntsandstein, Muschelkalk, Brown, and White Jurassic, or into the Lias, Dogger, and
and Keuper within the sedimentary environment of the Malm. These classifications do not necessarily match in
Germanic Basin (presentday western and central Europe). ternationally recognised divisions but they are still used as
Since this stratigraphic division is only pronounced in the regional lithostratigraphic units. While the various terms
Germanic Basin, and deposition started at different times in (Lower JurassicBlack JurassicLias; Middle JurassicBrown
different areas, its classification system is not in line with the JurassicDogger; Upper JurassicWhite JurassicMalm) were
internationally recognised system of classification. Region often used synonymously, these are today conceptually dif
ally, however, this division remains in use. ferent. The terms Black, Brown, and White Jurassic are most
Buntsandstein rocks are predominantly made of con often used for the description of lithostratigraphic units in
glomerate, sandstone, and mudstone. Muschelkalk is dom southern Germany, where names are given to the prevailing
inated by calcareous rock, where mussels and brachiopods weathering colours of the rock layers. The terms Lias, Dog
are commonly found fossils. Fewer calcareous deposits are ger, and Malm are used for corresponding lithostratigraphic
found in Middle Muschelkalk deposits, where evaporites units in northern Germany.
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Mesozoic era 125
66.0 Ma
89.8 Ma
100.5 Ma
Cretaceous
145.0 Ma
166.1Ma
Jurassic
Triassic
126 Earth‘s history
2.3.4.1
The Triassic period
The Triassic period lasted from 252 to 201 million years. vived in other organismal groups, of which some underwent
ago It is divided into the Lower (252–247 million years ago), a more profound radiation during the Triassic. For example,
Middle (247–235 million years ago), and Upper Triassic only two ammonoid genera survived the PermianTriassic
(235–201 million years ago) epochs. mass extinction event, but over 100 genera had evolved again
During the Triassic, all major land masses were connected already in the Lower Triassic.
to each other as the supercontinent Pangaea. Elements from Alongside sharks, bony fish, and aquatic reptiles (Notho
the northern edge of the eastern side of the Gondwana plate sauria, Pleiosauria, Ichthyosauria, and crocodiles), ammo
detached (Cimmerian Terranes) and drifted northward. The noids and belemnites were important constituents of ecolog
PalaeoTethys was subducted under these terranes, opening ical communities in the open sea. Brachiopods played only a
the (Neo) Tethys between Gondwana and the Cimmerian minor role after the mass extinction event, whereas mussels
terranes. In the Upper Triassic, a rift valley developed be dominated benthic habitats since the Triassic. Scleractinia
tween the subsequent North America and Europe, thus were important as reefbuilding corals.
forming the origins of the North Atlantic. The Triassic cli The Upper Triassic featured another mass extinction
mate was dry and warm, with an almost uniform climate event. Conodonts and Placodonts were completely wiped
across latitudes between the equator and the poles. The Up out, as well as most species of mussels, ammonoids, plesi
per Triassic climate was slightly cooler and wetter. osaurs, and ichthyosaurs. On land, many mammallike rep
The Fusulinida (Foraminifera), rugose corals, trilobites, tiles went extinct.
and other major Palaeozoic organismal groups became ex Gymnosperms, particularly Cycadopsida and Ginkgoop
tinct at the PermianTriassic boundary. Only a few taxa sur sida, dominated the forests of the Triassic.
anoxia: the total depletion of oxygen expansive in the Lower Carboniferous (Mississippian) and closed
basalt: in the Triassic
cosmopolitan: found all over the world peak: the highest point or level
epibenthic: on the bottom of a body of water (in contrast to Tethys: ocean that existed between Laurasia and Gondwana be
endobenthic: in the sediment at the bottom of a body of water) tween the Permian and the Tertiary
PalaeoTethy Ocean: ancient ocean between Laurussia and
Gondwana; it began to form in the Upper Silurian, was most
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Mesozoic era 127
Cynogna
thus Dicroidium
Sahara
Cape
Monophyllites aonis
128 Earth‘s history
2.3.4.2
In order to remain viable, terrestrial organisms had to terrestrial amphibians generally needed to return to water to
restrict evaporation of water through the body surface, de reproduce, since the fertilisation of their eggs can only occur
veloping epithelial tissue in order to fulfil this function. In in water by way of freeswimming sperm. Similarly, the sper
plants, this role is taken up by the epidermis and the cuticula; matozoids of mosses float freely in aquatic habitats towards
similarly, the same function is carried out by the skin in ver the female archegonia, fertilizing the eggs there. At least a
tebrates. In many organisms, protection from evaporation is thin film of water – for example, after rainfall – is therefore
simultaneous with support functions – this is especially true a prerequisite for fertilisation. Also within other organismal
for organisms with an exoskeleton. groups, sexual reproduction is usually more water depend
In many aquatic organisms, most gas exchange takes ent than the adult life. A complete waterindependence of
place through the surface of the skin. With increasing imper reproduction became possible in numerous lineages through
meability of the skin and/or the epithelial tissues, powerful a shift of the fertilisation process toward the inside of indi
respiratory systems (e.g. lungs) specializing in gas exchange viduals. Such a shift happened in, for example, the amniotes,
functions were required. The terrestrial colonisation and ra seed plants, and also many arthropods. However, both the
diation by so many species during the Carboniferous was gametes and the developing embryo are threatened with de
facilitated by high levels of atmospheric oxygen (over 30 %). hydration within the terrestrial habitat. In many terrestrial
Under such conditions, the relatively weak lungs of early tet groups, dehydration of the embryo is avoided because it is
rapods already allowed for successful colonisation of terres surrounded by numerous protective layers (e.g. testa or the
trial habitats. More powerful respiratory organs became only amnion). However, these protective layers also restrict the
necessary when oxygen concentrations dropped towards the supply of nutrients from the environment. For this reason,
end of the Carboniferous. the formation of the protective layer around the embryo is
The first terrestrial organisms were often highly water de always accompanied by a system of storage or supply of nu
pendent, at least in terms of reproduction; for example, even trients (e.g. an egg yolk or endosperm).
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Mesozoic era 129
Plagiopus oederianus
Alytes obstetricans
130 Earth‘s history
2.3.4.3
The Jurassic period
The Jurassic period spans a time period from 201 to 145 During the Jurassic, populations of organisms that sur
million years ago. It is divided into the Lower (201–174 mil vived the Upper Triassic mass extinction event began to
lion years ago), Middle (174–163 million years ago), and Up rebound. Following on from the extinction of many mam
per Jurassic (163–145 million years ago) epochs. mallike reptiles, the dinosaurs grew to become the dominant
During the Jurassic period, the super continent Pangaea group of terrestrial vertebrates. The break apart of the su
further disintegrated and the Tethys transgressed on the in percontinent Pangaea resulted in a markedly increased ende
land, eventually leading to the separation of Gondwana from micity of terrestrial fauna. The ‘primaeval bird’ Archaeopteryx
South America as well as between North and South Amer also emerged during the Jurassic. In the sea, the Dinophyta
ica. The North Atlantic began to form between the Eura experienced a stronger radiation.
sian and North American plate (Laurasia). First, three major The Polypodiceae, the most diverse family of presentday
continents emerged: North America, Eurasia, and Gondwa ferns emerged during the Jurassic.
na. Rift systems initially experienced marine transgressions. Glossopteris went extinct during the Jurassic, whereas
Salts were precipitated by evaporation and salt deposits are Cycadopsida experienced a strong radiation. Many extant
recorded on both sides of the Atlantic. The Jurassic climate gymnosperm groups, including Thuja (Cypressaceae), Taxus
was steady and warm, but cooler than in the Permian. Al (Taxales), Pinus and Picea (Pinaceae), emerged for the first
though the seasons were pronounced, there were no big tem time in the Jurassic. Tree records from the Jurassic are large
perature gradients between the equator and the poles. ly characterised by clear annual growth rings, indicating a
seasonal climate and spells of winter frost.
Following the PermianTriassic mass extinction event and ischium faces backwards. The ornithischian pelvis is bidirec
the recovery of diversity throughout the Triassic, the Upper tional and the pubis lies parallel to the ischium.
Triassic was characterised by yet another mass extinction The Saurischia include the Theropoda and the Sauropo
event. Modernday tetrapod groups emerged during the Up domorpha: the carnivorous, bipedal Theropoda (e.g. Herrera
per Triassic and the Jurassic, including turtles, crocodiles, saurus, Allosauroidea, and birds) were the dominant preda
Lepidosauria (snakes, lizards, and the extinct aquatic Sau tors of the Jurassic and Cretaceous periods. The herbivorous,
ropterygia), Ornithodira (with pterodactyles [Pterosauria] quadripedal, very large Sauropodomorpha (e.g. Brachiosau
and dinosaurs [including birds]), and mammals. Increased ridae) were the dominant large herbivores of the Upper Ju
predation by sauropods likely exacerbated the radiation of rassic and Cretaceous. Finally, the Ornithischia (e.g. Stego
conifers, particularly those with hard needles. The first angi sauria, Ankylosauria, Iguanodontidae, Ceratopsia) had been
osperm fossils originate in the Lower Jurassic. purely herbivorous and very diverse organismal group.
Early dinosaurs were carnivorous; herbivores emerged With the increasing break apart of Pangaea, the diversi
only later. From their common ancestor, which is thought ty of dinosaurs grew strongly. Only 7 % of known dinosaur
to have resembled the approximately 1 m tall Eoraptor, the genera are from the Triassic, whereas 28 % are from the
dinosaurs diversified into the Saurischia and Ornithischia. Jurassic and, finally, 65 % are from the Cretaceous (mostly
The two groups are characterised by the arrangement of from the Upper Cretaceous).
their pelvic bone: in Saurischia, the pelvis is threerayed, the
pubic bone (pubis) faces downwards and forwards, and the
bipedal: locomotion by means of two legs quadruped: an animal which has four feet
Glossopteris: dominant plant genus on the Gondwana conti
nent during the Permian period
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Mesozoic era 131
The Archaeopteryx
Zamites feneosis
Zamites gigas)
Sahara
Cape
The
Ko Trigonia interlaevigata)
smoceras jason)
132 Earth‘s history
2.3.4.4
Sauria
The term ‘saurian’ summarizes large fossil amphibians Fossil discoveries of dinosaurs from the (at that time) po
and especially reptiles of the Mesozoic. More specifically, the lar regions
term is applied to the Ichtyosauria, the Sauropterygia, which Evidence for the presence of insulating feathers on many
together with lizards and snakes make up the Lepidosauro small dinosaurs
morpha, and the Pterosauria (flying dinosaurs) which belong Isotope analyses of dinosaur teeth (carbon and oxygen)
to the Ornithodira (Archosauromorpha), as well as the di
nosaurs. The dinosaurs evolved in the Middle Triassic, most However, it remains unclear whether the likely dinosaur
likely from the Archosauria, occupying terrestrial niches left warmbloodedness was simply a result of their size – in large
vacant after the PermianTriassic mass extinction event. Con animals, heat dissipation is low due to a low surfacetovol
temporary theories suggest that dinosaurs were most likely ume ratio – or whether it actually indicates endothermy, that
warmblooded for a number of reasons, including: is, an active regulation of body temperature, such as that ob
Skeletal build and construction of vasculature, hinting to served in birds.
a high activity
The dinosaurs are divided into the Saurischia (‘liz (including distinctive prominent caninelike teeth), the ar
ardhipped’ dinosaurs) and the Ornithischia (‘birdhipped’ moured Ankylosauria and Stegosauria, together summarised
dinosaurs). as the Thyreophora, the Pachycephalosauria, characterised
The Saurischia include the Herrerasauria, early bipedal by their thickened calvarium, as well as the Ornithopoda
dinosaurs from the Upper Triassic, the Sauropodomorpha and the Ceratopsia. The Ornithopoda and Ceratopsia were
(sauropods), and the Theropoda (theropods). The sauropods likely able to chew their (vegetable) food, whereas other her
mainly include large herbivores with often very long necks, bivorous dinosaurs crushed their food using stomach stones,
such as the Brachiosauridae or Titanosauria. The theropods known as gastroliths. The adaptation allowing for the chew
include various groups of mainly bipedal carnivorous dino ing of food likely was influential in these two groups gaining
saurs, including Ceratosauria (smaller and larger theropods ecological importance towards the end of the Cretaceous pe
from the Lower Jurassic to the Upper Cretaceous), and the riod, at the same time that angiosperm and grass populations
Carnosauria (large theropods such as Allosaurus) but not also flourished.
Tyrannosauridae, with their different bone struture. Coe The collision of the continents into the super continent
lurosauria are also theropods and are characterised by thin Pangea favoured the global spread of the Dinosauria and led
walled bones and therefore a lighter physique. Most Coe to a globally similar dinosaur fauna. With the break apart
lurosauria ran on strong hind legs and had arms equipped of Pangaea in the Upper Jurassic and Cretaceous, the dino
with claws, wellsuited for grasping prey. The group notably saurs diversified on each continent. In the Upper Cretaceous,
included the Tyrannosauridae (including Tyrannosaurus rex), North America was dominated by the herbivorous Hadro
the Dromeaeosauridae (including Velociraptor spp. and other sauria, Ceratopsia, Ankylosauria, Pachycephalosauria, as
raptors) as well as Aves (birds) as the only extant dinosaurs. well as the carnivorous Tyrannosauria. At the same time,
Birds evolved in the Middle Jurassic. Archaeopteryx, which Europe was dominated by the herbivores Iguanodontia (Or
displayed a number of avian but also reptilian features, can nithopoda), Nodosauria (Ankylosauria), Titanosauria (Sau
be observed in fossils from the Upper Jurassic Solnhofener ropodomorpha), as well as the carnivorous Dromaeosauria.
limestone. The southern continents were likely dominated by the her
The Ornithischia are a morphologically variable group of bivorous Titanosauria, with Ceratosauria as the dominant
primarily herbivorous dinosaurs, including the Heterodonto carnivores.
sauria, which are characterised by their heterogeneous teeth
anapsids: monophyletic group of amniotes with skulls which endothermic: regulation of body temperature from within
have no temple fenestrae; extinct group of reptiles (such animals are usually warmblooded (homeothermic))
diapsids: amniotes that have developed two fenestra in the gastroliths: hard objects, usually rocks, which are swallowed by
cheek and temple regions; includes most recent reptiles as well vertebrates to help them grind food in their stomach
as dinosaurs and birds
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Mesozoic era 133
Triceratops
Coelurosauria
Velociraptor Het
erodontosaurus)
Basal Coelurosauria Stegosauria
Stegosaurus)
Allosaurus Sinraptor Gi
ganotosaurus
Ceratosauria
Ligabuei
no Carnotaurus Hadrosaurus Iguanodon
Herrerasauria
Herrera
saurus Staurikosaurus) Pachycephalosaurus)
Sauropodomorpha Ceratopsia
Tri
Brachiosaurus ceratops
Pterosauria
134 Earth‘s history
2.3.4.5
The Cretaceous period
The Cretaceous covers the period from 145 to 66 million whilst larger and more specialised lineages were repeatedly
years ago and is divided into the Lower (145–100 million more vulnerable during different smaller extinction events.
years ago) and Upper (100–66 million years ago) Cretaceous Mammals had a decisive advantage over the archosaurs be
epochs. During the Cretaceous, Gondwana began to break cause of their highly developed teeth. However, mammals
apart: the South Atlantic formed between Africa and South dominated the fauna only after the disappearance of the
America, and Australia separated from Antarctica. At the dinosaurs at the CretaceousPalaeogene boundary. Major
same time, India split from Africa and began to drift north groups of social insects also evolved during the Cretaceous,
wards. The Cretaceous climate was still warm and balanced, including termites and ants. Snakes also emerged in the Mid
characterised by atmospheric decreases in carbon dioxide dle Cretaceous, becoming important not before the Cenozoic
and increases in oxygen. as their preferred prey, i.e. mammals.
Giant Sauropodomorpha became less important at the be Angiosperms appeared in the Lower Cretaceous (the
ginning of the Cretaceous (except, perhaps, in South Amer Hauterivian) and spread widely in the upper Lower Cre
ica) and were increasingly replaced the Ornithischia. The taceous (Albian). In lowlands until 90 million years ago,
Theropods remained the dominant carnivores. angiosperms made up already approximately 70 % of all
The diversity of species grew as a result of increasing isola plant species. Their spread may have been enabled by the
tion of faunal provinces. In the Upper Cretaceous, small pred activities of fruit and seedspecialised pterosaurs. Angio
atory dinosaurs (troodontids, elmisaurids, avimimids) lived sperms flowers of the Middle Cretaceous were pollinated by
alongside giant species, such as Tyrannosaurus, Tarbosaurus, the activity of polleneating insects. Flowers specialised on
and Albertosaurus. The birds, which also belonged to the thero nectarcollecting insects appeared later. The spread of angi
pods, also diversified throughout the Cretaceous, increasingly osperms correlated with a change in dominant herbivores,
displacing the pterosaurs from their ecological niches. from sauropods to Ornithischia. In parallel, modern conifer
Mammals were diverse and adapted to a number of differ populations (Pinus, Picea, Larix, Cedrus, Metasequoia) spread,
ent ecological niches. However, they evolved from relative whereas seed ferns and Bennettitopsida died out in the upper
ly unspecialised, shrew mouselike animals, which thrived Lower Cretaceous.
Unlike in mammals, the evolution of size in pterosaurs giant fisheating or waterfiltering gliders along coastlines.
during their first 70 million years was not restricted by com Pterosaurs subsequently died out around the CretaceousPal
petition with other animal groups. During the Jurassic, the aeogene boundary, while around 20 different bird lineages
typical pterosaur wingspan was around 1.2 m, doubling in survived
size around the border at the Lower Cretaceous and increas The ability to fly seems to be selected for small genomes:
ing further to around 7 m during the Cretaceous period itself. modern birds have relatively small genomes compared to ex
The enlargement of the pterosaurs was not correlated with tant mammals and reptiles. In addition, flightless birds have
the increase in size of the sauropods, but occurred in parallel a slightly large genome. A similar trend is observed in bats,
with the appearance of the ancestors of modernday birds, which also carry a smaller genome than their flightless sister
the gliding or nonvolant Maniraptora groups (e.g. insectivores). This trend is explained by the fact
Presumably, birds were competitively stronger than the that genome size is correlated with cell size and hence also
pterosaurs and increasingly suppressed them from the niche to metabolic demand.
spectrum of smaller flyers. As a result, during the Creta Grasses first appeared in the Upper Cretaceous, first in
ceous only very large pterosaurs were able to successfully damp habitats and then, from the Miocene onwards, also in
outcompete other lineages within their niche, in particular significantly drier habitats.
faunal provinces: a term similar in meaning to fauna kingdoms;
regions that differ markedly from other regions due to their
endemic taxa
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Mesozoic era 135
Longipteryx
chaoyangensis)
Sahara
Cape
Aegocrioceras
spathi
136 Earth‘s history
2.3.4.6
Pollination can be either wind (anemophilous) or ani For example, they usually produce a very high number of
maldriven (zoophilous). The first seed plants were anemo pollen and, in addition, their surface area is enlarged in or
philous, with zoophilous flowers having evolved from der to increase chances of contact between pollinators and
anemophilous ancestors. This development was likely done pollen grains. This increased surface area is achieved by the
relatively early, since all extant angiosperms are pollinated excretion of a pollination drop. This drop contains sugar, in
either by animals or derived from animalpollinated ances creasing stickiness and reducing rates of evaporation. Early
tors. insects with mouthparts designed for licking or sucking prob
Zoophilous pollination evolved through associations ably developed a habit of eating this pollination drops and
of flowers and insects, which used specialised structures the excretion of the stigma of early angiosperms. Finally, the
or excretions located in or near the (originally anemophil morphology of pollinators evolved in parallel with that of
ous) flower as a source for food. Pollen from windpolli flowers, which developed specialised flower morphologies
nated plants is dispersed randomly by the wind. However, and structures, such as nectar leaves, to facilitate the pollina
windpollinated plants have a number of specialised adap torflower interaction.
tations that increase the likelihood of successful pollination.
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Mesozoic era 137
Ginkgo
Eranthis hyemalis
138 Earth‘s history
2.3.5
The Cenozoic era
The Mesozoic was followed by the Cenozoic era, begin The formation of these high mountain areas led to increased
ning around 66 million years ago and is still ongoing. The levels of erosion and thus higher influx of calcium and mag
Cenozoic is divided into the Palaeogene, Neogene, and Qua nesium ions in the oceans. In turn, this caused increasing
ternary periods. lime precipitation, consequently leading to the withdrawal
In turn, the Palaeogene comprises the Palaeocene, Eo of carbon dioxide from the atmosphere. At this point, the
cene, and Oligocene epochs, which can be further subdivided carbon dioxide concentration of the atmosphere dropped
into nine ages. The Neogene includes the Miocene and Pli from 1,000 ppm to around 500 ppm, significantly cooling
ocene epochs, which include eight ages. Finally, the Quater the climate. This phase characterised by a sharp drop in car
nary includes the Pleistocene, which comprises four ages, as bon dioxide concentrations corresponds approximately with
well as the Holocene, which is not further divided. the evolution of more efficient carbon dioxide fixation mech
In the early Palaeogene, the climate was warm and hu anisms in plants, especially C4 photosynthesis. Yet another
mid. During this period, the Indian and Asian tectonic plates sharp decline in carbon dioxide levels to under 300 ppm was
collided resulting in the upfolding of the Himalayas. At the experienced during the upper Miocene and Pliocene, final
same time the African plate pushed the Adriatic and the Eu ly resulting in the Cenozoic Ice Age. The period comprising
ropean plates together resulting in the upfolding of the Alps. these glaciations is known as the Quaternary.
The Cenozoic was previously divided into the Tertiary importance of anthropogenic activity. As a result, the Gela
and Quaternary periods. In this paradigm, the Tertiary com sian was shifted to the Quaternary after being the youngest
prised the Palaeocene, Eocene, Oligocene, Miocene, and Pli age within the Pliocene, lengthening the Quaternary period
ocene epoch. The Gelasian age, which is now assigned to the from 1.8 to 2.588 million years. As a result, all glacial strata
Quaternary, was previously listed as the youngest age within now belong to the Quaternary.
the Pliocene, and thus within the Tertiary. Due to this strong The Cenozoic in general, and especially its youngest pe
imbalance in length between the Tertiary (~63 million years) riod, the Quaternary, comprises relatively short geological
and the Quaternary (~2.5 million years), the Cenozoic was time frames. This is often justified by the relatively important
reorganised into the Palaeogene (43 million years) and Ne influence of its constituent ice ages within the development
ogene (23 million years). This new proposed organisational of the planet. However, ice ages within older eras were not
structure has been widely accepted internationally. However, divided into their own periods. The exceptional position of
a recognition of the Quaternary was also increasingly prop the Quaternary as the youngest period is therefore more like
agated and finally accepted as a result of its strong climatic ly motivated by its exceptionally good remaining physical re
(Ice Age) and ecological differences, as well as the increasing cord as well as its importance with respect to hominisation.
anthropogenic: (Grk.: anthropos = man, gen = cause) caused,
hominisation: ppm: parts per million
See also: C4
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 139
Holocene
Quaternary Pleistocene Calabrian
Gelasian
Piacenzian
Pliocene Zanclean Upper Pleistocene
5.333 Ma
Messinian
Tortonian
Neogene Serravallian
Miocene
Langhian
Burdigalian
Aquitanian
Middle Pleistocene
Oligocene
Rupelian
Priabonian
Bartonian
Palaeogene Eocene
Ypresian
Selandian
Palaeocene
Danian
140 Earth‘s history
2.3.5.1
The Palaeogene period
The Palaeogene is the oldest period within the Cenozoic, in a mostly temperate climate. The air temperature was so
lasting from 66 to 23 million years ago. It is further subdi moderate during this time that even the poles were not glaci
vided into the Palaeocene (66–56 million years ago), Eocene ated and climate at the poles was temperate.
(56–33.9 million years ago), Oligocene (33.9–23 million Only in the Oligocene were the continents far enough
years ago) epochs. apart that a circumpolar oceanic current could form. Dur
At this time, the Atlantic was initially not fully developed. ing this time, the climate cooled by around 5 °C and glaciers
By the end of the Palaeocene, Greenland and Europe had began to expand. As a result of the increased glaciation, sea
drifted apart, but a land bridge still existed between Eurasia, levels dropped by up to 150 m, drying out a number of shal
Greenland, and the North American continent. In addition, low seas and, among other things, connecting the Iberian
during the Palaeocene, Africa and India were already sep Peninsula to Europe and Europe, in turn, to Asia. At this
arated from the other southern continents, but Antarctica, time, the Tethys Ocean was separated into the Mediterrane
Australia, and South America were still connected with each an Sea and the ParaTethys Ocean in eastern Europe. During
other. They remained relatively close together, even when the the Oligocene, the African continent was still largely isolated
southern continents finally did separate, during the Eocene. from Europe and Asia. At the same time, the folding of the
The early Palaeogene was slightly cooler than the Cretaceous, Alps and the uplift of the Rocky Mountains reached their
but it warmed slightly as the period progressed. The Palae climax during this epoch.
oceneEocene boundary itself was marked by a temperature The early Palaeogene was also characterised by a radia
rise of around 5–6 °C, possibly as a result of the release of tion and diversification of birds and mammals. Towards the
carbon dioxide or methane hydrate, before declining again to end of this period, proboscideans were the largest land mam
their previous values over a period of approximately 200,000 mals. The fauna on each continent initially developed large
years. The Palaeocene and Eocene epochs were overall hu ly in isolation. However, a land bridge between Africa and
mid and warm. The position of the continents resulted in Eurasia, which formed around 27 million years ago, allowed
warm water moving southwards along the coasts, resulting animals to once again spread themselves further.
The Alpine orogeny refers to the last global mountain Europe while Africa drifted further to the northeast causing
building phase in Earth’s history, during which the Alps were the uplift of the Western Alps and the Apennines. At the
formed. The process of this orogeny lasted from the Cre same time the older Variscan mountains of middle and west
taceous through the strongest uplift phase of the Miocene ern Europe, began to rise over the sea surface of the ParaTe
around 20 million years ago until present days. In total, the thys once again. At the end of the Palaeogene, the Alps were
Alpine orogeny encompassed a time frame of around 100 largely upfolded. The ParaTethys Ocean closed except for
million years, fading since around 5 million years. The ice a few residual basins (such as the Black and Caspian seas).
ages of the Pleistocene in the last 2 million years significant The formation of mountains (Alps, Himalayas) and the
ly influenced the appearance of the mountains in existence increased precipitation of carbonates led to a reduction of
today. As part of the alpine orogeny, the Atlas, Pyrenees, carbon dioxide concentration, thus contributing to climat
Balearic Islands, Alps, Carpathians, Apennines, Rhodopes, ic cooling. Later in the Oligocene, the climate cooled even
Balkans, Anatolia, Caucasus, Hindu Kush, Karakoram, and more, until Antarctica was finally glaciated roughly 30 mil
the Himalayas all the way to the western mountains of Indo lion years ago. Through the cooler and drier climate, the de
china and Malaysia had been formed. sert stretched out across the subtropics, and increasing glaci
In the early Palaeogene, the Adriatic microplate, which ation rates caused lowering of sea levels over extensive land
segregated from the African plate, collided with preAlpine areas along the margins of continental shelves.
trunked mammals:
the Elephantidae (elephants)
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 141
Mesohippus
Ocean
Indian Ocean
Sahara India
Cape Siberia
Ruhr area
Great Lakes South China
Mexico Australia
Crommium wil
Dorudon atrox
142 Earth‘s history
2.3.5.2
The Neogene period
The Neogene period spans from 23 to 2.6 million years periods, the polar ice caps melted completely and the result
ago and is divided into the Miocene (23–5.3 million years ing rise in sea level flooded parts of Europe with shallow seas
ago) and the Pliocene (5.3–2.6 million years ago) epochs. and caused the continent to disintegrate into smaller islands.
The Miocene epoch is characterised by the Alpine oroge The Rhone and Tagus basins were, at that point, large shal
ny. The African plate pushed the Adriatic plate as an indent low seas on the European continent.
er into the Eurasian plate, causing the folding of the Alps. At that time, Europe’s flora was dominated by subtrop
At the same time, the folding of the Himalayas, caused by ical species, such as evergreen deciduous forests of oak, as
the collision of the Indian and Eurasian plates proceeded. well as members of the laurel family, magnolias, pines, figs,
In North America, the Rocky Mountains rose during the and rattan palms. Mangroves grew along Europe’s coast
Miocene. During the Pliocene, global mountain building lines. However, the climate started cooling and drying again
has come to a standstill, but the mountains are still being around 15 million years ago during the Middle Miocene.
uplifted. In addition, the Pliocene is characterised by the for Finally, in the Pliocene, the climate was relatively stable
mation of a land bridge between North and South America. and warm, with annual average temperatures of around 5 °C
The Miocene was an epoch of climatic warming. Already higher than they are today. A further cooling period occurred
in the Lower Miocene, warm temperate to subtropical cli during the end of the Pliocene, the start of an impending ice
mates prevailed even in northern latitudes. During certain age.
transgression:
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 143
Sahelanthropus tschadensis
Australopithecus afarensis
Ocean
Indian Ocean
Sahara India
Cape Siberia
Ruhr area
Pinus brevis Acer Great Lakes South China
Mexico Australia
4
photosynthesis
In the Oligocene, 35–30 million years ago, the carbon di synthesis is particularly advantageous under hotdry climatic
oxide concentration of the atmosphere decreased to below conditions. Although only around 3 % of extant plant species
500 ppm. As a result, the global climate became cool and carry out C4 photosynthesis, the process contributes around
arid. The first C4 plants arose during this period and per 23 % to terrestrial primary production. Most types of C4
haps slightly earlier. During the Miocene, C4 photosynthesis plants – around 60 % – are grasses living in subtropical and
evolved in many different plant lineages. At first, these plants tropical climates. The high productivity within these eco
played a quantitatively minor role. The more arid conditions systems is a prerequisite for the high densities of herbivores
were initially reflected in the shift from forest to C3 grassland. found there.
The diversification and propagation of many succulent plant The shift from forest to grassland on the one hand (be
groups, such as cacti, occurred in parallel to the spread of fore 30–10 million years), and from C3 to C4 grassland on
grasslands around 10 million years ago. the other (mainly in the last 10 million years), were therefore
Before around 10 million years, the CO2 concentration of temporally separate events. This fundamental change within
the Earth’s atmosphere dropped further below 300 ppm and tropical and subtropical ecosystems created the foundations
the climate became increasingly arid. As a result, C4 plants for the spread of large herbivores and thus contemporary Af
spread quickly across the savannas and grasslands, coming to rican savanna food webs around 1.8 million years ago as well
dominate the lower latitudes since at least 2–3 million years. as for the evolution of hominids and humans.
C4 photosynthesis arose as a consequence of the reduced
availability of carbon dioxide in the atmosphere. C4 photo
arid: stomata:
ppm: parts per million
RubisCO: succulent: (Lat.: sucus = juice, suculentus
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 145
In Europe, C4
cant in areas around the Mediterranean. In
result, C4 plants and, as a result, these
3
plants
4
C4
photosynthesis
4
4
Since then, C4 photosynthesis has developed
C4
Great Plains, USA
4
grasslands
Pakistan
and
4
Kenya
C4
eral global cooling Miocene
4
the Pliocene
4
4
and CAM photosynthesis
C4 photosynthesis has likely developed independently prefixation) by the enzyme PEP carboxylase forming a
approximately 70 times. This multiple evolution of C4 pho C4sugar (oxaloacetate).
tosynthesis in a geologically relatively short period of time Within the ‘normal’ form of C4 photosynthesis, the prefix
indicates a strong selection pressure in favour of photosyn ing is achieved via PEP carboxylase that occurs in the mes
thetic pathways that reduces the impact of photorespiration. ophyll cells; but they do not contain RubisCO. The resulting
The basic advantage of C4 photosynthesis is the mainte oxaloacetate is transported into the bundle sheath cells. Here,
nance of a high carbon dioxide partial pressure for the Cal carbon dioxide is released from the oxaloacetate, which is
vin cycle. In this way photorespiration, that is the use of ox then used as a substrate by RubisCO. The same principle is
ygen in place of carbon dioxide, as a substrate by RubisCO, found in the CAM photosynthesis. However, the separation
is substantially suppressed. This high carbon dioxide partial of the prefixation via PEP carboxylase and the fixation via
pressure is achieved by a spatially separated prefixation (in RubisCO is implemented in CAM photosynthesis within the
the case of a CAM photosynthesis this is a time separated same cells.
ATP: hydrogen carbonate anion: 3
–
bundle sheath cells: cells surrounding the vascular tissue of NADPH: reduced form of nicotinamide adenine dinucleotide
plants phosphate (NADP)
Calvin Cycle: partial pressure of carbon dioxide: the degree of pressure
CAM (Crassulacean Acid Metabolism): PEPcarboxylase:
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 147
4
plants is, in contrast to C3
+
PEPcarboxylase: PEPcarboxylase uses hydrogen carbonate
4
body
3 HCO3–
3 phosphoenolpyruvate 3 oxaloacetate
+
3
3 AMP + 3 Pi
3 NADP+
3 ATP
3 pyruvate
3 pyruvate +
3 NADP+
RubisCO: RubisCO
uses carbon dioxide as 3 CO2
C3 body
In C4 i
+
+
3 ADP + 3 Pi
3 ATP
3 ribulose5phosphate
is suppressed. High CO2 2
glycerinaldehyde3phosphate
Pi
RubisCO
2 H2O 5 glycerinaldehyde3phosphate
3 phosphoenolpyruvate oxaloacetate
+
NADP+
day
starch
night
phosphoenolpyruvate
AMP + Pi vacuole
ATP
the Calvin cycle. In contrast to C4 photosynthesis the
pyruvate
+
NADP+
RubisCO
RubisCO is greatly reduced by the high carbon diox
Calvin cycle
chloroplast
148 Earth‘s history
2.3.5.5
The Quaternary period
The Quaternary lasts from 2.6 million years ago until the nary are relatively well developed and can be easily identi
present day. It is divided into the Pleistocene (2.6 million to fied. In addition, the Quaternary terrestrial environment was
11,700 years ago) and the Holocene (11,700 years ago until heavily overprinted by the multiple advances of glaciers.
the present). During the Quaternary, flora and fauna are also strong
The Quaternary is the period of the Cenozoic (or Quater ly influenced by the advances of glaciers and associated
nary) Ice Age. During this period hominisation took place, sea level variations. Especially in Europe, due to different
in other words, the evolution of humans. Although Antarc mountain chains, a fragmentation of previously contiguous
tica was already glaciated in the late Palaeogene, beginning populations took place and consequentely, a biogeographical
around 30 million years ago, ice settled over the Arctic dur differentiation. In contrast, the land bridges formed during
ing the Quaternary. As such, the Cenozoic Ice Age began cold phases facilitated the spread of animal and plant species
already in the Palaeogene, but the onset of glaciation in the across continental borders, a trend that has been increasingly
northern hemisphere marked the beginning of the Quater reinforced during the Holocene by the anthropogenic spread
nary. During the Quaternary, glacial (cold phases) periods al of animal and plants species.
ternated with interglacials (warmer phases). The last warmer An extinction event as big as the previous big five mass
phase of the Quaternary Ice Age is known as the Holocene. extinction events is thought to have been triggered by the
The continents reached their presentday position during dispersal of humans and increased industrialisation. The
the Quaternary. The Quaternary is relatively short in com biological, geochemical, and climatic consequences of this
parison with other geological periods. As the Quaternary current species extinction remain unclear.
reaches up to the present day, sediments from the Quater
hominisation:
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 149
Homo neanderthalensis
Ocean
Indian Ocean
Sahara India
Cape Siberia
Ruhr area
Great Lakes South China
non is thought to have been caused by increased erosion due to the Cenozoic
Mexico Australia
consequent changes in erosion behaviour
Glyptodon Smilodon
Smilodon fatalis
150 Earth‘s history
2.3.5.6
The Cenozoic Ice Age
The Quaternary period corresponds to the Cenozoic Ice the climate around Antarctica cooled leading to further gla
Age, which is characterised by changes between glacial (cold) ciations.
and interglacial (warmer) periods. Between long glacial pe The closure of the Isthmus of Panama and thus the con
riods and the considerably shorter interglacials temperatures nection of North and South America around 4.6 million
varied by around 10 °C. Overall, the climate was cooler even years ago resulted in major changes to ocean currents in the
during the warmest interglacial periods of the Quaternary Northern Hemisphere. Warm tropical water was transport
Ice Age than during the Palaeogene and Neogene. ed to the North, activating the Gulf Stream. The change of
During interglacial periods, ice remained on land masses ocean currents led to a warming up of the Northern Hemi
near the poles as well as at high mountain regions. The Ce sphere. The increased supply of warmer water led to higher
nozoic Ice Age lasts around 2.58 million years. levels of atmospheric moisture in the Arctic, leading to the
The Cenozoic glaciation arose from the drift of continen further spread of glaciers since around 2.7 million years.
tal landmasses and the associated changes in global ocean In addition, decreasing volcanism caused greenhouse gas
currents. During the Oligocene, Antarctica shifted enough concentrations to fall in the atmosphere, causing a general
of a distance from Australia and South America to allow for cooling of the atmosphere and leading to further glaciation
a circumpolar oceanic current to form, blocking out warmer at the polar regions.
water masses from penetrating near Antarctica. As a result,
equinox: interglacial:
cial periods
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 151
152 Earth‘s history
2.3.5.7
Hominisation refers to the biological and cultural devel that remained in Africa. These four species of the genus
opments of humans (Homo). At the very earliest, based on Homo likely lived simultaneously and it is likely that the
fossils from Chad and East Africa, upright hominins evolved different lineages crossbred at times during the development
around 6–7 million years ago in Africa. Phylogenetically the of modern humans.
ancestors of chimpanzees diverged from the ancestors of hu Homo sapiens has the largest skull and smallest masticatory
mans around 6.5–5.5 million years ago. apparatus of all primates and is distinguished from other
The australopithecines are an extinct group of hominins species of great apes through their bipedalism, a large
from around 3.5 to 1.8 million years ago. They lived for the neocortex (a region of the cerebral cortex), reduced incisors
most part in savannah and bush lands, specifically in gallery and canines, and by its sexual and reproductive behaviour
forests along watercourses. Although most australopithecines and distinctly material culture.
walked upright, they still regularly held onto or clung to trees. The Palaeolithic Age began around 2.6 million years with
The first representatives of the genus Homo (Homo the use of simple stone tools. In the Lower (early) Palaeolithic,
habilis and Homo rudolfensis) developed presumably from hominin populations learned to master fire and in the Middle
the australopithecines around 2–3 million years ago. Palaeolithic they were able to improve their development of
The skulls of these species are lighter than those of the tools, such as hand axes. Finally, blades and artworks were
australopithecines, with smaller upper and lower jaws, but produced since the Upper Palaeolithic. With the beginning
a larger brain volume. Homo erectus developed from Homo of reforestation after the onset of the Holocene warm period
rudolfensis and became the first member of the genus to around 11,700 years ago, new hunting techniques were
master fire and to leave the African continent. A further required, leading to the development of, in particular, bows
enlargement of the brain developed from Homo erectus and arrows. Stock farming and agriculture arose during the
leading to Homo heidelbergensis, roughly 800,000 years ago, Neolithic, in Mesopotamia around 13,000 years ago and in
and subsequently Homo neanderthalensis in Europe. Homo Europe around 7,500 years ago. The increased use of metals
sapiens developed from members of the Homo erectus lineage led to the Bronze Age, which started roughly 4,200 years ago.
The ancestors of modern humans evolved in Africa under open prey and gain access to the marrow of longer bones.
initially hot and humid climatic conditions. As a result of cli Presumably, the targeted use of tools arose from this initial
matic change in connection with the dawn of the Cenozoic development. Probably the most important evolutionary
Ice Age, desertification spread across many parts of Africa step for early humans was the development of hunting and,
and the soft fruits and leaves that sustained hominid pop linked to this, improvements in communication. Together,
ulations became increasingly scarce. As a result, australo these changes led to the development of a larger brain.
pithecines split into two main lineages. The first was a more That eventually became a problem because the female pel
‘robust’ lineage, with enlarged teeth and strongly developed vis could not enlarge itself sufficiently to accommodate the
masticatory muscles, specializing in fibrous, celluloserich growing head circumference of newborns. For humans, this
food (grasses and seeds). The jaw muscles were hinged upon eventually led to the evolution of a shorter gestation period
a clearly visible bony crest on the vertex of the skull. The sec and earlier birth, coupled with a longer brooding phase and
ond lineage became increasingly omnivorous, adding meat a prolonged childhood and adolescence.
to its diet likely after sharp stones were first used to break
gallery forest:
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 153
H. sapiens
‘Gracile’ australopithecines – the genus Australopithecus ‘Robust’ australopithecines – the genus Paranthropus
Australopithecus sensu stricto generally ate Paranthropus had a diet specialised in hard,
Australopithecus afarensis P. robustus; right: P.
aethiopicus
Australopithecines
Australopithecus anamensis
Sahelanthropus tchadensis is considered to
154 Earth‘s history
2.3.5.8
The future development of life on Earth depends on the Declines in carbon dioxide concentrations will favour C4
planet’s future temperature development and, therefore, on photosynthesis in future.
longterm variation of solar radiation. In this context, the C3 plants will likely not be viable in about 100 million
current anthropogenicallyinduced climatic warming is rele years. However, due to further rising surface temperatures,
vant for the current development of biodiversity. For the long C4 plants are also predicted to go extinct in around 800–900
term development of biodiversity, however, i.e. in geological million years. At that point, the planet’s average surface tem
time periods, changes in the sun’s radiation are critical. perature will exceed 30 °C and, as a result, higherlevel eu
Solar radiation comes from the continuous fusion pro karyotes will likely go extinct. All surviving eukaryotic line
cesses within the sun and is therefore highly dependent on ages will eventually go extinct in around 1,200 million years,
changes in the sun’s material composition which continuous when surface temperatures are set to surpass 50 °C. Some
ly changes resulting in increasing solar radiation. The temper prokaryotes will survive at these high temperatures, though
ature on Earth is currently stabilised by the carbonatesilicate even these lineages are predicted to die off in around 1,300–
cycle: at higher temperatures, silicate weathering patterns are 1,600 million years, leaving behind only extremophiles living
stronger and more prevalent, with the released ions leading deep within Earth’s crust for a short time period. In 6.5 bil
to greater carbonate precipitation – the atmosphere thus is lion years the sun will develop into a red giant and will likely
increasingly deprived of carbon dioxide, a greenhouse gas. swallow the Earth in roughly 7.6 billion years.
extremophile:
tal conditions
See also:
The Phanerozoic eon: the Cenozoic era 155
photosynthesis. As a result, the decline in carbon dioxide
3
4
Australia Australia
Eurasia Eurasia Eurasia
Novopangaea
Australia
3
photo
3
plants are predicted to
4
C4plants: Zea mays, Amaranthus caudatus
157
3.1 Basics of biodiversity
Considering the relationship between the taxonomic reso unknown to what extent species correspond to the under
lution and the species distribution patterns is of practical rel standing of species in higher organisms. Species in micro
evance in a number of ways. organisms are possibly more comparable with the higher
Many conservation measures depend on both the number taxonomic units in metazoan and land plants. In addition,
of individuals in question and the size of their distribution relatively few microorganisms have been characterised taxo
area. Both the number of individuals and the distribution nomically, and their distribution patterns remain largely un
area depend on the study’s taxonomic resolution and the known.
particular species concept used. Molecular analyses show Depending on the interpretation and on the species con
that many morphological species, for example, are actually cept used, microorganisms can be understood to have very
distinct species complexes comprised of a number of bio wide or very narrow distributions. A popular viewpoint
logical species. Although the actual distribution remains the regarding the distribution of microorganisms is the ‘Every
same, the distribution range of the morphological species is thing is Everywhere’ hypothesis, which claims that species
broken up into several different distribution areas of the bio under a certain size are found globally and that only the
logical species. As a consequence, common and widespread ecological conditions of the habitat in question determine
morphological species may actually be a species complex whether a species occurs locally. Opponents of this view pos
comprising rare, endemic taxa. In these cases, the knowledge it that microorganisms and higher organisms are both largely
or use of a different species concept would be highly relevant comprised of endemic organisms and therefore have similar
for planning future conservation strategies. distribution patterns.
The complexities of species definitions are even more
pronounced in the case of microorganisms, where it remains
endemic: punctiform distribution:
cal area
See also:
Basics: biogeographic distribution of taxa 159
Pica pica Corvus monedula
Corvus cornix Corvus corone cornix Garrulus glandarius Corvus corax
Corvus corone Corvus corone corone
United States
160 Distribution of present day biodiversity
3.1.1
Species description methodologies change with the devel assignment has been invalidated, species may remain in the
opment of novel scientific methods. For example, the rise of literature under a number of names, specifically if the names
PCR and sequence analyses increasingly led to the use of have become popular and are in common use.
molecular data within species descriptions. To that end, new A large number of species have, therefore, been indepen
species are sometimes even designated based on molecular dently described two or more times for a number of reasons,
features alone, though such an approach is problematic spe including the existence of intraspecific variants, sexual di
cifically in light of taxonomic revisions due to the lack of morphism, or clear generational change within a species.
data to compare with other similar species. Therefore, it is Even ignorance of an existing description can lead to double
helpful when all of the underlying theoretical underpinnings descriptions. Species descriptions may also be considered in
of the species delimitation – specifically the applied species valid because they do not apply rules specific to a particular
concept – are stated for the comparative assessment of differ discipline.
ent species descriptions. As a result of all of these factors, it is vital to make a dis
As a result of new findings, many species have been tinction between the number of published species names and
shifted into other or novel genera. Though the ‘old’ species the number of valid species that may exist in nature.
DNA bank: Polymerase Chain Reaction (PCR):
intraspecific:
See also:
Basics: definition of species 161
Chlorella pulchelloides
i.e.
i.e.
pulchella = nice
162 Distribution of present day biodiversity
3.1.2
Delimitating species is different from defining the concept In contrast with biology, which considers only extant (liv
of species, though the two are often mistakenly taken as the ing) species, palaeontology also accounts for the change of
same thing. For example, according to the biological species species over time. Palaeontologists only have the morpho
concept, species are defined by their reproductive isolation. logical features of fossils at their disposal, whereas biologists
In practice, however, the examination of this criterion is can examine the molecular, behavioural, and phylogenetic
complicated, and the recognition of different species is most features. Therefore, palaeontology almost always uses a
ly on morphological and molecular dissimilarity. ‘morphological’ species concept, delimiting species based on
Biology most commonly uses the biological species con physical differences. The oftenapplied ‘chronological’ spe
cept, where species are groups of actual or possibly compat cies concept is basically a morphological species concept,
ible natural populations isolated from other such groups by but it allows for the variation of species over geological time
reproductive isolation. Since hybrids may occur after the periods. Strictly speaking, it is not an alternative concept but,
mating of two different species, a refined definition requires rather, it is a differential practice of species delimitation.
that only descendants within a species are fertile but descend The different practices of species delimitation in biology
ants of two different species are not. and palaeontology are, therefore, largely a matter of the pos
On the other hand, the ‘recognition’ species concept is sibilities of species identification and delimitation rather
based on species that are defined as sex partners – be it at the than a matter of deviating species concepts.
level of gametes, sex apparatus, or of individuals – that can
recognise each other as sex partners.
reproductive isolation:
Horizontal Gene Transfer (HGT):
ioural differences
See also:
Basics: definition of species 163
164 Distribution of present day biodiversity
3.1.3
16S:
Small Subunit (SSU):
18S:
primers:
See also:
Basics: definition of species 165
Euastrum oblongum
Euastrum oblongum
Euastrum crassum Euastrum crassum
166 Distribution of present day biodiversity
3.1.4
Biodiversity is complex. In research, and perhaps even The most widely used diversity index, the Shannon in
more so for the communication of science to the public, it dex (H), is comprised of both the species richness and the
is often necessary to break down biodiversity information to uniformity of the species distribution within an area. It is
one or a few key numbers, or indices. sometimes mistakenly referred to as the ShannonWeaver or
The term biodiversity is often taken as a synonym for spe ShannonWiener index. The Shannon index of uniformly
cies richness, though these terms are subtly different. Species distributed species is equal to the logarithm of natural spe
richness denotes the number of species found in a particular cies diversity (or H = ln S). This index is unlimited and,
habitat. It is not comprised of information about structural therefore, can even take large values.
dominance or the distribution of species within that habitat. The Simpson index (D), similar to species evenness, pro
The term biodiversity, on the other hand, includes both vides information about species dominance within a habitat.
the number of species present in a habitat (species diversity, This index ranges from 0 to 1 and offers the probability that
or species richness [S]) and the degree of uniformity of their two randomly sampled individuals in a population belong to
distribution (evenness [E])). A variety of measurements and the same species. Conversely, the GiniSimpson index (1–D)
indices has been developed to describe biodiversity on the refers to the probability that two randomly selected individu
basis of these two dimensions. Both do not consider the ab als do not belong to the same species. Compared with the
solute abundance of species or the total biomass within an Shannon, the Simpson index is less prone to shifts in biodi
area. versity.
Each diversity index characterises diversity in a different exponents and underweighted for high exponents (e.g. Simp
manner by variations in how they integrate the number of son index).
species present and the degree of evenness of their distribu In a biological context, the species number is usually in
tion (the uncertainty, similar to the concept of entropy from tuitively considered as the basis for measuring biodiversity:
physics). Most indices consider species richness as well as when two communities show the same distribution, for in
the evenness of their distribution. stance, when all species have the same abundance, diversity
Most diversity indices are proportionate to the sums of should be proportionate to the number of entities (i.e. spe
q
) of the cies). A community with eight species would be considered
distinct species (p: relative abundance of the species; q: expo twice as diverse as a community with four species. This rela
nent, different for the different indices). tionship is reflected by the species richness. In contrast, both
For the special case of q = 0, the formula returns the spe the Shannon index and the Simpson index, as the most com
cies richness (p0 0
= number of species). For mon diversity indices, do not increase proportionately to the
2
). number of species. If, for instance, a meteor causes half of
While species richness (q = 0) does not consider the rela an area’s 200,000 species to go extinct (i.e. 100,000 species),
tive abundances of species – species are simply summed up these two indices would hardly change. For evenly distrib
– high values of q (as for the Simpson index with q = 2) uted species, the Shannon index would decrease from 12.2
will result in a disproportionately high weight of the rela to 11.5, corresponding to 5.6 %, and the GiniSimpsonIndex
tive abundance. Thus, the different indices mainly differ in would decrease from 0.999995 to 0.99999, corresponding to
the weight of these two measures, i.e. species richness and 0.0005 %. This negligible decrease does not correspond to
evenness. As a result, rare species are overweighted for low the intuitive expectations for measures of biodiversity.
See also:
Basics: cataloguing biodiversity 167
species richness
used
Shannon and Simpson indices
168 Distribution of present day biodiversity
3.1.5
Diversity indices do not always reflect the intuitive basic diversity would be minimal, even in a mass extinction situ
assumptions regarding biodiversity. These assumptions in ation.
clude, for example, that diversity should be proportional to A useful tool for the comparison of different diversity in
the number of species, if the species are evenly distributed; dices is the number of taxa (assuming an evenly distributed
for example, if half of the species go extinct, the diversity community) corresponding to the respective index value, i.e.
in a habitat with uniformly distributed species should drop the number of taxa that would, given that all taxa have the
by half. In addition, the different levels of diversity should same abundance, result in the respective index value. This
relate to each other – depending on the scientific viewpoint – equivalent number of species is also known as the ‘true di
either by addition ( diversity + diversity = diversity) or versity’. It is not the diversity indices themselves, but rather,
multiplication ( diversity x diversity = diversity). How it is their equivalent number (true diversity), which follows
ever, most diversity indices display a limited compliance to the intuitive assumptions for diversity measures. Both the
these relationships. Particularly in speciesrich communities, equivalent numbers for the Shannon index and for the Gini
both the Shannon and GiniSimpson indices only minimally Simpsonindex would correctly reflect the above described
comply with these assumptions. Thus, calculated changes in fictitious extinction event.
diversity: habitat:
diversity: and true diversity:
of diversity (i.e.
diversity (i.e. i.e.
diversity: dant)
See also:
Basics: cataloguing biodiversity 169
i.e.
= D –D
–e
170 Distribution of present day biodiversity
3.1.6
quasispecies (viral):
resulted from the same viral genome in a host
See also:
Basics: species concept limitations 171
capsid
head
core
protein sheath
capsid
neuraminidase
172 Distribution of present day biodiversity
3.1.7
Lichens are the product of a symbiosis between myco relationship, the mycobiontphotobiont interaction is often
bionts (fungi) and a photobiont. The fungal component is known as ‘controlled parasitism’.
usually a member of the Basidiomycota or sometimes of the Basic properties of lichens, such as growth patterns and
Ascomycota. The photobiont is either a green algae (Chlo the formation of characteristic acids, differ so widely from
rophyta), referred to as a phytobiont, or a cyanobacterium, those of their constituent partners that they appear as dis
known as a cyanobiont. There are around 25,000 known li tinctive organisms. Lichens are distinguished from each oth
chen species. er according to their shape and surface patterns: fruticose,
Although lichens are comprised of one fungal species, foliose, crustose, leprose and gelatinose. This subdivision
they can be made up of several phytobionts or cyanobionts, does not correspond, to phylogenetic relations.
though these rarely cooccur within the same lichen. Algae Crustose lichens are firmly anchored to the substrate by
may be grouped either in one layer (heteromeric) or may be their underside. Fruticose lichens have narrow ramifications
evenly distributed (homomeric). and specific stabilising elements. Gelatinous lichens swell
Lichens are named according to the mycobiont they con when they absorb water and shrink together when under
tain. The mycobiont is often reliant on the symbiosis for dry circumstances. The lichen leaf or leaves are often only
life, whereas phytobionts or cyanobionts are typically able loosely attached to the base of the organism, or with adhe
to sustain themselves outside the partnership. Carbohydrates sive organs (rhizines). Their thallus is lobed and erect.
and other nutrients supplied from the photobiont power the Lichens colonise different locations and materials, includ
mycobiont. The symbiotic advantage for algae is less clear, ing tree bark, soil, and the surface of rocks. Since they are
however, though as a result of the mycobionts, the algae are highly tolerant to cold, heat, and desiccation, they are also
protected from UVradiation and desiccation. In any case, found in extreme environments, including in Antarctica.
as the mycobionts seem to gain more from the symbiotic
thallus:
algae and fungi without the organisation of a cormus (sections
See also:
Basics: species concept limitations 173
Rocella fuciformis Rhizocarpon geographicum
Rocella
Cladonia
Collema nigrescens Xanthoria ectaneoides
174 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2
biodiversity:
life form:
ecoregion:
See also: Island biogeography: 3.2.1.4; Plate tectonics: 2.1.1.2
Biodiversity distribution 175
Taiga
Desert
176 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1
Estimates for global biodiversity range from around 3.5 ber of newly described species, the total number of species
million to more than 100 million species. These predictions could be estimated.
are based on extrapolations of known biodiversity, making The number of higher eukaryotes in the wild is probably
use of a number of different calculations. 5–10 million, although this estimate could double if it in
For example, based on the number of extant insect species cluded parasites which remain understudied. Similarly, it is
found on any given host plant, the total number of insects not possible to make a plausible estimate of the total diver
can be estimated based on the number of known plant spe sity of eukaryotic and prokaryotic microorganisms.
cies. However, such estimates rely on a profound knowledge For a number of reasons, even the total number of de
of host specificity; since knowledge in this field is not precise, scribed species can only be estimated: firstly, many species
strongly diverging estimates can be found. have been described multiple times, leading to the simulta
Other approaches estimate global biodiversity on the ba neous usage of synonymous names until taxonomic revi
sis of regional diversity in wellstudied regions; for example, sions eliminate all but one of them. Secondly, many species
can be estimated a global number of fungal species based on descriptions are taxonomically invalid. Thirdly, particularly
the relatively wellknown number of fungal species found on older descriptions were based on poor methodology in com
the British Isles. parison to modern techniques; it is often difficult to clarify
Other approaches are founded on the assumption that the to which type species these descriptions refer. Furthermore,
ratio of species richness between different groups of organ some ‘species’ are in fact species complexes rather than indi
isms is similar across different geographic regions. Based on viduals, comprising morphologically similar but inaccurately
this assumption, the global biodiversity of various groups of delineated species.
organisms can be extrapolated from the relative diversity of Finally, the uncertainty behind the estimation of the
these organisms at one location. Total diversity can be esti number of known species stems from differences in rules for
mated starting from a wellstudied region and at thus one species description between relevant disciplines (zoology,
globally studied organismal group. botany, microbiology, etc.). For example, several protist spe
A very different approach attempts to estimate total spe cies have been independently characterized both using the
cies diversity using the rate at which new species are de zoological and botanical codes. The variety of species con
scribed. Decreasing numbers of new taxa discoveries, for cepts existing between disciplines results in widely different
example, would indicate that most of these groups of organ species definitions and, ultimately, in a variety of often con
isms have already been described. By extrapolating the num flicting species descriptions.
extrapolation:
See also: Development of biodiversity: 2.3.1
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 177
vertebrates 60,979 71,000 The diversity of vertebrates is well known. To date, over
mammals 5,416 5,500
birds 9,917 10,000
8,300 10,000
amphibians 5,743 7,500
28,900 35,000
1,263,700 5,500,000
insects 950,000 4,000,000 insects, is very high. Although more species of insects have
other arthropods 150,000 635,000 been described than of any other group of organisms,
molluscs 70,000 120,000 only about a quarter of insects are thought to have been
nematodes 25,000 500,000 recorded thus far
platyhelminths 20,000 80,000
289,000 444,000
bryophytes 16,600 22,000 twothirds of land plant species have been described thus
ferns and club mosses 12,838 15,000 far
gymnosperms 930 1,000
angiosperms 258,650 320,000
diversity of these organisms
probably much higher in these groups than shown here
vertebrates
insects
other arthropods
Mollusca
Nematoda
other Metazoa
Magnoliophyta
other land plants
178 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1.1
Biodiversity on Earth is unevenly distributed: Some areas and coldspots are not necessarily the same across organismal
are particularly speciesrich (‘hotspots’) whereas other areas groups: for example, the southern tip of Africa, rich in plant
are populated by relatively few species (‘coldspots’). diversity, does not contain particularly many vertebrate spe
The estimate of biodiversity in a region usually hinges on cies.
one or a few organismal groups, often land plants or verte Most organisms are not included when hotspots are be
brates. Plants and vertebrates often have a higher biodiversity ing considered; it is thus unknown whether or not the areas
in tropical or subtropical regions. For plants, the southern which have been determined to be plant or vertebrate hot
tip of Africa is particularly rich in endemic species, anchor spots are also particularly rich in fungal, protist, or prokary
ing the biodiversity of the wider region. Biodiversity hotspots otic diversity.
endemic:
See also: Mediterranean biome: 3.2.2.8; Rainforest: 3.2.2.11
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 179
species count
vascular plants
low
high
Tropical rainforests, especially the Amazon basin, are characterised by
a high diversity and an abundance of endemic animal and plant species
Valley lakes of East Africa
species count
vertebrates
low
high
180 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1.2
norm of reaction: primary succession:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 181
tolerance
intolerance intolerance
an environmental gradient in which it could live. To that end
the niche space refers to the area in which a species could live
environmental gradient
fundamental niche
realised niche
environmental gradient
environmental gradient
environmental gradient
succession
Pioneer species dominate a habitat immediately versity
following a disturbance. The greater and more
frequent the disturbance, the lower the number
species diversity
182 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1.3
See also: Plate tectonics: 2.1.1.2
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 183
Anisotremus virginicus
Anisotremus taeniatus
Metriaclima spp. grazes food at the nursery with its terminal mouth
Metriaclima sp. Metriaclima callainos
Pseudotropheus spp. picks algae with its downwardsfacing mouth
Pseudotropheus demasoni Pseudotropheus sp.
Labeotropheus
Labeotropheus trewavasae Labeotropheus fuelleborni
i.e
184 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1.4
See also: Carbon: 2.3.3.8
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 185
plant species
Galapagos islands
Caribbean islands
with increasing species richness
species richness
creases with increasing
equilibrium
species richness
species richness on the island
The larger the island or the closer it is to other
Island biogeography relates not only to islands but also to all kinds of
isolated habitat types, including lakes, mountain ranges, and isolated
patches of forest. Higher levels of species richness on an ‘island’ lead to
As the size of the ‘island’ increases and the distance to similar habitats
species richness is
higher at equilibrium
species richness on the island
186 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1.5
Imbalance theories are based on the assumption of a slow tats in the northern hemisphere also occupy large areas of
colonisation (or recolonisation) of climate zones; in other land, but this fact is not reflected in high species richness.
words, the adaptation and dissemination of organisms in A second explanation based on equilibrium theory suggests
more recent geological periods have impacted their current that survival is simply ‘easier’ in the tropics, as it requires
distribution. To that end, the colonisation of cooler climate fewer special adaptations. Life in colder climates requires
areas remains ongoing, as most taxa originated and diver more specialised adaptions for survival during long periods
sified under warmer conditions. Geologically, we now live of frost. In the tropics, the necessity for certain combinations
in a relatively cold period after a long, considerably warmer of traits is far less restrictive and the probability of survival
period of time. Higher species richness in the tropics, there for newly evolved species with new combinations of traits
fore, may simply represent a ‘head start’ in the adaptation should be higher. Therefore, more species adapted to warm
of species to these climatic conditions. Ice ages have also climates should evolve over time than species adapted to
contributed to current conditions, as they were responsible colder climates. A third equilibriumbased theory is based
for higher extinction rates of species living in temperate and on solar energy, postulating that the tropics receive a higher
polar regions. The low number of species in cooler climates amount of solar radiation, and thus more energy is at the
could therefore also be explained as an incomplete postgla disposal of primary producers. The resulting higher primary
cial recolonisation of this habitat. production allows for a stronger niche differentiation (for
Equilibrium theories can be explained by distinct hypoth certain foods) at the highest trophic levels, thereby allowing
eses, three of which are outlined here: Firstly, tropical and for more coexisting species. However, the higher specializa
subtropical habitats occupy a greater area due to the spheri tion of herbivores causes a correspondingly higher rate of
cal shape of the planet. These habitats potentially offer more specialization in plants. In contrast, fewer species are able
space for organisms and more room for the differentiation to coexist in cooler locations where there is lower primary
of taxa. However, the higher biodiversity levels in the tropics production and higher seasonality.
cannot be entirely explained by area alone: Temperate habi
latitudinal:
See also: Ice age: 2.3.5.6; Climate: 3.2.2.1, 3.2.2.2; Plate tectonics: 2.1.1.2
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 187
The tropical and subtropical habitats occupy a greater land
drought, since the tropics are frostfree and endure low lev
more species. However, the large areas of land in temperate
climate zones of the northern hemisphere have compara
eas is therefore higher than in temperate and polar regions
large supply of food in the tropics can therefore be a cause
90
60
30
30
60
90
0 5 10
division of land masses
2
landmass
gions
188 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1.6
endemic: phylogenetics:
morphology:
taxonomy:
ubiquitous:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 189
silicate scales
Paraphysomonas
Paraphysomonas
cies
species is, however, unclear, and can currently not be used as evidence for or against a worldwide distribu
microorganisms remains controversial; again, it is unclear to what extent the markers actually necessitate
Many species considered ubiquitous
species diversity
size of organisms
of known species of macroorganisms increases as body size decreases. Morphological analyses demonstrate a reversal of this trend for organisms of less
190 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1.7
Alien species are taxa that have established themselves in In order to survive, alien species must be competitive in
an area where they did not exist before. As this has been the their new habitat. They are therefore often characterised
case for many species throughout Earth’s history, this defini by high reproductive rates, rapid growth, and high levels of
tion is commonly applied only to species that have migrated adaptability. Alien species are thus often rstrategists and gen
in the recent past. Although not universally accepted, an eralists. Alien species are also often associated with humans,
important year of reference for the delimitation of modern colonising anthropogenically altered landscapes quickly.
day alien species is 1492, the year in which Christopher Co They often fundamentally change the composition of the lo
lumbus reached the New World and the exchange of species cal biocenosis, for example through predation or as a result
between the Americas and Europe intensified. Humans are of competition pressure. Along with habitat fragmentation,
among the most important means (vectors) of transport for invasive species represent one of the most important factors
alien species. This is particularly true for travel by ship, as contributing to the extinction rate of current species.
the ballast water of boats plays a major role in facilitating the
spread of aquatic organisms.
The propensity for existing biodiversity to be threatened ien species. Disturbed ecosystems are also susceptible to the
by alien species is complex. In terms of individual habitats, establishment of new species, since disturbance events tend
areas of high biodiversity seem less prone to the establish to lower competitive pressures in an area. This phenomenon
ment of invasive species. In such habitats, competition for re explains why alien species so easily invade anthropogenically
sources is generally high and the immigration of new species influenced habitats.
may therefore be difficult to establish. On the other hand, the Some of the most important alien species cannot be re
opposite has been shown to be true for larger ecosystems: the garded as invasive, despite their continuous dissemination
number of invasive species appears to increase with the num and detrimental economic impact. For example, grape phyl
ber of species present. Larger ecosystems may be more prone loxera, a pest of commercial grapevines worldwide, spread
to species invasions because of an increased availability of slowly and its negative impact is only observed in plant
resources or because of a high internal heterogeneity of the (grape) species monocultures and almost not at all on the
ecosystem itself. Both factors favour the establishment of al wider biodiversity of newly invaded habitats.
anthropogenic: habitat fragmentation:
generalists:
rstrategists:
habitat:
sailing ballast:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 191
origin of the
Colorado potato
beetle
Phytophthora infestans)
Phytophthora infestans has an unclear
Irish famine of 1845–1953
19th and 20th centuries
1990
1995
natural
2010 1986
Dreissena polymorpha
Dreissena polymorpha)
and spread across Europe in the 19th and 20th centuries. In 1986, it was
The spread of zebra mussels fundamentally altered limnic ecosystems and the organisms they housed. A notorious example of the wider impact of zebra
Unio pictorum Rhodeus amarus
192 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.1.8
Many species have gone extinct in Earth’s history, not modern humans across the planet, although the extent of the
only during the prehistoric mass extinctions but also during effect of early humans on extinction rates remains unknown.
relatively recent history, including during the upper Cenozoic Climatic fluctuations and associated habitat shifts are also
Era. These relatively recent extinctions are partly a result of thought to have affected megafaunal extinction patterns.
changes in climatic conditions but are mainly due to human The effect of human activity on extinction patterns is
activities. Climatic fluctuations during the Quaternary (the clearer in the more recent past. Some species were even de
most recent of the three periods of the Cenozoic), especially liberately eliminated, such as the thylacine (also known as
fluctuations between glacial and interglacial periods, closely the Tasmanian tiger). Other species went extinct when alien
coincide with the extinction of many organisms. Extinction species were introduced, the best known example being the
rates of many larger mammals (megafauna) reached their dodo (Raphus cucullatus). This large, flightless bird, endemic
peak near the end of the last glaciation, roughly 11,000 years to the island of Mauritius, was wiped out when its nest sites
ago. This particular extinction included many large mam were destroyed by rats and feral livestock introduced by hu
mals of the colder periods, including the mammoth (Mam mans. Many species are currently threatened with extinc
muthus primigenius) and the woolly rhinoceros (Coelodonta an tion, and it is likely that many of these will in fact go extinct
tiquitatis), as well as those adapted to warmer periods, such in the coming decades. The extinction of some of these spe
as the forest elephant (Elephas antiquus) and the forest rhi cies, for example the Sumatran rhinoceros, can be delayed by
noceros (Dicerorhinus kirchbergensis). Many predators also dis national and international protective measures, although to
appeared at the same time, including the sabertoothed cats what extent these measures will be able to sustainably protect
(Homotherium spp., Smilodon spp.). The time of these extinc endangered wildlife remains unclear.
tions roughly correlates with the appearance and spread of
Cenozoic Era: megafauna:
glacial: palaeontology:
habitat fragmentation: Quarternary:
recent:
interglacial:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: pattern and mechanisms 193
1000 A
B M
A
R within 1,000 years
100 M
B
R
M
10
B
R
1.0
0.1
0 100
Smilodon
Thylacinus cynocephalus
Dicerorhinus sumatrensis,
194 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2
The borders of phytogeographic and zoogeographic biogeographic isolation of southern Africa is therefore far
provinces often run alongside each other, but they are not less pronounced.
exactly the same. This is particularly obvious in southern Noticeable differences between zoogeography and phyto
Africa, which has its own phytogeographic kingdom – the geography are also found on the border of the IndoMalayan
Cape Floristic Region – which is phytogeographically but (Orientalis) and Australasian regions. The zoogeographical
not zoogeographically separate from the Paleotropical King border at that location is marked by the Wallace line (be
dom (Paleotropis), which includes the rest of Africa. On the tween Bali and Lombok in the south and between Borneo
other hand, subdividing the Holarctic into the Palearctic and and Sulawesi in the north). The area between the Wallace
the Nearctic as well the Paleotropis into the Afrotropic and line and the Australian shelf edge is also referred to as Walla
the IndoMalayan (Orientalis) is more common in zoogeog cea and is partially separated from the large faunal kingdoms.
raphy than phytogeography. Presentday species distribution patterns here correlate with
The Cape Floral Region is the smallest of the six floral the presence of land bridges during the last ice age: Sumatra,
kingdoms on the continents, and includes the winter rain Java, Bali, and Borneo were connected to the Asian main
area on the southwestern tip of Africa. The dispersal of land via land bridges, and islands on the Sunda shelf were
plants to and from other floral kingdoms is greatly hampered connected to Australia in the same way. In contrast, the is
by adjacent deserts and semideserts (the Namib, Koo, Kala lands of Wallacea were not linked to the mainland through
hari). Consequently, many of the species found within the land bridges during the last ice age, and therefore deviate
Cape Floral Region are endemic; this region is also the most zoogeographically from the Indomalayan or Australasian
speciesrich floral kingdom in relation to surface area. For regions. The phytogeographical boundary in the region runs
the (mobile) fauna, the geographical barrier into the Cape along the Australian mainland. Only a few islands harbour
Floral Region is considerably easier to overcome; the zoo Australasian flora, whereas the Pacific island arc falls within
the Paleotropical Kingdom.
endemic:
See also: Plate tectonics: 2.1.1.2, 2.3.1.1
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 195
breakup of Pangaea, and were separated around 150 mya by the development
raphy and zoogeography: although the World Wide Fund for Nature
in the divisions
northern Africa and northern Asia
ca, including the highlands of Mexico, to the northern edge of the Hima boundaries of the biogeographic region deviate from the cul
northern Florida and Greenland layas
includes Australia and New Zealand
Australasia
layas and some areas to the east
tropical and subtropical moist deciduous forest temperate grassland
tropical and subtropical arid deciduous forest montane grass and bushland
tropical and subtropical coniferous forest
and hot deserts are placed together, whereas these are considered to
temperate deciduous and mixed forest tundra
temperate coniferous forest Mediterranean forest and bushland
desert and arid bushland
tropical and subtropical grasslands and bushland mangrove
rock and ice sheets
196 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.1
arid:
ecoregion:
humid:
Intertropical Convergence Zone (ITCZ):
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 197
20 50 100 150 200 250 300 350 400 450 500 600 700 800 900 1,000 1,200 1,400 1,600 1,800 2,000 2,500 3,000 3,500 4,000
tropical Convergence Zone, and low in sub
tropical areas
Westerly winds prevail in Equatorial Africa,
fall in the west compared to the east
[°C] [mm]
i.e. Allahabad, India
300
200
50 100
40 80
30 60
20 40
20
0 0
F M A M A N D
–39 –36 –33 –30 –27 –24 –21 –18 –15 –12 –9 –6 –3 0 3 6 9 12 15 18 21 24 27 30 33 36 39
198 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.2
The sun is at its highest point around the equator; conse Walter classification features nine distinct biomes which take
quently, equatorial territories experience the highest levels of established patterns of seasonality in precipitation and tem
solar radiation and temperatures on Earth. Solar radiation perature distribution into account. It distinguishes between
levels and average temperature drop with increasing distance Zonobiomes, Orobiomes and Pedobiomes. Zonobiomes
from the Equator. comprise landscapes similar with respect to climate, vegeta
The high levels of sunlight around the Equator cause tion, fauna and soil types; they run circularly around Earth
warm and moist air to rise. Consequently, the rising air cools in a similar manner to the climatic patterns. Orobiomes form
off and the saturation vapour pressure sinks, causing water a narrow girdle around the altitudes of mountain ranges, and
vapour to condense and form rain. The tropics are therefore Pedobiomes cover special sites characterised by distinct soils
consistently warm and humid. The rising air flows into high such as sand, rocks and saline soils.
er altitudes and disperses toward the poles; an atmospheric The Englishspeaking world often uses the Whittaker
circulation known as the Hadley cell. classification of biomes in which 25 biome types are char
These air masses sink again in the subtropics. As the air acterised mainly according to mean annual precipitation and
masses warm as they descend, the saturation vapour pressure evaporation. The discrepancy between this system and the
increases (the air can take up more moisture, meaning that German one is mainly based on varying methodologies of
the relative humidity sinks). As a result, the subtropical lati grouping ecosystems with similar climatic conditions, and
tudes are drier. The descending air masses split, either head on the difference in emphasis on the seasonality of precipita
ing back to the Equator or towards the poles. tion and temperature.
In temperate zones, the air tends to rise again (Ferrel cell), Another current biome classification system was designed
again causing higher levels of precipitation. At the perma by the World Wide Fund for Nature (WWF) and features
nently cold poles, the air current finally sinks again (Polar 14 major habitat types (biomes). This system is based on the
cell). result of various international case studies and conservation
Various authors present differing classification schemes assessments.
for biomes. In the Germanspeaking world, the Breckle and
evaporation:
solar climatic zones:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 199
These climate diagrams display:
Danmarkshavn
of sunlight at the equator and around the poles. Warm air rises at the
Polar cell Essen
Ferell cell
Malakal
Hadley cell
Makokou
Invercargill
Novolazarevskaja
As in the taiga, soils in the tundra are waterlogged and hill soil slippage (solifluction) is common even at gentle hill
are also characterised by low rates of organic decomposi slopes due to water saturation.
tion. They are humusrich permafrost (Gelisols), experienc On the basis of the vegetation type, one can differentiate
ing strong mixing by repeated freezing and thawing of upper the upper polar lichen and moss tundra from the lower po
soil layers (cryoturbation). Microbial degradation plays a mi lar dwarf shrub and meadow tundra. In addition to conifers,
nor role due to the low temperatures. The soils are only of woody plants found in the tundra are various deciduous trees
slight thickness, and are acidic and boggy. Soils in the area of such as birch and willows; the latter, however, are mostly
tundra bogs are rich in organic material (Histosols). Down dwarf shrubs and rarely proper trees. The impact of frost in
the winter is slightly lessened due to snow coverage.
assimilation: isotherm:
euthermic: torpor:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 201
10 20
0 0
Tropic
Equator –10
Tropic
–20
F M A M A N D
The tundra extends from the polar ice deserts to the boreal forest and is primarily limited to the northern hemisphere. Its climate is characterised by
regularly interrupted by short euthermic breaks
ment of the embryo comes to a near halt during this phase. The seed
takes on more water at the end of the dormancy period, so that the
embryo begins to develop again and eventually germinates
Cladonia rangiferina
202 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.4
Taiga
The boreal forest (taiga) biome is located between the 50º temperatures do not exceed 10 ºC for more than 120 days
latitude and the Arctic Circle in the northern hemisphere per year. At the taiga’s northern boundary, only around 30
and covers around 7.8 % of total land area. days per year have an average temperature of 10 ºC or higher.
The taiga is characterized by long winters with tempera Annual precipitation in the taiga is 250–500 mm, with the
tures dropping as low as to –70 ºC; temperatures rise above colder temperatures contributing to the low transpiration
an average of 10 ºC only in the three summer months. The rates that keep the water balance positive.
vegetation period in the taiga is short, spanning 80–150 Often just one or two tree species dominate boreal for
days. The longest periods of growth can be found in areas ests, commonly firs, spruces, larches and pines. Blueberry,
that are close to the ocean, for example in Scandinavia. The cranberry and mosses are common smaller plants of the
shortest growing season, on the other hand, can be found shrub and herb layer. The foliage of conifers is xeromorphic,
in the taiga’s northern continental areas bordering the tun adapted to cold and desiccation; larches dominate in the par
dra. The southern border of the boreal coniferous forest is ticularly cold winters of eastern Siberia because they are able
located where conditions are too unfavorable for the growth to drop their needles in winter and are thus better adapted to
of deciduous forest; in other words, roughly when average survive severe frosts.
Soils of the taiga are typically podzols. Conifer needles to further leaching of iron and aluminum compounds and of
are difficult to decompose, causing thick layers of litter to humic substances from the topsoil. These substances perme
accumulate on the ground. Many nutrients therefore re ate the subsoil, where they precipitate and accumulate.
main bound in the litter layer and trickle only slowly into In many areas of the boreal forest, the permafrost only
the ground, resulting in a dearth of nutrients in the soil for thaws in the upper 50–100 cm of the soil in summer. As a
plant growth. The lack of replacement of (alkaline) nutrient result, and despite the low rates of precipitation, taiga areas
ions acidifies the topsoil, with the resulting low pH leading are prone to flooding and commonly feature boggy areas.
air embolism: humin:
xeromorph:
See also: Ferns: 4.4.3.4;
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 203
[°C] [mm]
30 60
20 40
Tropic
10 20
Equator 0 0
Tropic –10
–20
F M A M A N D
surface
leached, bleached
soil horizon
Taiga soils have a slight thickness and are nutrient poor. Decomposing needles from conifers release organic acids, acidifying the topsoil and by that
through a compact body. Within a given animal taxon, the size of body ap
pendages become smaller from species living in warm biomes to cold bi
xeromorphic needleleaf
ing the long winters, plants cannot take in water through their roots and
wax deposits on the surface. Xerophytes also keep their needles throughout
short summer season. The narrow lumen of tracheids of conifers also render
them less vulnerable to collapse due to an air embolism caused by frost
induced dryness, as compared to the wide lumen trachea of deciduous trees
coniferous wood
204 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.5
browning: hibernation:
humus:
nemoral:
obligatory:
frost dessication: soil horizon:
See also: Halfevergreens: 3.2.2.11
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 205
30 60
Tropic
20 40
Equator
10 20
Tropic
0 0
F M A M A N D
The biome of temperate forests is characterised by warm summers and a veg
temporary frost periods
Temperate grasslands are dominated by soils rich in ac conditions. Leaching is hardly present at all in these soils,
cumulated humus, particularly Chernozems (black soils) though rising groundwaters can cause these soils to become
and kastanozems (brown soils). Chernozems, named after more carbonaterich.
the black colour from the humusrich topsoil, are character Grazing is of central importance to grasslands, preventing
istic of the humid tallgrass steppes, whereas Kastanozems, the emergence of hemicryptophytes and a buildup of litter.
named after their maroon colouration, are often found in As a rule, underground biomass is greater than that found
more arid, shortgrass plains. These soils are formed from above ground. Wetter areas are more likely to contain tall
calcareous materials subsequently mixed intensively by grasses, whereas shorter grass grows best in drier regions.
soildwelling animals through the process of bioturbation. Herbivores make use of two strategies to deal with
Climatic fluctuations, especially phases of drought or frost, drought conditions. Large herbivorous species, such as buf
reduce the degradation of organic matter, leading to the ac falo, may migrate great distances in order to find a seasonal
cumulation of humus and the creation of a humusrich top food supply. Smaller herbivores, on the other hand, such as
soil. Kastanozems are formed under similar conditions com prairie dogs, tend to rest under the earth during unfavourable
pared with the Chernozem soils, though in slightly more arid seasons.
arid: plant litter:
hemicryptophytes: shortgrass prairie:
tallgrass prairie:
humid:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 207
[°C] [mm]
20 40
Tropic
10 20
Equator
0 0
Tropic
–10
F M A M A N D
by a pronounced dry period, usually in the summer
208 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.7
Montane grass and bushlands are found in tropi Flooded grasslands are found on several different conti
cal, subtropical, and temperate climates in the montane nents, mainly in subtropical or tropical climates. Some of the
and alpine altitudes. They are particularly common in most wellknown such areas are the Everglades, the Pantanal
the South American puna and paramo, as well as in the and the Niger, as well as the Okavango Delta. Flooded grass
steppe areas of Tibet. Montane grass and bushlands ac lands make up only around 0.7 % of the planet’s total land area.
count for around 4 % of the planet’s total land area. Flooded grasslands are usually formed around tropi
As is common at altitude, climatic conditions in these ar cal or subtropical rivers in lowland areas of river deltas.
eas are usually cool and moist, with high levels of sunlight. They form a network of flooded grasslands, often just a
Montane grassland plants exhibit typical adaptations, in few centimetres deep but with a width of up to several
cluding rosette growth forms, hair, and wax deposits on the hundred kilometres, of deeper water basins and islands.
surface. Species are often endemic, especially in grass and Temperatures are often tropical to subtropical, and the
bushlands in isolated small mountain areas, such as at Kili precipitation has very little impact on the formation of
manjaro or Mount Kenya. Horst grasses are also typical. The vegetation, since the floodplains are fed by larger rivers.
grass and bushlands of humid (tropical) regions are often re Grasses grow in the low water level areas of flooded grass
ferred to as paramo, whereas the drier (subtropical) regions lands, though trees are known to grow at higher ground levels.
are known as puna. These terms are derived from the re The fauna is dominated by amphibious animals and birds.
gional designations of the grass and bushlands of the Andes.
Montane and flooded grasslands are special locations, slope. In addition, soils usually succumb to high erosion
where climatic conditions differ greatly from zonal ones. rates and do not store much water.
Temperatures decrease with altitude by around 0.6 ºC Soils in flooded grasslands, on the other hand, are largely
per 100 m, though at the same time solar radiation increases cut off from atmospheric oxygen supplies and are therefore
with height and the colour spectrum of the available sunlight anaerobic. Aboveground organs supply the rest of the plant,
shifts towards a higher ultraviolet (UV) component. including the roots, with oxygen.
Despite higher rates of rainfall, montane sites are often Since flooded grasslands predominantly occur in low
relatively dry since precipitation flows quickly through the altitudes, their climatic conditions correspond to the zonal
climate conditions.
endemic:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 209
[°C] [mm]
40 80
30 60
Tropic
20 40
Equator
10 20
Tropic
0 0
F M A M A N D
of geomorphological factors rather than climate
i.e.
of high levels of rainfall, erosion is strong and
Calcisol: perhumid:
heavy rain:
plant litter decomposition:
hematite: O3
humid: sclerophytes:
See also: Capensis: 3.2.2
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 211
[°C] [mm]
40 80
30 60
Tropic
20 40
Equator
10 20
Tropic
0 0
F M A M A N D
marked dry season in the summer. In winter, temperatures are generally above freezing with occasional periods of frost
claydepleted horizon
horizon
Übersicht
clay horizon extending
into conglomerate
rock
Aeo
nium
schemes
212 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.9
undifferentiated soils:
See also: C4photosynthsis: 2.3.5.3, 2.3.5.4; Carbon dioxide and climate: 2.2.2.1, 2.3.5.3
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 213
30 60
Tropic 20 40
Equator
10 20
Tropic
0 0
F M A M A N D
Deserts extend along the subtropical climate zone and in the rain shadow of large mountain ranges. The desert climate is characterised by arid condi
dle: Welwitschia
Euphorbia canariensis and
Euphorbia horrida Pachycereus weberi and Echinocactus grusonii
214 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.10
The savannas border areas and the drier forest habitats adapted to heavy drought conditions, including succulents,
experience a summer rainy season and winter drought. In geophytes, and ephemerals. Fungi are far less common than
winter, savanna areas fall under the influence of subtropical in the humid tropics. Termites play an important role within
high pressure areas, leading to a pronounced drought. In the such arid ecosystems, building effectively using plant bio
summer, however, the same regions are influenced by the in mass; as a result, savannas are characterised by a high meta
tertropical convergence zones, leading to heavy and regular bolic rate, despite their aridity.
rainfall. Savanna soils are characterised by high clay content (verti
Humid savanna experiences a relatively high 1,000– sols) and have high proportions of iron minerals and a strong
1,500 mm of rainfall, with a drying time of only three to five reddish or yellowbrown pigment. The clay minerals in the
months. As a result, the vegetation is comprised mainly of soil regularly contract and expand as a result of the fluctua
tall grasses, for example elephant grass, which grows to a tion between dry and wet periods: during the dry season,
height of 6 m, as well as sparsely distributed trees (and open cracks and crevices up to half a metre deep may be visible.
to partly closed forests). These are subsequently filled again when the next rain causes
In drier savanna areas precipitation is between 500– the soil to swell. This pedoturbation prevents the creation of
1,000 mm, with a drying time of five to seven months. The an even vertical soil profile. Apart from vertisols, the savanna
vegetation is characterised by mediumheight grasses and contains soils that display relatively strong clay leaching: as
many plants display adaptations to the drought conditions. a result of the degradation of organic matter by termites and
In xeric shrublands precipitation can be as low as 250– the sparse vegetation cover, coupled with the availability of
500 mm, with drought periods of up to 10 months per year. cations, clay particles are suspended and stored in deeper
Grasses remain short (under 30 cm) and cover only partial soil layers at the onset of the rainy season. The resulting soil
areas. The climate is usually too dry for trees; thorny bushes profile features an upper horizon poor in clay above a lower
dominate the landscape and are mixed with other plants clayrich horizon characterized by Acrisols or Luvisols.
Acrisol: Luvisols:
pedoturbation:
ephemeral:
semi arid:
geophyte:
Intertropical Convergence Zone (ITCZ): semi humid:
See also: C4
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 215
[°C] [mm]
50 100
40 80
Tropic
30 60
Equator 20 40
Tropic 10 20
0 0
F M A M A N D
is mainly obtained at the beginning of the dry season and microbial deg
living within the termite gut. Methane is also produced by the anaerobic
216 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.11
Acrisol: Intertropical Convergence Zone (ITCZ):
Alisol: undergrowth:
See also: Temperate forests: 3.2.2.5
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 217
Allahabad, India
70 300
60 200
50 100
Tropic
40 80
Equator 30 60
20 40
Tropic
10 20
0 0
F M A M A N D
forests are increasingly rare. Their climate is similar to that found in savannas, but slightly more humid
clay enriched
horizon
poor in humus and acidity. Arid forest tree species drop their leaves seasonally as a result of water availability and not, as is the case in temperate
India
218 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.12
buttress root: mangrove:
perhumid:
leaf litter:
See also: Global wind systems: 3.2.2.2
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 219
70 300
60 200
50 100
Tropic
40 80
Equator 30 60
20 40
Tropic
10 20
0 0
F M A M A N D
the process of
a reddish to yellowish
‘ferralic’ horizon
adapted to the trees
In contrast to the sparse layer of grass, epiphytes are common across tropical rainforests. Despite the humid climate, epiphytes tend to grow in dry and
220 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.13
Lakes
The basic distinction between two different types of gradient. In wetlands, swamps and bogs blur the boundary
aquatic biomes is whether they are marine or freshwater. between terrestrial and aquatic habitats.
Only 2.6 % of Earth’s water is fresh water, the bulk of it Trophy is commonly used to assess ecological water qual
bound within ice and snow in the polar ice caps and glaciers. ity in standing water, whereas flowing water waterbodies are
Only 0.3 % of the Earth’s water runs within lakes and rivers. often defined by their level of saproby. Trophy refers to the
Fresh water is characterised by the very low salinity of intensity of photoautotrophic primary production. Since it is
the water, running between groundwater or underground only possible to measure primary production indirectly in the
(closed) waters and the open waters at the surface. Surface field, trophy is commonly measured by the concentration of
waters are further distinguished into standing waterbodies nutrients (usually of phosphates, since phosphate is the limit
and watercourses. The physical and chemical conditions of ing nutrient in many freshwater bodies) or of chlorophyll (as
inland waters can be very different depending on regional an indirect measure of algal biomass and therefore of pho
conditions. They can vary in acidity from pH 2–12 and in toautotrophic organisms). In contrast, saproby denotes the
salinity from saltpoor to brackish to the hypersaline lakes intensity of the oxygenconsuming process. It is possible to
of the Dead Sea. Fresh waters can also vary in their trophic estimate the biological or chemical demand for oxygen. Thus
character, from ultraoligotrophic to hypertrophic. In estuar systems exist for measuring organismal communities by both
ies, fresh water is mixed with marine water along a salinity their trophic and saprobic characteristics.
decomposers:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 221
according to its distance from the shoreline into the litoral or riparian
222 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.14
Rivers
Watercourses can be divided, according to their size, into pends on the entry of organic material at its upper reaches,
creeks, small, and large rivers. Furthermore, watercourses creating a gradual series of changing interactions from the
can be divided into stream types, including by regionspeci source to the mouth of each river. This is known as the river
fic characteristics, such as ecoregion, altitude, and geology. continuum concept.
Longitudinally, watercourses can be divided by the upper, The saprobic quality is used to assess the ecological qual
middle overflows, the underflow, and the estuary. The divi ity of running waters. Saprobity describes the intensity of
sions have ecological importance, since upstream processes oxygenconsuming processes, which can be estimated based
affect downstream waters whereas the opposite cannot take on the chemical or the biological oxygen demand.
place. The food chain within a watercourse also strongly de
estuary: saproby:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 223
km2
m3 3
km2 3
waterrich river in the world
Amazon 1,722,155 km2 3
2,981,076 km2 3
tributary, the Missouri, is 4,130 km long and has a catchment area of
1,371,010 km2
2,580,000 km2 3
224 Distribution of present-day biodiversity
3.2.2.15
Oceans cover around 71 % of the Earth’s surface, occu tive composition of sea salt remains almost the same in all
pying a water volume of 1.34 billion km³. Only the upper saline waterbodies due to the high levels of mixing in the
euphotic zone of the ocean, down to around 200 m in depth, ocean. Sea salt is made up of 55 % chloride (1.9 g/L), 30.5 %
gets enough light for photosynthesis to occur, while deeper, sodium (1.07 g/L), 7.7 % sulfate (0.27 g/L), 3.7 % magne
aphotic layers do not permit any photosynthesis. Coastal are sium (0.13 g/L), 1.2 % calcium (0.04 g/L), 1.1 % potassium
as, which are up to 200 m in depth, in other words where pho (0.04 g/L), and 0.8 % of other ions. Salt lakes, such as the
tosynthesis can occur throughout the waterbody, are known Dead and Caspian seas, in contrast, have widely different
as continental shelves. Continental shelves are linked to the salt compositions. As a result of the salt content, the freezing
deeper ocean by a sloping sea slope (continental slope) with point of seawater is –1.9 ºC.
depths down to 2,000–3,000 m, followed by the abyssal (up Despite their relatively low biomass, oceans are vital for
to around 6,000 m) and hadal zones (6,000 m and beyond). the global flow of nutrients because of their large surface
Seawater has a salinity of 3.5 %, though this may decrease area. About half of global primary production stems from
in some areas and regions. For example, the Mediterranean the ocean, mainly through diatoms (Bacillariophyta) and
has a salt concentration of 3.6–3.9 %, compared with the dinoflagellates.
Baltic Sea which ranges from 0.3–1.7 %. However, the rela
Water depth is a vital factor in the distribution of life, in Large areas of the open ocean are ultraoligotrophic but
particular because of changes in carbonate solubility as a some areas have comparatively high concentrations of the
result of depth. In deeper water layers photosynthesis does main nutrients (phosphate, nitrate). However, algal growth
not take place due to the lack of light, whereas oxygen in these areas remains low. The socalled HNLC (highnutri
consuming processes do, by way of through respiration of ent lowchlorophyll) regions are mainly upwelling areas with
heterotrophic organisms. In consequence, oxygen concentra rising nutrientrich deep waters, in particular at the circum
tion decreases with depth whereas carbon dioxide concentra polar oceans around Antarctica. Algal growth in these areas
tion increases. The forming of carbon dioxide and carbonic is limited as a result of low concentrations of micronutrients.
acid water leads to an increasing solution of carbonates. In the context of climate change, the nutrientrich upwellings
For aragonite (calcium carbonate), the compensation depth of the Southern Ocean are of great interest to the scientific
is 3,000–5,000 m. For the most stable calcite (also calcium community, since they are vital for stimulating primary pro
carbonate), it is 3,500–5,500 m. Below this depth, therefore, duction in the ocean and therefore enabling carbon fixation.
carbonates cannot be deposited. Deepsea sediments consist
mostly of silicates.
aphotic zone: circumpolar:
euphotic zone:
See also:
Biodiversity distribution: biomes 225
creases with depth
is 3,293 m, with the deepest point being the Milwaukee
has a volume of 714 million km³, containing over half of the
volume of 292 million km³. The mean depth is 3,936 m, with Earth’s water. Its mean depth is 3,940 m, the lowest point
The organisms living in the surf zone endure high mechanical loads due The open ocean is ultraoligotrophic, extremely nutrientpoor. Currents
are generally richer in nutrients than the open ocean. In shallower sea
Coral reefs are extremely diverse marine ecosystems. The biominerali
Bathypathes sp. – black coral with
forming process
227
The classification of eukaryotes has changed dramatically and defined by the particle’s sedimentation velocity, this
over the past two decades; the centuriesold divide of life into molecule is also known as the 18S rRNA (eukaryotes) or the
groups of animals or plants has been replaced by a system of 16S rRNA (prokaryotes and the mitochondria and plastids
several supergroups. In this new structure, animals in their of eukaryotes). Other genes followed the initial focus on
strictest sense (Metazoa) and plants in their strictest sense SSU rRNA and, with the introduction of highthroughput
(land plants) are just side branches in a far more complex sequencing techniques, the analysis of single genes and mo
system of eukaryotes. lecular phylogenetics is increasingly replaced by sequencing
Since the introduction of PCR in the 1980s, molecular entire genomes and transcriptomes. To that end, the first
data have decrypted many formerly obscure relationships complete genome was sequenced in 1995 (Haemophilus in
and have become increasingly important for the reconstruc fluenzae). In addition to the sequence information itself, a
tion of phylogenetic relationships, where conventional mor completely sequenced genome offered additional informa
phological data were ambiguous. Molecular data thus have tion about the genome itself, including its size and structure.
reached or in many organismic groups even outpaced the The size of each genome and the correspondingly large
importance of morphological data for the reconstruction of amount of data featured within the analysis required elabo
phylogenies. rate bioinformatics techniques. Whereas the procurement of
Initially, sequence data comprised single genes, often the data was previously the limiting step in morphological and
small subunit of the ribosomal RNA (SSU rRNA). Based molecular studies, the bottleneck of current largescale se
on its sedimentation coefficient, mesured in Svedberg units quencing is the curation and analysis of the data.
This introductory chapter provides an overview of the development of systems used to classify organisms
This chapter presents an overview of the unikonts, including the Apusozoa, which consolidated the Ophistokonta,
Holozoa, Holomycota, and Amoebozoa
This chapter presents the Excavata, a large group comprising Metamonadida (Diplomonada, Retortamonadida,
Parabasalia, Oxymonadida), and the Discoba (Euglenozoa, Heterolobosea, Jakobida)
phyta, and the Viridiplantae (Chlorophyta and Streptophyta, including the land plants)
This chapter presents Chromalveolata, comprising Alveolata (Ciliophora, Dinophyta, Chromerida, Apicomplexa)
and the stramenopiles (Bigyra, Pseudofungi, Ochrophyta)
algae: photoautotrophic, eukaryotic organisms not belonging primary producers: autotrophic organisms that synthesise
complex organic molecules from inorganic compounds
consumers: (Lat.: consumere = to consume) heterotrophic or protists: a large group of unrelated eukaryotic organisms with
ganisms which feed on other organisms no specialised tissue
phylogenetics: the study of the evolutionary relationships be
tween organisms and the evolution of species during the history
of the Earth
Basics of megasystematics 229
Dinobryon)
Spumella) is surprising
birds
'plant'
'animals'
here, the 'algae'
230 Megasystematics
4.1.1
differential interference contrast: technique used in optical electron microscopy: a form of microscopy which reveals the
microscopy in which differences in the optical path length are surface or the interior of an object using electrons instead of
changed into levels of enhanced illumination light; an electron microscope achieves a much higher resolution
than light microscopes
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 231
istotle, all living things have the ability to nourish and reproduce (anima veg
anima
) is
"
Polystomella Coleps
232 Megasystematics
4.1.1.1
In 1735, the Swedish naturalist Carl Linnaeus (born 23 aimed to, 'fathom the divine plan of Creation'. The lasting
May 1707 in Råshult, died 10 January 1778 near Uppsala) effect of Linnaeus is not seen in his extensive compilation
published the Systema Naturae, a comprehensive overview of of known organisms but, rather, in the introduction of
all known animal and plant species, describing around 7,700 binary nomenclature for the naming of species. Before
plant, 6,200 animal, and 500 mineral species. his work, species names were long descriptive phrases.
Linnaeus assumed that he had covered almost all of Linnaeus named each organism as a combination of genus
the existing biodiversity. However, his work represented name and species epitheton. By that, species names became
only 1–2 % of currently known living species. Although considerably shorter and, for the first time, a unified system
microorganisms were already known at that point, Linnaeus of nomenclature was established and applied to all life.
either did not incorporate them at all or merged them into Linnaeus’ system, known as binomial nomenclature,
collective species groups such as Chais infusorium. forms the underpinnings of current taxonomy. Of his many
Linnaeus was well aware of the importance of his work, works, the Systema Naturae and Species Plantarum remain
as expressed by his quote 'Deus creavit, Linnaeus disposuit' most influential to this day, as they provide the basis for the
(God created, Linnaeus organised). In addition, his words naming of animal and plant species, respectively.
illustrate the theological foundations of his work, which
Species Plantarum was published in 1753 and forms the In the tenth edition, Linnaeus also presents his view of
basis of botanical nomenclature. In the two–volume work, the classification of major organismal clades: stones, plants,
which features roughly 7,300 species, Linnaeus describes and animals:
every plant species known at that time systematically by 'Lapides corpora congesta, nec viva, nec sentientia' (stones:
their genus and species epitheton, paving the way for the solid body, neither alive nor sentient)
acceptance of binary nomenclature in the field of botany. 'Vegetabilia corpora organisata & viva, non sentientia'
Only later did Linnaeus apply the same nomenclatural (plants: organised body and alive, not sentient)
rules to animals in his comprehensive review of all known 'Animalia corpora organisata, viva et sentientia' (animals:
biological diversity Systema Naturae. However, binary organised body, alive and sentient, spontaneously
nomenclature was only consequently applied to animals in moving)
the work’s tenth edition, which appeared in 1758, forming These definitions clearly reflect the historical roots of
the basis of zoological nomenclature as it appears today. the largegroup classification in philosophy and theology.
The foundations of botany and zoology therefore In addition, Linnaeus, in contrast with his contemporaries,
emerged from two different works by Linnaeus, partly placed humans in the animal kingdom (for the first time since
explaining the differences in botanical and zoological rules Aristotle’s Historia animalium). He does, however, attribute
for nomenclature. This discrepancy is particularly influential the ability of selfknowledge ('Nosce te ipsum' – know thyself)
for organisms recognised by both systems, as is the case with as a feature unique to humans.
many protists. In such cases, descriptions may be considered
valid from the perspective of one field but invalid in the other.
binary (binomial) nomenclature: in taxonomy, the system of
giving species a name composed of two parts identifying both
the genus and the epithet
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 233
Systema Naturae
Aristotle’s philosophy of , or the ability to think and be logical
234 Megasystematics
4.1.1.2
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 235
of the tree of life
the medium had been contaminated by nonsterile materials
236 Megasystematics
4.1.1.3
In Systema Naturae, Carl Linnaeus divided nature into Unlike the term ‘plant’, which (beside the ambivalent
three kingdoms: Lapides (minerals), Plantae (plants), and definitions above) is currently generally understood to define
Animalia (animals). Fungi, lichens, eukaryotic algae and a monophyletic group of higher plants, ‘algae’ is used pri
cyanobacteria were historically ascribed to the plants, usu marily in a functional context. In general definitions, algae
ally based on their phototrophy or, in the case of fungi, to are characterised as photosyntheticallycapable organisms
the growth form of the macrofungus. Due to the presence that are not land plants. This very general definition would
of a cell wall, bacteria were also grouped with the plants as in principle include the cyanobacteria, although algae are
'Schizophyta'. usually understood to be as eukaryotic organisms. Here, too,
With the increasing clarification of phylogenetic relation systematic, phylogenetic, and functionalecological consid
ships, the plants were defined as a monophyletic group, with erations play a role.
many groups within them placed in other categories: aside Despite their functional, photosynthesisbased definition,
from the ‘land plants’ discussed above, the monophyletic Vir algae are in general placed within the eukaryotes. In ecologi
idiplantae (land plats and green algae), or the Archaeplastida cal studies, on the other hand, phototrophic primary produc
(organisms with primary plastids, including Viridiplantae, ers are grouped together; in this context, cyanobacteria and
Rhodophyta, Glaucophyta) were also considered 'plants'. algae are not separated.
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 237
ity and photoautotrophy
Mono
tropa hypopitys
Lemna
) and diatoms
Anabaena
238 Megasystematics
4.1.1.4
The term ‘animal’ seems intuitively clear, usually thought unicellular eukaryotes, such as Ciliophora (German: 'Wim
to comprise vertebrates – mammals, birds, reptiles, amphib perntierchen') or the Euglenozoa, with Euglena (German:
ians, and fish – as well as invertebrates, such as arthropods, 'Augentierchen'), with either plants or animals is problem
molluscs, annelids, and others. atic. The original German names for these organisms point
This grouping is far less clear when applied to ‘lower’ ani to this challenge.
mal phyla and microorganisms. The assignment of sponges, As with plants, categorising organisms as ‘animals’ is
corals, sea anemones, and other sessile organisms to animals complicated because of conflicting definitions between
is less intuitive. Historical taxonomic terms, such as 'flower colloquial and scientific terms, which include descriptions
animals' (Anthozoa), illustrate the confusion with assign based on functionalecological aspects (feeding, locomotion)
ing sessile organisms to animals. Similarly, the affiliation of as well as systematic and phylogenetic placement.
Coming up with criteria that clearly define 'animals' is the uptake of particulate food has been lost in some animals
even more difficult. Two commonly used criteria are free lo and may be common in other groups, such as many algae.
comotion and the consumption of particulate food. Heterotrophy is also common in many (parasitic) plants.
These two criteria have historical roots going back to phil When defining ‘animals’, it is therefore important to dis
osophical and theological definitions, which differentiated tinguish between systematically and phylogeneticallybased
plants and animals by their freedom of movement and their groupings on the one hand and those based on ecology and
ability to perceive stimuli. Food intake subsequently replaced functional groups on the other. These aspects are muddled
the ability to perceive, since the former is easier to measure and not clearly differentiated in everyday colloquial lan
and prove. guage. Whereas both aspects apply to most ‘higher’ animals,
This broad functional definition would also assign many definitions become particularly confusing when referring to
heterotrophic protists to 'animals'. In contrast, from a sys the socalled ‘lower’ animals and protists.
tematics point of view the ‘Metazoa’ are closest to the term Clearly defining animals, therefore, can only be achieved
‘animals’ group. by the application of systematics or ecologybased defini
However, the two above criteria and combinations thereof tions: systematics would define animals, for instance as com
are not enough to create a systematic (monophyletic) animal prising, all species within Metazoa, whereas ecology would
group, since not all Metazoa are motile in their adult stage: group together all heterotrophic or phagotrophic organisms
for example, corals, sponges, and many other organisms are as a functional unit. For higherlevel organisms (higher
sessile. To complicate matters further, other organisms that plants, higher animals, and higher fungi), the systematic
are sessile in their adult stage are motile earlier on in their grouping largely parallels the ecological classification, so the
life cycle or at least during a reproductive stage. Similarly, two rarely come into conflict within their everyday use.
zoochlorellae: endosymbiontic green algae zooxanthellae: endosymbiontic dinophytes
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 239
Para
) belongs to the Amoebozoa
240 Megasystematics
4.1.1.5
As with animals and plants, fungi are also inaccurately taxonomic assignment. Systematically, the ‘true’ fungi are
categorised based on colloquialisms and the muddling of Holomycota, the sister group to Holozoa, characterised by
systematics or phylogenetics with functional or ecological cell walls containing chitin (chitinous fungi). Among others,
aspects. Due to their sessile lifestyle and the presence of cell the pillarfungi including mushrooms and toadstools belong
walls, fungi were originally grouped with plants, but they to the true fungi (Dikarya: Basidiomycota and Ascomycota).
were subsequently grouped within their own kingdom based Functionally, other unrelated groups are also grouped with
on their unique form of feeding. the fungi as a result of their shared lifestyle. These include
Fungi are chemoorganotrophs (i.e. heterotrophic), mostly the slime moulds, the oomycetes, and the Actinomycetales.
living as saprophytes or parasites. This mode of nutrition is, Systematically, however, these groups do not belong to fungi.
especially colloquially, a key criterion for their conventional
chemoorganotroph: organisms that obtain their energy from phagotrophy: form of nutrition which involves consuming par
oxidising organic electron donors ticulate matter
osmotrophy: the process of obtaining nutrition by taking in saprotrophic: feeding on dead organic matter and in doing so,
dissolved organic compounds; in contrast to phagotrophy breaking it down into its constituent parts
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 241
Cantharellus
)
but, rather, belong to Amoebozoa
242 Megasystematics
4.1.1.6
Systematic relationships are often presented in the form of the target group can be traced back to the same ancestor, the
phylogenetic trees. Phylogenetic trees consider shared char group is paraphyletic. Polyphyletic groups, on the other hand
acteristics, distinguishing between independently evolved have similar or identical properties but individual lineages do
features (homoplasia, convergence) and those that can be not have a common origin.
traced back to a single origin (homology). Whether a feature is considered to be a synapomorphy
Convergent characteristics have been independently or symplesiomorphy depends on the context of the groups
evolved (for example, succulence in cacti and euphorbias) under consideration. For example, mammary glands are a
and are therefore not relevant in the construction of relation synapomorphy of mammals, though they are a symplesio
ships between similar species. However, these are not always morphy if we consider relationships between various mam
easy to identify and, importantly, to distinguish from homol malian groups with each other.
ogous features. Phylogenetic trees are made nodes splitting into branches
Features that can be traced back to a common ancestor and twigs. When an outgroup has been defined, that is, one
can be distinguished as either being newly acquired (synapo group of organisms that is closely related to the organisms in
morphies) or ancestral (symplesiomorphies). question but not part of the group itself, the family tree can
Symplesiomorphies are not relevant for phylogenetic re be rooted, meaning it then has an orientation or direction.
constructions, and neither are newly acquired traits which Phylogenetic analyses result in many hierarchically or
occur only in one taxon (autapomorphies). To that end, only dered parent groups. The traditional nomenclature, however,
synapomorphies, in other words a group of common, new only presents a limited number of ranks. Phylogenetic clus
lyacquired (derived) features can be used for phylogenetic ters can therefore not easily be assigned to the nomenclatural
analyses. ranks. In addition, nomenclatural ranks in different groups of
Phylogenetic trees show the progressive splitting of clades organisms often correspond to different phylogenetic ranks.
over time. The individual clade’s sister groups are (ideally) The integration of phylogenetic insights into traditional no
each characterised by the possession of specific synapomor menclatural systems is therefore problematic and leads to in
phies. consistencies in the naming of groups, in particular those at
A monophyletic group is one that can be traced back to higher taxonomic levels such as orders, classes, and families.
a single common ancestor. If additional clades not within
apomorphy: a trait that is newly derived in the phylogenesis of plesiomorphy: ancestral trait which was already present before
taxa which was not present in their ancestors the formation of the ancestral line under consideration
autapomorphy: (Grk.: autos = self, trophe = nourishing) the symplesiomorphy: term given to homologous plesiomorphic
ability of organisms to produce and store organic nutrients exclu characteristics exhibited by two or more taxa
sively from anorganic substances synapomorphy: an evolved characteristic common to a mono
phyletic group
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 243
Sister group taxa can be traced back to the same ancestor
streptophytes
this tree, the gymnosperms are sister to the angiosperms
and Chlorophyta are sister to Streptophyta
Populus
Ricinus
Vi"s
Oryza angiosperms
Zea
Nuphar
Amborella
Gnetum
Welwitschia
Picea
Cryptomeria gymnosperms
land
Cycas plants
Zamia Strep
Ginkgo
tophyta
Ceratopteris
the land plants Adiantum
Huperzia
Selaginella
Physcomitrella
54
Tortula
Marchan"a
Spirogyra
90 Closterium strepto
Coleochaete phyte
Chara algae
Klebsormidium
Mesos"gma
Chlamydomonas
Polytomella
Dunaliella
100 Scenedesmus
Chlorella
Prototheca Chloro
Coccomyxa phyta
Scherffelia
Micromonas
Ostreococcus
Pyramimonas
C. merolae
Galdieria sulphuraria Rhodo
Gracilaria changii phyta
Porphyra yezoensis
The lineages chosen as outgroups (root) are related to the organisms in the target group but less closely than target group
the rank of the superfamily
244 Megasystematics
4.1.1.7
Reconstructing a phylogenetic tree requires data reflect attribute, with the number of necessary character changes
ing the phylogenetic evolution of organisms. Earlier analy (mutations) minimised during the calculation of the tree.
ses focused on morphological data for phylogenies but, with Resulting trees can be distinguished as being either clad
the rise of molecular techniques such as PCR and sequenc ograms or phylograms.
ing, these have largely been replaced by DNA and protein Cladograms emphasise the branching pattern (topology)
sequences. of relationships between taxa ignoring branch lengths. Clad
In order to calculate a molecular phylogenetic tree, ho ograms are thus used primarily for comparing the topology
mologous nucleotides or protein sequences are initially of different phylogenetic trees.
placed in a matrix, is commonly known as an alignment. A phylogram, on the other hand, also reflects molecular
A variety of standard strategies can then be applied to the distance between taxa, measured as substitutions and shown
alignment, grouped either as distance or characterbased in the length of individual branches. Phylograms (metric
methods. tree) and their branch length show a quantitative represen
Distancebased methods determine distance between in tation of taxonomic relationships, reflecting phylogenetic
dividual pairs of taxa. From these pairwise data, a tree is change over time. They are the most commonly used method
constructed with branching patterns corresponding to the of molecular sequence analysis.
observed distances. Phylogenetic trees are considered rooted (outgroup) or
Characterbased methods incorporate the average dis unrooted (no outgroup), depending on whether the analysis
tance between taxa as well as the distinct expression of each includes an outgroup or not.
Polymerase Chain Reaction (PCR): laboratory technique used
to make multiple copies of a segment of DNA
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 245
der to avoid the (wrong) impression that taxa placed at
grams can be displayed as radial trees
lla sp.
Selagine
Oryza sp. Col
eoc
hae
ta s
p.
p.
Zea sp. ella s
hyscomitr
P
Physcomitrella sp.
p . Zea sp.
ium s
Or
rmid
lebso
yza
Selaginella sp. K
sp.
Coleochaeta sp.
Klebsormidium sp.
Chlorella sp. .
sp
a
ell
yxa sp.
r
lo
Coccomyxa sp. Ch
Coccom
Nitrosococcus halophilus
Nit
Nitrosococcus halophilus
ros
oco
Nitrosococcus watsoni
ccu
sw
ats
on
i
Branch length on phylograms indicates the strength of a
246 Megasystematics
4.1.1.8
base triplet: a series of three bases (nucleotides) in DNA or RNA transition: point mutation in which a purine nucleotide is re
placed by another purine, or a pyrimidine nucleotide is replaced
substitution: (Lat.: substituere = put in place of another) re by another pyrimidine
placement, exchange transversion: point mutation in which a purine is substituted
for a pyrimidine or vice versa
Basics of megasystematics: historic and phylogenetic fundamentals 247
Mammalia cota, Basidiomycota rophyta, Streptophyta
Porifera Rhodophyta
Mammalia Nucleariidae Basidiomycota Streptophyta
Ascomycota Chlorophyta
Asterozoa
Plathelminthes
Diversity within
nida, Myxogastria raminifera, Acantharia
Heterolobosea
Centramoebida
Vampyrellida
Myxogastria Arcellinida Cercomonadida Jakobida
Acantharia
Euglenida
Apicomplexa ophyceae, Chrysophyceae
Chromerida each group of organisms are highlighted in blue
Chrysophyceae Bicosoecida
Ciliophora
Bacillariophyceae Phaeophyceae
Apicomplexa
ACACGTTCAGCGAGT ACTGGTTCAACGAGT
ATACGTGCAACAAGT ATGCATTCAACGAGT large taxonomic groups, although the analysis
ATGCAGTCAGCGAGT ATGCATTCAACGAGT
ATATGTATAACGAGT ACATACGCAACGAGT
248 Megasystematics
4.1.2
Living things can be classified in a number of ways. In However, the Achaea also have unique characteristics.
earlier work, life was divided into eukaryotes and prokary For example, their membrane lipids are comprised of iso
otes according to visible differences in the organisation of prenoids whereas those of the Bacteria and Eukaryota are
the cell. In the 1990s, Carl Woese proposed the domain mainly composed of esterlinked fatty acids.
model, dividing life into the domains Archaea, Bacteria, and Controversy still lingers regarding whether differences in
Eukarya. This classification is based on genetic differences, cell organisation between prokaryotes and eukaryotes are
especially within the ribosomal RNA region. more fundamental than gene sequence differences between
The Archaea share many properties with Bacteria: they the two. Perspectives differ as to: 1) the relative importance
both have a prokaryotic cell organisation, with 70Sribo of the evolution of sequences compared with that of the
somes and a circular chromosome (in most taxa, just one). cell’s internal organisation, and, 2) assumptions about the
In contrast, eukaryotes have a eukaryotic cell structure, with timing of sequence evolution in different groups of organ
clearly visible internal compartmentalisation of organelles isms. Genome sequences of various organisms increasingly
and several linear chromosomes arranged within a mem suggest that genes and genomes are able to transfer between
branebound nucleus. organisms – including between those belonging to different
The Archaea also share some characteristics with Eukar domains. Such evidence indicates that, rather than being
yota, including the presence of introns within their genes. In split into domains, life may be linked within a larger web of
addition, archaean RNA polymerase and transcription fac life, with strong links between very different groups. How
tors are the same type as those of the Eukaryota and differ ever, the threedomain model remains the currently favoured
markedly from bacterial equivalents. viewpoint of the fundamental taxonomic relationships of
life.
The threedomain model is now widely accepted. Howev example, requires proteins and genes that are able to tolerate
er, it remains controversial, especially regarding the relation high temperatures. According to this view, therefore, the Ar
ship between Bacteria and Archaea, specifically the origin of chaea may have developed as a rapidly evolving sidebranch
Archaea, and the origin of eukaryotes. of the Actinobacteria. This argument, together with the sig
Assuming a uniform speed of sequence evolution (muta nificant differences in cell organisation between eukaryotes
tions over time), differences in gene sequences should indi and prokaryotes, supports the basic classification of life into
cate phylogenetic distance; thus, a larger number of sequence prokaryotes and eukaryotes.
differences indicate an earlier divergence between lineages. A growing body of work supports an alternative hypoth
This notion supports a relatively early separation of domains esies, starting that eukaryotes originated from Archaea (the
and the threedomain model. In contrast, some researchers Eocyte hypothesis). If confirmed, this viewpoint would con
propose a theory of accelerated sequence evolution in the tradict the threedomain model, since following the Eocyte
ancestors of Archaea in the context of adaptation to extreme hypothesis Archaea and Eukarya would have a common
habitats. This assumption is not necessarily unlikely since origin.
the colonisation of extreme environments – hot springs, for
Basics of megasystematics: the three domains 249
Chla
orrhoeae
partmentalised brane system
The classic threedomain model showing the three sepa
rate, earlydiverging domains Archaea, Eukarya, and Bac
teria
The threedomain model taking into account of horizontal
gene transfer between domains
250 Megasystematics
4.1.2.1
Most basal lineages within the Bacteria, collectively re phytosynthesis. The closest living relatives of the eukaryotic
ferred to as the basal Thermophiles, are thermophilic and mitochondria are proteobacteria related to Rickettsia spp.
anaerobic. These possess a number of genes picked up from (causative agent of typhus (Rickettsia prowazekii) and Rocky
Archaea via horizontal gene transfer. Mountain spotted fever (Rickettsia rickettsii)). Planctomycet
The ‘terrabacteria’ comprise the cyanobacteria (capable es, Verrucomicrobia, Chlamydiae, and Lentisphaerae also
of oxidative photosynthesis), the ‘Gram positive’ Firmicutes group together within hydrobacteria, a lineage characterised
and Actinobacteria (multilayered peptidoglycan, which col by intracellular compartmentalisation.
oured by the Gram stain), the Nitrospira, Chloroflexi, and The planctomycetes possess a nucleoid with a double
the heat or radiationtolerant DeinococcusThermus group. membrane, similar to the nuclear membrane found in Eu
The ‘hydrobacteria’ comprise lineages from the large and karyota. Similarly, they also carry out endocytosis mecha
diverse proteobacteria group, which are typical Gramnega nisms and have one proteinrich Slayer (surface layer) but no
tive bacteria. Their diversity is enormous, including anaero peptidoglycan in their cell walls. The Chlamydia have little
bic and aerobic taxa, with some lineages capable of anoxic or no peptidoglycan in their cell walls.
Basics of megasystematics: the three domains 251
Gymnosphaeria Phormidium
splendidum) are capable of oxygenic photosynthesis
layer around the cell wall at the far right)
localised within the membraneassociated chlorosomes
The Chlorobi (green sulphur bacteria) include obligate an
aerobic phototrophic bacteria
one cell membrane
'Hy r
at
eri
a'
'
ria
te
Deferribacteres
a
Chrysiogenetes
g mo
no ram+
ia
rra
acteria
de
icrob
s
rm Pr
ete
mo gram eo
cha
ba reduced or absent
Elusim
nod
Acidob
+
Ten
erm cte
Cy
ria
r
eri
an
mon
Sp
oder
ob
cut ia
m
ac
tes
es
te
ide
r
ro
cte
Ba orobi
Chl
Nitrospira diae
Chlamy ia
gram+
Deinococcus Verrucomicrob
Planctomycetes
Thermus
The DeinococcusThermus group includes thermophilic
bacteria (Thermus Eukarya
Cald
iser
Archaea Syn icia
erg
ist
Th cte
ete
er ria
ba
s
ear
m
Th
od
es
ul
fo
oto
gae
i er
ran
predominantly mesophilic taxa
predominantly thermophilic taxa
ing
mesophilic and thermophilic taxa
in
predominantly aerobic taxa
ea ge
predominantly anaerobic taxa
s
aerobic and anaerobic taxa
taxa able to carry out anoxygenic photosynthesis
taxa able to carry out oxygenic photosynthesis
252 Megasystematics
4.1.2.2
Alongside the Eukarya and Bacteria, the Archaea are one Slayer can achieve a stability which is comparable in func
of the three domains of life. Inhabiting all terrestrial and tion to a true cell wall. tRNA molecules of Archaea usually
aquatic habitats, the Archaea have a prokaryotic cell struc have modified bases, especially archaeosine – a modification
ture, with an unbound circular chromosome located in the of guanosine – found in most archaeal species.
cytoplasm and 70S ribosomes. In contrast with bacteria, the Archaeal genomes are highly recombined by horizontal
Archaea do not contain any known pathogenetic taxa. gene transfer, an important factor in complicating phylo
Cell membranes contain etherbound isoprenoids. Ar genetic reconstruction of this domain. In addition, the se
chaeal cell walls do not contain peptidoglycan but, rather, are quences of basal archaeal groups differ so markedly from
made of pseudopeptidoglycan (Methanobacteriales, Metha each other that standard molecular primers cannot be used
nopyrales) or the cell wall is entirely missing and replaced by to detect all Archaea; as a result, their molecular diversity is
one Slayer (surface layer) of glycoproteins or proteins, such grossly underrepresented in the literature.
as those found in some Crnearchaeota. By crosslinking, the
The Archaea comprise two large phyla, the Crenarchae bacteria and using bacterial metabolic products as a substrate
ota and the Euryarchaeota, as well as several basal lineages. for methanogenesis. The Nanoarchaeota were the first to be
The Crenarchaeota are thermophilic and sulphurdepend identified microscopically, although the molecular analysis
ent whereas the Thaumarchaeota are mainly comprised of of this group was initially not possible because their DNA se
mesophilic, aerobic, ammoniumoxidising species. The spe quences varied so strongly from known sequences that stand
cies Caldiarchaeum subterraneum is genetically so different ard PCR sequence primers could not bind to them. Their
from other Archaea that the separate lineage ‘Aigarchaeota’ phylogenetic relation to other Archaea could only be eluci
has been proposed for it. The Korarchaeota include thermo dated using largescale gene sequencing techniques. The only
philic, anaerobic taxa, mostly inhabiting hydrothermal vents. formally described species of Nanoarchaeota, Nanoarchaeum
The Thaumarchaeota, the Aigarchaeota, the Crenarachaeo equitans, has a strongly reduced genome and depends on vari
ta, and the Korachaeota are together known as the TACK ous metabolic products of other organisms. It is likely that
Archaea. its traits apply to all members of the Nanoarcheota, namely,
The Euryarchaeota include both mesophilic, thermophil living in association with other Archaea, a likely previously
ic and psychrophilic taxa, including acidophiles, alkaliphi parasitic relationship which was fundamental to the reduc
les, and halophiles. The methanogenic Archaea are also in tion of its genome and presumably preceded the divergence
cluded within the Euryarchaeota, living in associating with into different marine and terrestrial lineages.
Basics of megasystematics: the three domains 253
ta
C
r
ae
en
r
ar
rya
s
inale
Halobacteriales
ae
s
E
iale
arac
ta
ob
Ara
anos
mir
Th
che
er
no
m
ogl
Meth
op
tha
les
la
ob
ba
sm
Me
s
us
The e
lo
cal
at
rm
lfo
al
oco oc
es
Su
cca oc
fur
les sul
De s
teale
opro
Methano m
pyrales Ther
T
Methanobacteriales
a mar ae ta
Thaumarchaeota
ales
occ
noc
tha Eukarya
Me
Bacteria
ota
K
hae
arc
no
Na
rar
predominantly mesophilic taxa
ta
ae
predominantly thermophilic taxa
ae
ta
mesophilic and thermophilic taxa
ar
predominantly aerobic taxa
n
Na
predominantly anaerobic taxa
aerobic and anaerobic taxa
methanogenic taxa
Nano
The domain Eukarya comprises the Unikonta (=Amor comprise all land plants. Secondary plastids are surround
phea), which includes animals and fungi, the Archaeplasti ed by three or four membranes. The secondary plastids of
da, which includes plants, as well as the Excavata, Rhizaria, Alveolata, Stramenopiles, and Hacrobia are the product of
Alveolata, Stramenopiles, and Hacrobia. the endocytobiosis of a red algae (Rhodophyta) and possess
The eukaryotic cell is characterised by the presence of chlorophyll a and c (shown in red in the figure). The sec
organelles, although the presence of these differs by line ondary plastids of Euglenozoa and Chlorarchinophyta come
age. All eukaryotes possess either mitochondria or reduced from the endocytobiosis of a green algae and possess chloro
modifications of such organelles. Plastids are only found in phyll a and b (shown in green).
some lineages, but these are not necessarily closely related to Some organisms possess organelles that have shared
each other, and the structure of these plastids differs between origins with mitochondria or plastids but that have been
groups. reduced to possess only a few metabolic pathways, for ex
Plastids can be divided into two categories. Primary plas ample, the apicoplast of the malaria parasite Plasmodium
tids are surrounded by two membranes and contain either (Apicomplexa). This secondary plastid is no longer capable
chlorophyll a or chlorophyll a and b. They are found in the of photosynthesis but still performs other essential metabolic
Archaeplastida, i.e. the Glaucocystophyta, the Rhodophyta, pathways, such as the biosynthesis of fatty acids.
the Chlorophyta, and the Streptophyta. The Streptophyta
endocytobiosis: the term given to the absorption of prokary organelle: a structurally distinct subunit within a cell with a spe
otes by eukaryotic cells and their subsequent evolution into orga cialised function; strictly speaking, an organelle is a cell compart
nelles. This term is more precise than endosymbiosis because, in ment which is surrounded by a membrane formed from prokary
the case of organelles, they are no longer independent organisms otes in a process of endocytobiosis:
includes plastids and mitochondria
being the association of cells of different species
Basics of megasystematics: the three domains 255
Paulinella
tophyta have a nucleomorph between their in
component of bacterial cell walls, it is considered morph is a relic of the nucleus from an ingested
a relic of endocytobiosis
docytobiosis
a R
as i ar
ae ia
r
A
ta
ella
hy
iop
aulin
A
chn
nur P
ara
e
lor
ata
Ch
Streptop yta
a ata
Chlo
Rhodophyta
roph
Cercozoa
hyta
Ex
Pe
rc
ol a
oz ex
a
Eu
or
gle
nid a
o pl
ph
m
ico
lio
a
Ci
Ap merida
Chro
Dinophyta
Jakobida
Parabasalia Bicosoecida
Peronospor
onada Bacilla omycetes
Diplom Ph riophycea
Op
La ida
Ch ae e
ali
by
Ha
rys op
n
oa
rin
Apusoz a op hyc
pt
Cry
th
hy ea
op
s
Conoa
uli
ce e
pto
hy
ae
da
ose
ta
phy
Lob onada
i es
ta
a
m
ano azo
Cho Met
n
me
tra
S
U
nik
a
nt
ia
r
Ha
in the nucleus (the nucleome), the mitochondrion (the chondrome), and in the
structures are therefore referred to as the chlo
hydrogenosome
mitochondria
mitosome
cell wall (outer membrane) energy storage poly
material saccharide
nucleomorph
membranes
chlorophyll
secondary
primary
accessory
CER
pigments
Amorphea)
Apusozoa x glycogen bikont
extracellular matrix or lorica
Choanomonada of cellulose or silica
x glycogen unikont
starch
cellulose x bikont x a phycocyanin
cytoplasm) allophycocyanin
starch a
Chlorophyta cellulose x bikont x
b
starch a
Streptophyta cellulose x bikont x
b
Excavata
Percolozoa x x
Jakobida x bikont
x x x glycogen mostly four or eight
Parabasalia x glycogen none, four, or eight
Preaxostyla glycogen four
paramylon a neoxanthin,
Euglenida pellicle x bikont
b diadinoxanthin,
xanthophyll
x mannan bikont, some unikont
chrysolaminarin: a storage polysaccharide found in strameno paramylon: a storage polysaccharide in Euglenida and Hapto
philes; 13 and 16glycosidic bonds phyta. In contrast to starch in plants and red algae, paramylon is
glycogen: reserve polysaccharide in unikonts; linked by (1 made from 1,3glucan
3) and (16) glycosidic bonds; similar to but more extensively starch: reserve polysaccharide in Archaeplastida and Alveolates;
branched than starch (13) and (16) glycosidic bonds; similar to but less branched
mannan: (14) linkages than glycogen
Basics of megasystematics: the three domains 257
hydrogenosom
mitochondria
cell wall (outer membrane) energy storage
material polysaccharide
nucleomorph
membranes
chlorophyll
secondary
primary
accessory
CER
pigments
‘CoreChromalveolata’ (Alveolata and Stramenopiles)
a,c
Dinophyta alveoli with cellulose plates x bikont R R
a,b
fucoxanthin, peridinin
Opalinida x many cilia
cellulose and hemicellulose,
bikont
Peronosporomycetes x
zoospores
tales group
cell wall mostly made of bikont a
Bacillariophyceae silicium oxide
x chrysolaminarin
gametes
R
c
fucoxanthin x
scales of silicate or cell wall
a
Chrysophyceae x chrysolaminarin bikont R
c
violaxanthin, anthaxan x
or silicate thin, neoxanthin
bikont a
Phaeophyceae cellulose, alginic acid x chrysolaminarin
gametes
R
c
diadinoxanthin, diatox x
anthin
Hacrobia
starch
a
Cryptophyta periplast x (in periplasmic bikont R
c
erythrin, phycocyanin, x x
space) carotene
scales of polysaccharides,
mostly cellulose, in the
order Coccolithophorales chrysolaminarin, a
Haptophyta the scales are calcareous
x
rarely paramylon
bikont R
c
diadinoxanthin, diatox x
anthin
(coccoliths),
Rhizaria
Cercozoa (excluding
Chlorarachniophyta x bikont
and Paulinella)
unikont a (neoxanthin, violaxan
Chlorarachniophyta naked x paramylon
zoospores b thin, lutein, loroxanthin
x x
dodecanoat)
Paulinella x a
calcium carbonate or silicate bikont
x
cell skeleton gametes
258 Megasystematics
4.2
Amorphea)
The Unikonta (unikonts) are an exclusively heterotrophic secondarily reduced to the point that most Amoebozoa
group of organisms. Unikonts comprise the Opisthokonta appear not to have any flagella at all. An exception are slime
(opisthokonts), Amoebozoa, and the likely paraphyletic mould gametes, which have two flagella.
Apusozoa. Plastids are not found in any unikont species, Apusozoa are unicellular bikonts, having two flagella
though they may temporarily use plastids when some and living in terrestrial and aquatic habitats on the sediment
representatives live in close symbiosis with algae (corals, surface. The Apusomonadida, Planomonadida, and Manta
sponges, for example) or temporarily after plastids are monadida make up the Apusozoa. The phylogenetic
ingested. relationship of these groups with each other and their
Ophistokonts are characterised by their posterior facing possible affiliation with the Hemimastigida is unclear. It is
flagellum (Grk: ophisto = posterior; kontos = pole, i.e. therefore possible that the Apusozoa are paraphyletic.
flagellum). The group is composed of the Holozoa, which Due to its variety of constituent bikont taxa, the Unikonta,
includes Eumetazoa (‘animals’ in the narrowest sense), named for the number of flagella each cell displays, are
Porifera, Choanomonada, and also Holomycota, which sometimes called the Amorphea, a name referring to the
includes chitinous fungi (Basidiomycota, Ascomycota, cells of most taxa in this cluster not having a fixed form
Chytridiomycota, Mucoromycotina), Microsporidia, and unless restricted by an external layer (e.g. cell wall, lorica,
Nucleariida. test, extracellular matrix).
In contrast with Opisthokonta, Amoebozoa are
characterised by a forward facing flagellum, in many cases
Unikonts usually have only one flagellum whereas other steps of the synthesis are the catalysis of the enzyme car
eukaryotes generally have two (bikont). This characteristic bamoyl phosphatesynthase II, aspartatetranscarbamylase,
difference can be found throughout most unikonts (for ex and dihydroorotase. In unikonts, the genes for these three
ample, sperm in Metazoa), although it is likely that they too enzymes are fused into one. Based on the three first letters
were originally biflagellate. The biflagellate Apusozoa and of these constituent enzymes, this fusion is known as the
the gametes of slime moulds (Amoebozoa), as well as the ‘CAD triplegene fusion’. CAD is transcribed into one con
presence of a second kinetosome in some unikonts, such as tinuous mRNA transcript. Upon translation, the gene prod
choanoflagellates and flagellated metazoan cells, are often uct is a contiguous protein with three functions. In contrast
used as examples of the biflagellate origins of unikonts. with CAD, the unikonts have separate genes for the enzymes
Unikonts share a common molecular characteristic relat thymidylate synthase and dihydrofolate reductase, while in
ing to the synthesis of uridine monophosphate: the first three other eukaryotes these genes are fused.
dynein: one of the motor proteins in eukaryotic cells which ena molecule in cells that carries a por
of proteins
(Grk.: synthesis = composition) combination of vari
ous components to form a new whole
sible
to move
See also: Heterotrophy: 4.6.2.3; Phylogeny,
Unikonta: introduction to the Unikonta /Apusozoa 259
stida Rh
pla iza
Tubulinea ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
Amoebozoa G
Cerco
odo
Discosea la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Conosea Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Apusozoa a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
Apusozoa a Ha
opile
s
zo
oa t a
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
k
hy
to
A
ptop
Eumetazoa ta
his
Op
hyta
Apu
Porifera
Holozoa Choanomonada Eubacteria Archaea
Ophistokonta basal Holozoa
Nucleariida
Holomycota Microsporidia
Mucoromycota
Chytridiomycota
Glomeromycota
Ascomycota
Basidiomycota
Apusomonas proboscidea Fabomonas tropica
Apusomonas proboscidea
Fabomonas tropica
Fabomonas tropica
hook
LRing
PRing
H+
Fli protein
H+
Cilium/Flagellum
260 Megasystematics
4.2.1
Holozoa
Holozoa include the Metazoa and their basal sister groups sponse to increasing grazing pressure. With the widespread
Mesomycetozoa and Choanomonada. use of exoskeletons, the fossil record of metazoan species
The Metazoa (‘animals’ in the colloquial sense of the improved drastically: this sudden occurrence of metazoan
word) are a very diverse group of organisms: just the insects fossils from the beginning of the Cambrian is referred to as
alone comprise around one million known species, more the ‘Cambrian explosion’. However, the initial radiation of
than all other groups together. The Metazoa are also well Metazoa must have taken place earlier, although it is hard
studied, in contrast to many other groups. to identify in the fossil record due to the absence of skeletal
The ontogenetic development and organisation of various elements. The first Metazoa were likely benthic marine or
metazoan species differs widely; as a result, their phyloge ganisms, their surface covered in ciliated cells, somewhat like
netic relationships are still unclear. today’s sponges.
Different metazoan lineages developed exoskeletons in
the late Precambrian and early Cambrian, likely as a re
(Lat.:
embryonic mouth
ectoderm: (Grk.: ektos (Grk.:
endoderm: (Grk.:
See also: 2, 3.2.1.2, 3.2.1.4
Unikonta: Holozoa 261
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
basal Holozoa: Mesomycetozoa, Filasterea, Ichthyosporea, Aphelidea ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
Choanomonada oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
basal Metazoa
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Acoelomorpha
Deuterostomia
Nephrozoa
Bilateria
Ecdysozoa
Protostomia
Spiralia
262 Megasystematics
4.2.1.1
Choanomonada
Choanomonada (choanoflagellates) are unicellular or co Choanoflagellates feed on bacteria and other smaller food
lonial protists, freely floating or attached to substrates in lim particles. They are among the most important bacterivorous
nic and marine environments. There are about 150 known organisms in aquatic ecosystems. The flagellum creates a
species. Choanoflagellates have mitochondria but no plas flow of water away from the cell, forcing a current down the
tids. They possess a single beating flagellum, which is used to cell’s sides and towards the microvilli collar. Small particles,
direct water currents away from the cell. Most other protists such as bacterial cells, are caught in the microvilli and trans
possess two or more beating flagella, which produce a water ported towards the cell body, where they are ingested.
current towards the cell. In choanoflagellates the flagellum Some species possess an extracellular matrix or lorica
is surrounded by a characteristic collar of 30–40 microvilli, which is made of either cellulose or silica, whereas others
absent in other groups of protists. are ‘naked’. The systematic value of the lorica is unclear.
themselves
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 263
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Monosiga ovata
264 Megasystematics
4.2.1.2
Porifera
The sponges (Porifera) are metazoans with a simple body needles (spicules), formed by specialist spongocyte and scle
structure. There are approximately 7,500 known sponge spe rocyte cells.
cies, reaching a size of a few millimetres to over 3 m. Spong The low cell differentiation and their plasticity (the abil
es are benthic filter feeders and are mostly marine, with the ity to change specialisation), offers sponges a high regenera
exception of some freshwater species. They lack muscle and tive capacity. They can tolerate damage from feeding and, in
nerve cells, gonads, and a digestive tract. However, they have many cases, parts of a sponge may grow into new individu
mitochondria. As with all Metazoa, sponges do not have als.
plastids. Sponge cells are not as heavily specialised as in most Sponge larvae are planktonic and only attach themselves
metazoan species; the sponge body is made up of only a few to the substratum late in their life cycle. The metamorphosis
cell types and no real tissues can be identified. Pinacocytes of calcareous sponges (Calcarea) features an invagination or
are flat cells which cover the surface of sponges, including an immigration of cells similar to the process of gastrulation
the duct system covers. Choanocytes within each chamber in the embryonic development of higher Metazoa. Other
are very similar to choanoflagellates in morphology, with sponges have complicated parenchymula larvae, which are
20–40 filopodia surrounding the central flagellum and serv similar to a gastrula. The sponge larvae are therefore consid
ing to collect food captured externally and filtered towards ered to be a model for the evolution of the first metazoans
the cell. Sponge skeletal elements are made of collagen and (‘Gastraea hypothesis’).
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 265
266 Megasystematics
4.2.1.3
Placozoa, Cnidaria, Ctenophora
The metazoans Placozoa, Cnidaria, and Ctenophora thread. Most cnidarian species display a radial symmetry at
(comb jellies) are characterised by two germ cell layers, the their adult stage. The Cnidaria include the Anthozoa (corals,
endoderm and ectoderm, and are therefore together known sea anemones) and the Medusozoa. Apart from a few fresh
as the Diploblasta. These three groups all feature mitochon water species, most of the approximately 9,000 known spe
dria but not plastids. As with the sponges, the phylogenetic cies of cnidarians are marine, and are both sessile (polyps)
relationship of these groups with each other remains unclear. and planktonic (jellyfish). They have epithelia and a netlike
The Placozoa are 1–3 mm wide flattened animals with a nervous system.
dorsal surface epithelium (ectoderm), consisting of only one The approximately 100 known species of Ctenophora are
cell type, and a ventral digestive epithelium (endoderm, con usually marine and pelagic. They are characterised by their
sisting of two cell types. They have no real epithelial cells epithelia and a reticular nervous system. Unlike the Cnidar
and no nervous system or body symmetry. There are at least ia, they do not have any nettle cells. Instead, many cteno
30 known placozoan species, of which only the type Trichop phores have colloblasts, cells consisting of a coiled spiral fila
lax adhaerens has been formally described. They are marine ment embedded in the epidermis and used to capture prey.
and feed on algae. Colloblasts rupture on contact with prey, releasing an adhe
The Cnidaria are characterised by their specialised nettle sive substance which prevents it from escaping. Ctenophore
cells called cnidocytes, which are used for prey capture and are characterised by biradial body symmetry: the symmetry
defence from predators. The cnidocyte fires a thread contain of the lower half of the body is offset by approximately 90º
ing toxins from a characteristic subcellular organelle called compared with the upper half. However, symmetry is not ex
a nettle capsule. The nettle capsules are derived from the actly biradial as the body quadrants do not exactly match
Golgi apparatus and the flagellum developed into the cnido each other.
cil – a hairlike structure triggering the ejection of the nettle
The affiliation of Ctenophora and Cnidaria with the of individual development (morphogenesis). As a result of
triploblast metazoa is still unclear. Older scientific literature their role, HOX genes have special significance in the recon
often discusses the Cnidaria as model organisms for their ra struction of phylogenetic relationships.
dial symmetry. However, recent studies show that cnidarian As a result of their soft tissue structures, the groups dis
species are originally bilaterally constructed and that their cussed here are rarely found in the fossil record. In con
radial symmetry is secondary. Evidence of their original bi trast, fossil corals (Anthozoa, affiliated with the Cnidaria)
lateral symmetry can be seen in some Anthozoa (e.g. Nema are common reefbuilding organisms since the Ordovician.
nostella sp.) as well as in the bilaterally structured nervous Coral taxa are distinguished according to their number of
system of the Planula larvae. Consequently, bilateral symme gastric chambers as the Octocorallia (eight) and Hexacoral
try evolved before the split of cnidara from the other bilate lia (six). The fossil record features an important number of
rians. Thus, cnidarians belong to the bilaterians even though Hexacorallia: from the Ordovician to the Palaeozoic, these
they lack a third germ cell layer. were the Tabulata, which features undeveloped septa, as well
A close phylogenetic relationship between Cnidaria and as the Rugosa. The presentday most dominant coral groups
the triploblastic Bilateria is also supported by HOX gene have been in place since the Mesozoic, i.e. the Hexacorallia,
analyses, which target a family of regulatory genes whose including the hard corals (Scleractinia).
products control the activity of other genes during the course
open water zone
or layers in Metazoa
cies
axis
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 267
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
Trichoplax adhaerens Dickinsonia
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Dickinsonia
medusa
polyp
Bilateral symmetry
Radial symmetry
Symmetry and body structure
268 Megasystematics
4.2.1.4
Protostomia
Protostomia form a sister group to Deuterostomia and to twist 45º around the macromeres and lie in the cleavage of
gether these make up the metazoan lineage Nephrozoa. Phy the macromeres. However, certain Spiralia groups possess
logenetic relationships within the Protostomia remain un alternative cleavage types.
clear, though molecular work suggests that the group is split The phylogenetic system presented above is contrasted by
into the Ecdysozoa, Lophotrochozoa, and the Platyzoa. The the overwhelming morphological similarity of annelids (Spi
latter two groups form the Spiralia, sister to the Ecdysozoa. ralia) and arthropods (Ecdysozoa): both display a segmented
Ecdysozoans have a threelayered cuticula, whose moult morphology with a (metamerically organised) ropeladder
ing is controlled by a unique hormone called ecdysone. Lo nervous system and longitudinal muscles. Metameric seg
comotory flagella are degenerated; modified flagella are part ments usually contain the coelom, ganglia of the ropelad
of sensory organs and embedded in the cuticula, with no lo der nervous system, metanephridia, and extremities. These
comotory function. The embryonic development of Ecdyso structural similarities are the characteristics of the Articulata
zoa displays no clear spiral cleavage and they never have a (articulate animals).
trochophore larva. Protostomia do not contain plastids, but possess mito
In contrast, the Spiralia derive their name from their clear chondria. They are cosmopolitan and colonise aquatic and
embryonic spiral cleavage. In the third equatorial division, terrestrial habitats at all altitudes. The insects, which also be
four larger cells (macromeres) and four smaller cells (mi long to the Protostomia, is the most speciesrich taxon.
cromeres) are created, from which the smaller blastomeres
The morphological similarity between the annelids and Nevertheless, the morphological findings suggest that
the arthropods conventionally reinforced their phylogenetic these structures were convergently formed in both organis
relationship. However, homology of their different struc mal groups. This is quite plausible since the metameric or
tures is questionable and has not been proven; therefore, it ganisation brings functional advantages and because genes
remains unclear whether the limbs of arthropods, known as for anteriorposterior organisation and structure occur in all
the arthropoda, and the extremities of the annelids, the pa bilateral metazoan species. Further more, molecular data
rapodia, are homologous. Furthermore, it is unclear whether refute the ‘articulation concept’, meaning that metameric
the body cavities of arthropods and the coelom of annelids organisation must have arisen in both groups as a result of
correspond to each other. Despite the great organisational convergent evolution.
similarity of these two structures, serious doubts remain with
respect to their common origin.
(Grk.: koiloma
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 269
stida Rh
Subdivision of Protostomia pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
270 Megasystematics
4.2.1.5
Ecdysozoa
Ecdysozoa and Spiralia form the major groups within peristaltic movements, as annelids can, and therefore exhibit
Protostomia (Metazoa). The Ecdysozoa (moulting animals), a wavelike locomotion.
which comprise Panarthropoda and Cycloneuralia, are char Scalidophora are Cycloneuralia with a tripartite articu
acterised by a multilayered chitin cuticula and a hormone lated body. The anterior end features a proboscis, known as
controlled moulting cycle. Locomotory cilia are reduced. the introvert, which it uses to guide its movements. Sensory
Ecdysozoa usually possess mitochondria but not plastids. organs are also located on the introvert, which is covered in
In Cycloneuralia, which inhabit both marine and terrestri special scales known as scalids. The outer integument (endo
al habitats, the central nervous system runs in a ring around cuticula) contains chitin.
the throat and dorsal and ventral strands run along the body The Scalidophora include the Priapulida, Loricifera,
axis. Some species are important parasites, for example, Loa and the Kinorhyncha, all benthic marine organisms. Unlike
loa and Wuchereria bancrofti. Cycloneuralia species do not Nematoida, Scalidophora lack protonephridia.
possess plastids but most have mitochondria. The three spe The Panarthropoda are segmented Ecdysozoa with a met
cies Spinoloricus nov. sp., Rugiloricus nov. sp., and Pliciloricus americ nervous system and demonstrating teloblastic growth
nov. sp. (Loricifera), inhabiting sediment in the hypersaline, at their body extremes. They share these characteristics with
anoxic, L’Atalante deepwater basin of the Mediterranean, the annelids, which, however, are affiliated with the Spiralia.
possess hydrogenosomelike organelles which allow them to However, only Panarthropoda possess antennae or modified
survive in such extreme conditions. These are the first known head limbs, paired claws, and yolkrich eggs with partially
multicellular metazoan species living in the absence of oxy superficial cleavage. In general, excretory functions are car
gen. ried out by modified metanephridia; a coelom is established
Nematoida (including Nematoda and Nematomorpha) at least in the embryonic stage. The Panarthropoda compris
are Cycloneuralia with unstructured, elongated bodies. Due es Onychophora (roughly 110 exclusively terrestrial species),
to their lack of circular muscle, the Nematoida cannot make the Tardigrada (roughly 800 marine and limnoterrestrial
species), and the Euarthropoda (several million species).
Tardigrades, also known as water bears or moss piglets, The misinterpretation of the singlegene genetic rela
have an unusual morphology which makes them difficult to tionship between tardigrades and other groups is primarily
compare with other Panarthropoda. For example, they lack a caused by a phenomenon known as ‘longbranch attraction’,
coelom, nephridia, and trachea, with gas exchange occurring where results are skewed because target groups differ too
at their body surface. Each individual segment is also difficult much from the other species featured in the analysis. As a
to compare with those of other Panarthropoda. The assign result, the reconstruction of phylogenetic relationships for
ment of tardigrates to Panarthropoda is based largely on mo groups like tardigrades, where the separation of the closest
lecular rather than morphological findings. Genetic analyses known relatives occurred a relatively long time ago, remains
of single genes support their relationship with Nematoida, difficult.
whereas multigene phylogenetic studies groupsthem closer
to Onychophora and Euarthropoda.
mouth parts of the chelicerata
common in all Articulata
(Grk.: (Lat.: trachea
part of the alimentary canal
anterior part in Chelicerata
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 271
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
A
Scalidophora
Cerco
odo
Priapulida la ria
C uc
op Re
ta
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
Loricifera
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
Kinorhyncha
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Nematoida
Nematomorpha Eubacteria Archaea
Nematoda
Tardigrada
Onychophora
Chelicerata
Trilobita
Euarthropoda
Myriapoda
Mandibulata Nauplius
Crustacea
Hexapoda
Freezing and thawing
272 Megasystematics
4.2.1.6
Spiralia
The second major Protostomia group is the Spiralia, com and the paraphyletic Rotifera share a common jaw morphol
prising around 150,000 known species. They have mitochon ogy, and are therefore summarised as Gnathifera, a relation
dria but lack plastids. ship that is also supported by molecular data.
Most organisms in this group are placed within Spiralia The second large spiralian lineage is Lophotrochozoa,
because they exhibit a characteristic spiral cleavage during including Brachiozoa and Trochozoa. The Trochozoa have
embryonic development. Deviations of this cleavage type trochophorelavae, which are round or pearshaped and have
can, however, also be found in some spiralian groups. Spi two or more rows of cilia. They include Nemertea, anne
ralia include the flatworms and related species (Platyzoa), lids, and molluscs. Brachiozoa exhibit a characteristic feed
Trochozoa (which form trochophore larvae), and the Bra ing organ known as the lophophore, which features a ring
chiozoa. Brachiozoa and Trochozoa are collectively known of cilialaden tentacles around a mouth. The Brachiozoa in
as Lophotrochozoa. clude the Brachiopoda and Phoronida. Molecular data also
The Platyzoa have a relatively simple acoelomate body support the Lophotrochozoa. However, the Ectoprocta and
plan and possess protonephridia. Apart from the flatworms Entoprocta also possess a similar organ and are therefore
(Platyhelminthes), most other platyzoan species are poorly grouped with Brachiozoa within Lophophorata. Molecular
studied and their phylogenetic relationships remain unclear. data, in contrast, suggest Ectoprocta and Entroprocta group
The Gnathostomulida, Micrognathozoa, Acanthocephala, with Platyzoa.
Although the different lineages affiliated with Lophotro The Aculifera (spiked molluscs) lack typical mollusc shells
chozoa are well supported, the internal systematics of the but may exhibit other shelllike body parts, such as chitons.
group and the phylogenetic relationship of most internal Spiked molluscs do not form a monophyletic group; in par
lineages to each other are often unclear. We discuss the Bra ticular, the vermiform Aplacophora are probably basal mol
chiozoa, Mollusca, and Ectoprocta. luscs. The Ectoprocta are systematically difficult to classify
The benthic marine Phoronida are filter feeders with no because the two lineages (Phylactolaemata and Gymnolae
shell. Brachiopoda, on the other hand, are shellbearing ben mata) exhibit distinctly different morphological characteris
thic organisms, living in a similar way to mussels though, tics, which in part support their relationship with Entoprocta
instead of possessing a left and right shell, they are character and further to Platyzoa, whereas other characters support
ised by upper and lower shell halves. Molecular and morpho their relationship with the Brachiopoda and ultimately to
logical data, including studies relating to the construction of Lophotrochozoa. Even the few available molecular data are
brachiopod cilia, place Brachiozoa near the annelids. conflicting, supporting both a relationship with Entroprocta
The molluscs are also a speciesrich group with unclear as well as with Brachiopoda, but also alongside Chaetog
internal systematic relationships. naths as basal Protostomia.
The Conchifera form a monophyletic group and possess
typical mollusc shells. They comprise the Bivalvia (mussels),
Gastropoda (snails), and Cephalopoda (cephalopods).
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 273
stida Rh
pla iza
Ectoprocta ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Entoprocta
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
P oba olata
oma
Alve
Cycliophora a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
Gastrotricha mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Plathelminthes
Eubacteria Archaea
Gnathostomulida
Micrognathozoa
Gnathifera
Acanthocephala
Phoronida
Brachiozoa
L Brachiopoda
Nemertea
Annelida
Trochozoa
Mollusca
Priscacara liops
Priscacara liops
Why can some fossils not be found?
274 Megasystematics
4.2.1.7
Deuterostomia
The Deuterostomia, along with Protostomia, make up sea lilies and wild feather stars) as the only recent group of
Nephrozoa. The approximately 60,000 known species of Pelmatozoa, the Asterozoa (Asteroidea – sea stars; Ophi
Deuterostomia are cosmopolitan, colonising aquatic and ter uroidea – brittle stars) and the Echinozoa (Echinoidea – sea
restrial habitats. They even occur in the atmosphere. urchins; Holothuroidea – sea cucumbers). All echinoderms
During embryonic development of Deuterostomia, the are characterised by their ambulacral system (water vascular
first opening, the blastopore, develops to the anus. The system); the appendages of this channel system are used as
mouth opens secondarily from a primitive gut in a process suction feet for locomotion and as tentacles for the acquisi
called deuterostomy. Deuterostomia comprise Chordata tion of food.
and Ambulacraria, which includes Echinodermata (echino Chordata are characterised by their dorsal axis rod, the
derms) and Hemichordata. notochord, a nerve cord lying above the chorda, a neural
The Hemichordata were previously grouped within Chor tube, as well as the anterior pharynx showing gills. In higher
data as a result of their gill slits, although their larval mor vertebrates, this structure is converted to gills. The notochord
phology and more recent molecular findings reinforce their (chorda dorsalis), serves as an endoskeleton and arises ontoge
relationship with echinoderms. Hemichordata include vari netically from the mesoderm. This structure is found in Bra
ous recent wormlike organisms, including Enteropneusta as chiostoma as well as in the larvae of Urochordata and of
well as the extinct graptolites. lampreys.
Echinoderms, on the other hand, are exclusively marine,
and include the Pelmatozoa including the Crinoidea (sessile
slits enable the animal to breathe as well as extract particles of
(Grk.: skeletos = frame) inner
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 275
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
Hemichordata
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
A op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
Pelmatozoa zo
a Ha s
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Echinodermata
Op
hyta
Apu
Asterozoa
Eubacteria Archaea
Echinozoa
Cephalochordata (Acrania)
Urochordata
(Tunicata)
C
Olfactores
Myxini
Craniata
Gnathostomata
276 Megasystematics
4.2.1.8
Gnathostomata
The Gnathostomata, along with the Myxini and Petromy (dogfish sharks), only some skeletal elements are ossified,
zontida form Craniata, a group within the Chordata. especially in the area around the skull and vertebrae. The
In Gnathostomata, mouth edges are comprised of artic skeletons of the Euteleostomi are, however, ossified.
ulated bone clasps. In fish, amphibians, reptiles, and birds, The bony fish (Osteichthyes) are a paraphyletic group, in
these are held together by temporomandibular joints. Jaws cluding all Euteleostomi with the exception of Tetrapoda.
presumably arose from the modification of the third and Bony fish therefore include the rayfinned fish (Actinop
fourth branchial arches. The original function of this modi terygii) as well as the fleshfinned fish (Sarcopterygii), which
fication was likely in order to more effectively pump avail do not belong to Tetrapoda. The paired fins of fleshy, bone
able water through the gills. The associated enlarging of the finned fish have a single, monobasal, bony axis running from
mouth and stabilisation of the mouth rim led to the develop the body, connected to the shoulder and the pelvis bone. This
ment of a real jawbone. bone is homologous to the upper arm bone (humerus) and
In the Placodermi, the jaw is made of just one gill arch the thigh bone (femur) of tetrapods.
(shown in red in the figure opposite), whereas in cartilagi The fourlegged vertebrates are summarised as Tetrapoda.
nous fish (Chondrichthyes) and the Teleostomi this is made These include Lissamphibia (amphibians) and the Amniota.
of two arches. The Teleostomi have four pairs of gills and a The embryonic development of amphibians is highly water
gill slit and operculum. dependent, whereas the Amniota overcome this dependence
The skeletons of cartilaginous fish are largely deossified. through the development of the embryo within a liquid
In the extinct sister group of Euteleostomi, the Acanthodii filled, membranebound amnion.
The placoderms (Placodermi) were the first large preda sequence, the internal skeleton became more important as a
tory fish with strong jaws. In addition, their heavy armour stabilising element and a point to which muscle could attach.
provided protection against predators, although at the same Land vertebrates evolved the ability to breathe air, as
time this restricted their mobility. With the evolution of more can be seen in lung fish. Important transformations also ap
efficient jaws in predatory fish, the ability to be highly mo peared on the fins of fish, as in coelacanths and lungfish.
bile and to respond rapidly become vital for prey compared Teleost fish are a paraphyletic taxon. Lungfish and coe
with further developments to their outer armour. As a con lacanths group with the tetrapods, forming Sarcopterygii, as
they are more closely related to these than to rayfinned fish.
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 277
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Placodermi
Chondrichthyes
Acanthodii
Teleostomi
Euteleostomi
Coelacanthimorpha
Sarcopterygii
Dipnoi
Lissamphibia
Tetrapoda
Amniota
2
The development of dinosaurs and angiosperms
278 Megasystematics
4.2.1.9
Amniota
The Amniota and Amphibia belong to the Tetrapoda (land ral window in their skull, but molecular studies suggest they
vertebrates). Amniota are terrestrial vertebrates with embry are related to the diapsids, possibly as a sister group to the
os that develop in liquid (amniotic fluid) within an amniotic Archosauromorpha.
cavity surrounded by an embryonic sac (amnion). Vitally, Apart from mammals and possibly turtles, all other Am
their development is therefore independent of aquatic habi niota alive today belong to the diapsids. The subgroup Ar
tats. Amniota include birds, mammals, and the paraphyletic chosauromorpha (archosaurs) includes birds, crocodiles,
reptiles. Their cells lack plastids but contain mitochondria. and various saurian groups. The birds are a subgroup of
The Amniota are divided into the Synapsida and Saurop the Dinosauria, which belong to the Ornithodira, while the
sida, which are in turn subdivided into Anapsida and Di crocodiles belong to the Crurotarsi. The two groups differ
apsida. These groups differ from each other morphologically markedly through their ankle anatomy but have the condont
by the number of openings, or holes, that they have on their (socket) teeth, though these are secondarily reduced in birds.
skull. All other living reptiles (snakes, tuataras) belong to the
The synapsids include mammals and their ancestors. The Lepidosauria. These are acrodont or pleurodont, but are
anapsids include a number of extinct reptiles whereas the never thecodont. The Lepidosauria are characterised by the
diapsids comprise modernday reptiles and birds, as well as spreading of their extremities, which affects locomotion –
their extinct relatives. The position of the turtles in relation carried out by lateral undulation of the spine.
to anapsids or diapsids remains unclear: they have no tempo
ture
See also:
Unikonta: Holozoa 279
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
Protheria rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Metatheria a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
Synapsida a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
Theria eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
thecodont A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eutheria
Eubacteria Archaea
Anapsida
Anapsida
Testudines
Lepidosauromorpha teeth
S Sauropterygia
acrodont or pleuro
dont
Lepidosauria
Diapsida
Ornithodira
Archosauromorpha
thecodont
Crurotarsi
Indricotherium transouralicum
Size and dimensions
280 Megasystematics
4.2.2
Holomycota
The unikont kingdom Fungi comprises approximately plants (mycorrhizae), algae, and cyanobacteria (lichens), as
70,000 known species, classified into the following groups: well as animals (for example, leafcutter ants). Many fungal
Nucleariidae, Microsporidia, Chytridiomycota (plus Neocal species also live parasitically on a variety of host organisms,
limastigomycota and Blastocladiomycota, recently excluded and are able to shift easily between mutualistic and parasitic
from the Chytridiomycota), Glomeromycota in the strict relationships.
sense, the polyphyletic zygosporeforming Glomeromycota Fungi include the largest living organisms on Earth, be
(previously known as Zygomycota), Ascomycota, and Ba longing to the species Armillaria ostoyae (honey mushrooms).
sidiomycota. This organism, which weighs around 600 tonnes, occupies a
Fungi have mitochondria but no plastids and form charac 9 km² area of forest in Oregon, USA, and is likely over 2,400
teristic cell walls made of chitin, cellulose, and glucans. Like years old. The fungus Formitiporia ellipsoidea forms the largest
bacteria, fungi are ecologically vital components within the fruiting body, over 10 m long, 80 cm wide, and around 5.5 cm
decomposition process in both terrestrial and aquatic ecosys thick. In comparison, the largest plants on Earth, the gi
tems, freeing carbon dioxide and nutrients from degrading ant redwoods (Sequoiadentron giganteum), are approximately
organic material. 120 m tall and weigh around 1,250 tonnes each. The largest
Fungi also play an important role in the supply of nu living animal is the blue whale, measuring around 33 m in
trients to plants, as well as in symbiotic relationships with length and weighing 140 tonnes.
nutrients
the fusion of the cytoplasms of two cells
See also:
Unikonta: Holomycota 281
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
The Nucleariidae
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
The Microsporidia
Eubacteria Archaea
The Chytridiomycota
, , Zoopagomy
Glomeromycota
Basidiomycota
The Basidiomycota Ascomycota
Ascomycota
CH2OH CH2OH
CH2OH CH2OH
O O
O
OH OH
NHCCH3 NHCCH3
=
O O
2 CH2OH CH2OH
O O
O
O OH
H3CCH O O
CO
R
Cell wall materials
282 Megasystematics
4.2.2.1
Microsporidia and Chytridiomycota
The Chytriodiomycota are mostly singlecelled fungi Neocallimastigomycota and Blastocladiomycota. The Neo
comprising around 700 known species grouped within either callimastigomycota have no mitochondria, but do have hy
the Chytridiomycetes or the Monoblepharidomycetes. They drogenosomes. The Blastocladiomycota are a group that is
are the only fungal group to form flagellated cells (zoospores predominantly based on molecular data alone.
and gametes). The Chytridiomycota have mitochondria but The unicellular Microsporidia comprise about 1,200 spe
no plastids. They are predominantly aquatic but may also cies, all of which are intracellular parasites that are usually
colonise shores of lakes and rivers and even drier soils (in found within the intestinal epithelium of fish and arthro
cluding desert soils). They live as parasites, mutualists, and pods. Some may also infect humans. Microsporidians, which
saprophytes. Anaerobic species of Chytridiomycota are in have neither mitochondria nor plastids, reproduce by passing
volved in the degradation of plant materials within the diges on spores. They are divided into two groups: Apansporoblas
tive tract of sheep and cattle. tina and Pansporoblastina.
Many anaerobic species were excluded from Chytridi
omycota and placed in the recently established groups
Some Chytridiomycota species form hyphae, usually not known as the polar tube. It can be up to 400 µm in length and
separated by septa. The hyphae are multinucleate and only is used when Microsporida infect a host cell: within the intes
the sporangia are separated from the rest of the fungal body tine of the host, the polar tubes are ejected based on a chemi
by a cell wall. cal signal triggered by increasing pressure within the spore.
In asexual reproduction, the sporangia release flagellated The polar tubes attache themselves to the host’s intestinal
spores which germinate upon contact with a source of nutri epithelium and the sporoplasm enters the host cell through
tion. In sexual reproduction, flagellated germ cells (gametes) the tube. Two groups can be distinguished depending on
are released. Some species also display somatogamy, where the design of the extrusion apparatus, the Microsporea and
two hyphae merge and the zygote develops into a spore. Rudimicrosporea. Asexual reproduction (merogony) takes
Microsporidia lack kinetosomes, centrioles, and flagella. place within the host cell, finally forming new spores (sporo
They also lack mitochondria and have strongly reduced ge gony) asexually. The newlyformed spores leave the host
nomes, among the smallest observed genomes of eukaryotes. through faeces or during decomposition.
Their spores are between 1–40 µm in size, surrounded by two Nosema apis is of particular economic importance, as it is
cell wall layers, the inner layer (endospore) made of chitin the trigger of nosemosis, the most common disease in adult
and the outer layer (ectospore) made of proteins. They also bees. These transfer from one bee community to another
feature a characteristic coiled polar filament inside the spore, through either predatory insects or on individual bees.
parts
paratus
cell plasm in a spore
(Grk.:
See also:
Unikonta: Holomycota 283
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Rhizidium
Limanda limanda
Glugea stephani
Babesiosis – development of Babesia sp.
Plasmo (Apicomplexa):
dium Toxoplasma Leishma
nia Schistosoma
merogony
284 Megasystematics
4.2.2.2
Glomeromycota: arbuscular mycorrhizal fungi
The arbuscular mycorrhizal fungi, now known as Glom etrate plant root cortical cells, forming treelike branches of
eromycota, were formerly grouped with the zygosporeform hyphae (arbuscules) through which they can move nutrients.
ing taxa as Zygomycota. Recent molecular phylogenies show This process also enables plants to better absorb dissolved
that Glomeromycota form a distinct lineage, which includes nutrients from the ground. Conversely, the fungus is also able
the arbuscular mycorrhizal fungi as well as some zygospore to obtain carbohydrates from the host plant. Storage vesicles
forming taxa. The Glomeromycota are a rare and species can form at the ends of the hyphae, which are multinucleate
poor group of chitinous fungi, important in an ecological and contain lipids.
and evolutionary context. As with other members of the This type of symbiosis is known as arbuscular mycorrhi
mushrooms, they do not contain plastids but possess mito zal (AM) and, as a result, the Glomeromycota are also called
chondria. AM fungi. AM fungi are not hostspecific and, consequently
All Glomeromycota species live in obligate symbiosis with up to 80 % of land plants live in symbiosis with such fungal
mosses, ferns, and seed plants, playing a central role in the species. Around 160 different AM fungi species have been
nutrient supply of land plants. The hyphae of the fungi pen described.
The oldest known terrestrial fungi fossils are AM fungi ably time around 900 mya. It is unclear how these fungi
from the Ordovician, around 440 mya. The symbiosis be lived before land plants existed on Earth, though possibly in
tween Glomeromycetes and land plants developed with the symbiosis with cyanobacteria. This hypothesis is supported
emergence of land plants in the Silurian, the two coevolving by a single known endosymbiosis between a fungus and a
since then. This relationship was likely vital in the colonisa cyanobacterium: cyanobacteria of genus Nostoc live endos
tion of terrestrial habitats by plants. ymbiotically with the glomeromycete of the genus Geosiphon
However, the radiation of fungi dates back to a much pyriformis. In this relationship, the cyanobacteria live within
earlier, with the emergence of Glomeromycota, presum vesicles formed by the fungus.
See also:
Unikonta: Holomycota 285
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Viola Eubacteria Archaea
Mycorrhiza
286 Megasystematics
4.2.2.3
Zygosporeforming fungi
The zygosporeforming fungi were previously grouped as maturing into spores. These are then released by the rupture
Zygomycota (zygote fungi), making up around 1,000 known of the sporangium, subsequently forming a new mycelium.
species. They have no plastids but contain mitochondria. Zygosporeforming fungi are mainly terrestrial and can be
Molecular data show that the group is polyphyletic, with found on every continent apart from Antarctica. They live
some taxa belonging to Glomeromycota as well as to four saprophytically, symbiotically, or parasitically on animals,
sublineages of unclear affiliation: Mucoromycotina, En plants or other fungi.
tomophthoromycotina, Zoopagomycotina, and Kickxello The most wellknown representative of the zygoteform
mycotina. ing fungi is the bread mould Rhizopus stolonifera, which be
The hyphae of zygosporeforming fungi do not have longs to the Mucoromycotina and usually grows on bread,
any real cell walls (septa), with the exception of sporan fruit, and other wet, carbohydraterich food. Preservatives
gia. Zygosporeforming fungi produce zygospores during such as calcium propionate and sodium benzoate can inhibit
sexual reproduction, where two hyphae of different mating the growth of this fungus. In this fungus, stolons, specialised
types grow together, forming a multinucleate gametangium. hyphae, form at the mycelium and stretch in the direction of
Gametes are not formed but, instead, the gametangia merge the foodstuff surface. When the stolons hit the surface mem
(plasmogamy) into a multinucleated zygospore. Within the brane, rhizoids grow and asexual sporangiophores are pro
zygospore, nuclei from two mating types come together first duced. At the point when sporangiophores with black spo
undergoing karyogamy and then meiosis. At the moment of rangia develop, the mycelium is already deeply penetrated
zygospore germination, a sporangiophore forms at the hy into the food (for example, bread). Sexual reproduction takes
phal tip. The nucleii migrate towards this sporangium before place in adverse environmental conditions (such as nutrient
shortage and drought).
(Lat.: carnivorus
(Grk.: spora = vessel) a structure
fusion of two nuclei (Grk.: spora
See also:
Unikonta: Holomycota 287
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Zoophagus
Phycomeces blakesleeanus
Bryophyta: Algae:
Pteridophyta:
Fungi in the broader sense:
Yeast:
288 Megasystematics
4.2.2.4
Ascomycota
The Ascomycota (sac fungi) are the sister group of Basidi medically important species belong to this lineage, includ
omycota within the chitinous fungi. Both groups are char ing the antibioticproducing Penicillium chrysogenum, as well
acterised by a septation of the hyphae by cross walls with as the pathogenic lung parasite Pneumocystis, ergot (Clavicepts
a central perforation, binuclear (dikaryotic) phases after the purpurea), and powdery mildew. Various species belonging
merger of the cell plasma and the possibility of fusion of to the family Erysiphaceae (Pezizomycotina) are causative
sterile hyphae (anastomosis). The Ascomycota also contain agents of powdery mildew. Mildews infections affect a range
sporebearing cells, the tubular asci. of plant species, with fruiting bodies forming on the top of
Around 30,000 species of Ascomycota have been de leaves. The causative agents of downy mildews, which form
scribed, yet another 30,000 are known to live symbiotically fruiting bodies on the underside of leaves, are not related to
with algae in lichen. They are predominantly terrestrial, the ascomycetes but, rather, to the Oomycetes (strameno
though a few species can also be found in freshwater and piles).
marine habitats. All Ascomycota lack plastids but possess A number of mould species (for example, the red bread
mitochondria. Their cell walls mostly contain chitin and mould Neurospora sitophila) as well as most Ascomycota with
glucan. large and conspicuous fruiting bodies, and the edible lorchel,
Ascomycota are divided into the Pezizomycotina, Saccha morel, and truffle fungi, also belong to the Pezizomycotina.
romycotina, and the Taphrinomycotina. Furthermore, many lichen fungi belong to this group, includ
Pezizomycotina are the largest lineage. Characteristic is ing the largest lineage of lichen fungi, i.e. the order Lecano
the formation of asci from ascogenous hyphae which are rales, which comprises around 10,000 species.
combined within a fruiting body called ascocarp. Several
In addition to the Pezizomycotina, the Saccharomycotina research. Saccharomycotina also include pathogenic species,
and Taphrinomycotina also belong to Ascomycota. including the mucosal infecting Candida albicans.
The Taphrinomycotina are a diverse but relatively species Sexual reproduction occurs mostly through gametangiog
poor group. As with Saccharomycotina, they lack fruiting amy. In the ascus, i.e. the extension of the dikaryotic hyphae,
bodies (ascocarp or ascoma). the nuclei undergo karyogamy and subsequently meiosis,
Saccharomycotina have a simple morphology with short resulting in four or eight ascospores which are released and
or no hyphae. Their asci arise without the formation of an grow into new mycelia. The fruiting bodies are named ac
ascocarp, after the joining of two haploid cells. After the for cording to their shape: apothecium (peeling open), peritheci
mation of the zygote, an ascus containing four ascospores um (bottleshaped), and cleistothecium (spherically closed).
develops. The Saccharomycotina include most yeasts, in Reproduction is predominantly asexual, occurring
cluding baker’s yeast (Saccharomyces cerevisiae). In addition to through the proliferation of mononuclear conidia, located
its commercial importance, this species, having been the first in the tips of specialised hyphae and distributed by animals,
eukaryotic organism to have its genome sequenced, is one wind, and water.
of the most important objects of genetics and cell biology
See also:
Unikonta: Holomycota 289
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Volvox.
Caulerpa.
290 Megasystematics
4.2.2.5
Basidiomycota
Basidiomycota comprise around 30,000 species, roughly spores are called conidia and serve vegetative, asexual repro
a third of all known fungi, divided into three subphyla: the duction.
Agaricomycotina (standing mushrooms in the narrow sense, The Agaricomycotina (standing fungi) is the most com
including most edible fungi), the Ustilaginomycotina (smut monly recognised fungal group, familiar to most of us as
fungi), and the Pucciniomycotina (rust fungi). mushrooms or toadstools. These mushrooms obtain nutri
Basidiomycota are characterised by the presence of basid ents saprophytically through their mycelium or symbiotically
ia, bottleshaped cells that form haploid spores after meiosis. through mycorrhizae. About 90 % of the volume of each in
Basidia are either unicellular (holobasidia) with four spores dividual is made up of underground mycelia. Fruiting bod
or divided into four septa (fragmobasidia). In Fragmobasid ies are formed above ground as a reproductive organ. The
ia, each septum contains a spore. basidia are formed in the hymenium, the area where spores
As with other chitinous fungi, plasmogamy, the fusion of are formed through meiosis. The standing fungi vary by their
cells, and karyogamy, the fusion of nuclei, are two separate organisational form, based on the position of the hymenium,
processes. Mycelia are therefore dikaryotic, containing two influencing the external shape of the fruiting bodies: in aga
nuclei. Karyogamy, the fusion of the nuclei, takes place in rics, the hymenium sits on lamellae, whereas in tubular fungi
the hymenium immediately before meiosis. In addition to this organ sits on the inside of the tube. In gasteroid fungi
the meiotic spores produced in the basidia, the haploid hy (Gasteromycetes), spores are formed inside the organism.
phae can build spores as well. These mitotically resulting
See also:
Unikonta: Holomycota 291
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa ta
o pt
eb
Cry
soz on
op
Uromyces mo
ok
A hy
ptop
st
ta
hi
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
2
Carex
Anthracoidea
i.e.
Symbiosis / mutualism
292 Megasystematics
4.2.3
Amoebozoa
The Amoebozoa are the sister group of the Ophistokonta. comprise ‘naked’ forms (Amoeba, Chaos), shelled amoeba,
In these organisms, the shape of the cell is usually not fixed and slime mould forms. Flagella are usually reduced and the
but is, rather, amoeboid. However, amoebae, organisms char pseudopodia contain no microtubules.
acterised by their amoeboid locomotion, can also be found The Amoebozoa were conventionally divided into Lo
in many other groups of organisms as well. For example, bosa (with Tubulinea and Discosea) and Conosa. Neverthe
largely amoeboid species occur in Rhizaria as well the Het less, phylogenetic relationships within Amoebozoa remain
erolobosea (Excavata). The Amoebozoa therefore comprise unclear.
numerous but not all amoeboid organisms. Amoebozoa
of the cell membrane or cell wall in smaller concentrations than are present in the atmosphere
uroid: posterior bulb in amoebae
See also:
Unikonta: Amoebozoa 293
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
Ha s
oa
oa nta
z pt
bo
Cry
e op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
Amoeba . ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Nebela collaris
Apu
Tubulinea:
Eubacteria Archaea
Leptomyxida
Arcellinida
Discosea:
Flabellinia
Dactylopodida
Stygamoebida
Longamoebia
Dermamoebida
Thecamoebida
Centramoebida (Acanthamoebida) Ripella platypodia
Conosa:
Phalansterium
Protosteliida
Schizoplasmodiida
Archamoebae
Entamoebidae
Pelomyxa
Cavosteliida
Protosporangiida
Mayorella
Dictyostelia
Myxogastria
Thecamoeba
Pseudopodia
294 Megasystematics
4.2.3.1
Conosa
Along with Lobosa, the Conosa belong to Amoebozoa, modia by repeated nuclear divisions, without subsequent cell
together forming a group sister to Opisthokonta. Conosa divisions. Formation of fruiting bodies occurs when the plas
comprise a number of flagellated taxa. Specifically, they in modia switches from negative to positive phototaxis, moving
clude Archamoebae, a variety of slime moulds (polyphyletic towards a light source and developing fruiting bodies, known
group, partly making up Mycetozoa), as well as other taxa. as sporocarps, develop.
The genera Multicilia and Phalansterium, as well as other rep In Dictyostelia, several amoeboid cells congregate to form
resentatives, make up the Variosea. a multicellular aggregation, known as a pseudoplasmodium.
The species Breviata anathema, formerly placed within The pseudoplasmodium undergoes a metamorphosis part
the Mastigamoebidae, remains phylogenetically unresolved, ly forming a stem and partly a sorus, the latter containing
though it is currently classified within Breviata (not shown), spores.
which may be a sister group of all remaining Amoebozoa. The majority of the approximately 1,000 known slime
The slime moulds are characterised by numerous of mor mould species live in terrestrial habitats, mainly on dead
phologically different stages during their life cycle. Multinu wood but also on the bark of living trees and on decaying
cleate plasmodia arise during the transition to fruiting body plant material scattered across the ecosystem surface. How
formation. ever, slime moulds have also been found in deserts and in
In the Myxogastria and Protostelia, the plasmodia devel alpine habitats. They lack plastids.
op from mononucleate amoeboid cells to multinucleate plas
(Lat.:
See also:
Unikonta: Amoebozoa 295
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
Ha s
oa
oa nta
z pt
bo
Cry
e op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Protostelium
right: Brefeldia maxima Eubacteria Archaea
5
1
4
3 2 4 1
Dictyostelia
3 2
296 Megasystematics
4.3
Excavata
The Excavata (excavates) are a major eukaryotic group Another feature that is typical of the excavates is the pos
named after the characteristic shape of their mouthpart, or teriorlyfacing flagellum, which beats to create a water cur
cystosome, which has a pronounced groove. However, many rent that sweeps prey particles towards the cystosome.
excavates lack this feature, as it is secondarily reduced in
various groups.
The excavates include Metamonada (metamonads) and aerobically or microaerophilically; their mitochondria are
Discoba (discobids) among others. Many taxa within these reduced.
two groups, and especially Metamonada, live in anaerobic In contrast, with a few exceptions, the discobids have mi
habitats and have highly reduced mitochondria (hydrogeno tochondria. In the Jakobida, the mitochondrial cristae are
somes and mitosomes). These reduced organelles are no morphologically distinct (often tubular), whereas in the case
longer capable of oxidative phosphorylation and, therefore, of Heterolobosea and Euglenozoa, these structures are dis
can not be used for generating energy by cellular respiration. coid. As a result of this morphological property, these two
Still, these structures biosynthesise proteins and fats in the groups are clustered together as Discristata, which include
same way as mitochondria. freeliving forms as well as parasitic taxa.
Metamonads comprise mainly commensal and parasitic
taxa, as well as some freeliving taxa. All species live an
kinetid: structure in eukaryotic cells used for locomotion
kinetoplast: network of circular DNA in the mitochondrium of
kinetoplastids
kinetosome:
paraxonemal rod:
See also: Hydrogenosome: 4.3.1
Excavata 297
Metamonada
Fornicata
Preaxostyla
Parabasalia
Discoba
Discristata: discoid mitochondrial cristae
Heterolobosea
Euglenozoa
Euglenida
Kinetoplastea
Diplonemea
Jakobida
Phagocytosis (Grk: phagein = to eat; cyto
lysosomes.
Phagocytosis
298 Megasystematics
4.3.1
Metamonada
The Metamonada (metamonads) include Diplomona sals within the gut of insects. For example, they play a vital
dida (diplomonads), Retortamonadida, Parabasalia, and role within the process of wood and cellulose degradation
Oxymonadida. Metamonads have no plastids and all taxa within the gut of termites.
are anaerobic and amitochondrial, meaning they lack mito Some metamonads are also important pathogens, includ
chondria. Their lack of mitochondria was previously falsely ingfor example the diplomonad gut parasite Giardia, which
attributed to the ancestral state, with metamonads accord affects various vertebrates including humans. Giardia is a
ingly attributed as the earliest eukaryotes. However, meta common pathogen in human drinking water, since cells are
monads have been shown to possess genes from an earlier particularly resistant to chlorination and UVtreatment pro
mitochondrial state, in addition to organelles like mitosomes cedures. In areas with poor treatment facilities, up to 30 %
or hydrogenosomes, which are interpreted as reduced mito of the human population may be infected. Ultrafiltration,
chondria. These organelles and the remaining mitochondrial however, has been shown to be completely effective against
genes indicate that metamonad ancestors possessed mito Giardia. Trichomonads, which belong to the Parabasalia,
chondria. are also pathogenic, infecting the genitourinary tract. Tricho
Today, metamonads live in a number of anaerobic habi monas vaginalis causes around 160 million infections in hu
tats and are particularly important in their role as commen mans each year worldwide.
axostyle: parabasal apparatus:
main body
costa:
dictyosome: stack of cisterna enclosed in a sac – the totality of
DOC: pelta:
kinetosome:
See also:
Excavata: Metamonada 299
stida Rh
Fornicata: pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
M Diplomonadida: ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
E Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
T Alve
Retortamonadida:
A Stra
lveolata
a
Meta monad men
opile
M Preaxostyla: zo
a Ha s
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
O op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
Oxymonadida:
ist
N ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
A
Apu
D
:
A Eubacteria Archaea
Parabasalia:
Oxymonadida
Oxymonadida:
costa Pyrsonympha
Monocercomonoides
hydrogenosomes
Parabasalia: Joenia
annectens
diagram of a parabasalid trichomonad
Nyc
totherus ovalis has a small hydrogenosome
the organelles took their name. Under aero
H2
Malat
N. H2 NAD + Malat
e‐
ovalis.
Nyctotherus
H+ NADH
ovalis ATP
ADP
H+
Hydrogenosomes
300 Megasystematics
4.3.2
Discoba
The Discoba include Jakobida and Euglenozoa, as well The Heterolobosea include amoeboid protozoa which
as the Percolozoa. Due to their discoid mitochondrial cris are not related to Amoebozoa. The two groups may also
tae, the Eugleonoza and Percolozoa are grouped together as be distinguished by their movement, which is dissimilar: in
Discicristata. The Jakobida, in contrast, have tubular cristae. the Heterolobosea, the biggest single pseudopod eruptively
Heterolobosea and their sister group comprising the gen swells forth from the cytoplasm, whereas in Amoebozoa, the
era Stephanopogon and Percolomonas make up the Percolozoa. pseudopodia are formed more slowly and in a flowing move
The genus Stephanopogon comprises marine and benthic ment. Some heterolobosean taxa also form flagellar stages,
flagellates with numerous flagella arranged in rows. The fla with two or four flagella, arranged in parallel. Flagellate
gella are rooted in the surface of the cell and are supported stages are not usually capable of taking in particulate food;
by radially arranged microtubules. however, for some species, this can be carried out through a
The genus Percolomonas only includes the species Percolo pitshaped cell mouth (cytostome). Amoeboid Heterolobo
monas cosmopolitus. Molecular data support the relationship sea are exclusively heterotrophic feeders.
within this group and to its sister group Heterolobosea.
detritus particles: detritus
is formed
pseudoplasmodium:
See also:
Excavata: Discoba 301
stida Rh
pla iza
Jakobida ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Dis ta
Excavata
co ba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
Discristata mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
discoid mitochondrial cristae Eubacteria Archaea
Percolozoa
Stephanopogon sp.
D Stephanopogon
Percolomonas sp.
Percolomonas cosmopolitus
P. cosmopolitus
Heterolobosea
Acrasidae
Naegleria
Schizopyrenida
Euglenida
Euglenozoa
Kinetoplastea
Reducing of genome size in parasites
302 Megasystematics
4.3.2.1
Euglenozoa: Euglenida
The Euglenozoa are a sister group to Percolozoa. They largely reduced and formed only within the ampulla. Pho
comprise Euglenida, Kinetoplastea, Diplonemea, and the toautotrophic species are distinguished by a basal swelling
Symbiontida. Euglenozoa have two flagella, of which one (paraflagellar body), which serves photosensory and orienta
is often strongly reduced. A feature common to Euglenida tion functions.
and Kinetoplastida is the pellicula and the paraxonemal rod The euglenids mainly live in freshwater, although some
running in parallel to the axoneme of the flagella. Only the species can also be found in marine and brackish habitats.
Diplonemida are missing a pellicula and a paraxonemal rod. There are approximately 1,000 described species, of which
Due to the paraxonemal rod, the flagella appear to have a around a third have plastids. Chloroplasts, containing chlo
thicker base. rophyll a and b, are surrounded by three membranes, with
For the most part, the Euglenida have no cell wall or solid the outer membrane separated from the endoplasmic reticu
structure around their plasma membrane. One exception is lum and the nuclear membrane. The products of photosyn
the genus Trachelomonas, which has a rigid cell wall made thesis are stored as paramylon in the cytoplasm. Phototro
of iron and manganesecontaining minerals. The Euglenida phic euglenoids are known to play a prominent role in algal
are characterised by a pellicula under their plasma mem blooms in lakes.
brane, composed of helically revolving microtubules and The Diplonemea include the two genera Diplonema and
other filaments. The pellicula may be rigid, as in the photo Rhynochopus, which are both unicellular and dorsoventrally
autotrophic genus Phacus, or flexible, which allows for the flattened, freeliving, phagotrophic flagellates. They live in
typical euglenoid movement, which is displayed specifically planktonic and benthic freshwater and marine environments.
by members of the group living in the substrate, as preda The Diplonemea have no pellicula and no paraxonemal rod.
tors, or as parasites. At the front end of the cell, the pellicula The systematic position of the Euglenida and the Kineto
converges into a channel complex, the ampulla, from which plastida remains unclarified.
the flagella emerge. In some taxa, the second flagellum is
paramylon: paraxonemal rod:
See also
Excavata: Discoba 303
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Dis ta
Excavata
co ba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Phacus Trachelomonas Peranema Eubacteria Archaea
OH
OH
HO O
HO O O ...
O
... O OH
OH
thylakoid
mitochondrion
terior end)
Euglena gracilis
Euglena
304 Megasystematics
4.3.2.2
Euglenozoa: Kinetoplastea
Together with the Euglenida, the Kinetoplastea make up cell body in others. Freeliving Kinetoplastea are usually
the Euglenozoa. These, in turn, with Discoba and Meta bacterivorous or live as endobiotic commensals. They are
monada, make up the Excavata. among the most common flagellate groups in many terres
Kinetoplastea include singlecelled flagellates that are trial and aquatic habitats.
either freeliving or parasitic. An important collective char The parasitic trypanosomatids have one flagellum (homol
acteristic of the group is the kinetoplast, a DNArich body ogous to the anterior cilium of freeliving taxa), which either
within the sole mitochondrion, which is often as long as the oscillates freely or is connected to the cell surface across sev
entire cell. The kinetoplast is located near the basal body of eral adhesion points, thereby stretching the membrane itself
the flagellum, to which it is connected by the cytoskeleton. to become an undulating membrane. Many trypanosomatids
The Kinetopolastea are divided into the Prokinetoplastina reproduce exclusively inside insects, although some species
and Metakinetoplastina. The former group includes a num may change host, generally from insects to vertebrates. The
ber of parasitic species, whereas the latter includes several pathogenic Leishmania spp. (leishmaniasis) and Trypanosoma
freeliving lineages (Neobodonida, Parabodonida, and Eu spp. (chagas disease, sleeping sickness and animal diseases
bondonida), as well as the parasitic Trypanosomatida. nagana and surra) belong to the Trypanosomatida. Some
The freeliving Kinetoplastea usually have two heterokont species may also be plant pathogens (Phyromonas). Since the
and heterodynamic flagella, with single rows of cilia along surface proteins of the parasites are highly variable, drug
the anteriorlydirected flagellum. The posteriorlydirected treatments against these pathogens are often difficult.
flagellum is free in some taxa, whereas it is fused with the
The Prokinetoplastina include the two genera Ichthyobodo are phagotrophic or osmotrophic and can be either freeliv
and Perkinsiella, which differ drastically from each other mor ing, commensal, or parasitic.
phologically. Thus, characteristic morphological features for The freeliving Eubodonida are phagotrophic. They pos
the Kinetoplastea are hard to define and their systematic sess two flagella, the posterior flagellum bears tubular hairs.
classification is therefore based on molecular phylogeny. Per Finally, the trypanosomatids are phagotrophic and os
kinsiella spp. are endosymbionts of various amoebae whereas motrophic, possessing just one flagellum without mastigon
Ichthyobodo spp. are ectoparasites of fish. emes. The kinetoplastkinetosomeflagellar complex varies
The biflagellates Neobodonida contain a cytostome but between taxa as well as across generational stages. A distinc
do not possess noticeable mastigonemes and their posterior tion can be made between the following forms: amastigote,
flagellum is either attached or free. They feed phagotrophi promastigote, epimastigote, and trypomastigote. Promastig
cally or osmotrophically. ote and epismastigote forms can be found mainly in inver
On the other hand, the biflagellate Parabodonida do not tebrates whereas trypomastigotes are mostly found in the
always have a cystostome. They have no mastigonemes and blood of vertebrates. Finally, amastigote forms are usually
their posterior flagellum can be either attached or free. They found intracellularly in vertebrates.
basal body: centriole at the base of the eukaryotic cilium or heterokonts:
especially in stramenophiles
cytostome: cell mouth in protists mastigonemes:
See also:
Excavata: Discoba 305
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Dis ta
Excavata
co ba olata
oma
Ichthyobodo Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
Neobodonida A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Rhynchomonas nasuta Eubacteria Archaea
Parabodonida
Eubodonida
Bodo saltans
Trypanosoma
Leishmania
Phytomonas
as Crithidia or Leptomonas
changing hosts
Leishmania Crithidia
Leptomonas Trypanosomas
cell.
306 Megasystematics
4.4
See also: Paulinella: 4.5.1; Primary endocytobiosis: 2.2.2.5
Archaeplastida 307
Glaucocystophyta
a and
phycobilisomes
a and phy
cobilisomes
A
R
C
H a and b
A
E
P
L Chlorophyta
A
S
T
I
D Streptophyta
A
The streptophyte algae
The are a sister line
2
+ ion in
a, b, c1, c2, d
chl a X: CH=CH2 Y: CH3
chl b X: CH=CH2 Y: CHO
chl d X: CHO Y: CH3
Chlorophyll
308 Megasystematics
4.4.1
Glaucocystophyta
The Glaucocystophyta are a speciespoor and relatively display a number of similarities with cyanobacteria. To that
rare group of organisms, consisting of only a few genera end, each plastid has a peptidoglycan polymer between its
(Cyanophora, Glaucocystis, and Gloeochaete), making up a total two membranes, considered the remains of an ancient bacte
of 13 species. For the most part, they are found in lakes and rial cell wall. Furthermore, their plastids contain chlorophyll
marshes in temperate zones. The group is particularly sig a and phycobilins. Starch is stored outside of the plastid, in
nificant from an evolutionary perspective, since its plastids the cytoplasm.
autospores: daughter cells are formed within the mother cell phycobilisome: large protein complex associated with colour
wall; autospores resemble the mother cell pigments involved in photosynthesis; in contrast to chlorophylls,
cristae: (Lat.: crista = comb, crest) numerous folds on the inner the phycobilines absorb green and yellow light
membrane of mitochondria phycoplast: microtubuli assembled parallel to the cell plate
cytokinesis: (Grk.: cytos = cell, kinesis = movement) cell divi during cell division; microtubule structure during cytokinesis in
sion members of the Chlorophyceae
phragmoplast: microtubuli assembled perpendicular to the cell transcriptome: the total set of all RNA molecules in a cell, in
plate during cell division tissue or in an organism during a given developmental stage
vesicle: (Lat.: vesicula = diminutive of bladder, blister)
See also:
Archaeplastida: Glaucocystophyta 309
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
A
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
op ta
Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Cyanophora paradoxa
dictyosome
thylakoid
80S ribosomes
70S ribosomes
mitochondrion
starch grains
Cyanophora paradoxa
The Rhodophyta (red algae) are eukaryotes lacking fla shelves. As a result of their accessory pigments (phycoco
gella and basal bodies; instead, they have polar rings as mi erythrin, which can absorb light in the ‘green window’ of
crotubule organising centres. Roughly 500 genera of red al chlorophyll), red algae can survive at depths of over 250 m.
gae have been described, comprising a total of around 5,000 One particular example was found on the slopes of a marine
species. Most red algae are multicellular, predominantly fila mountain at a depth of 268 m, where only 0.001 % of light
mentous, with intertwined or pseudoparenchymatous thal from the surface was able to penetrate. Some representatives
lophytes. Their oldest appearance in the fossil record stem of the Rhodophyta are symbionts of benthic foraminifera,
from the Mesoproterozoic, around 1.2 billion years ago.Red whereas others may live – with reduced plastids – as obligate
algae contain primary plastids with chlorophyll a and phyco parasites of other Rhodophyta. Some species deposit calci
bilisomes. They possess mitochondria and primary plastids um carbonate (Ca2CO3) in their cell walls and are important
with two cell membranes as well as chlorophyll a. The cell within reefbuilding processes.
wall is made of cellulose. They are taxonomically divided Rhodophyta are of great economic importance. The poly
into the Cyanidiophytina and Rhodophytina (red algae in saccharides agar and carrageenan, obtained from red algae
the narrower sense) lineages. like Chondrus crispus, are widely used in the biomedical, gas
The vast majority of taxa are marine, though some can be tronomic, and cosmetic industries. For example, these sub
found in freshwater and soil habitats. Some species use larger stances are used to clarify beer or custard, or to make agar
brown algae, seaweed, or shells of mussels and gastropods as plates in laboratories. The mineral deposits of Lithothamnion
a substrate on which to live. Interestingly, red algae exist in a spp. (algal limestone) are used as an agricultural fertiliser as
relatively narrow littoral zone at the edge of the continental well as a food substitute to increase calcium content.
carposporophyte: formed by the fusion of haploid gametes in tetrasporophyte: the second sporophytic generation in red al
the threestage lifecycle of red algae gae formed from a carpospores
pseudoparenchyma: tissuelike complex of cells; in contrast trichal:
to real tissues, celltocell structures such as plasmodesmata are algae
zoospore:
See also: Carposporophyte, Tetrasporophyte: 2.3.3.12; Bangiomorpha: 2.2.2.7
Archaeplastida: Rhodophyta 311
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
op
op Re
hy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Porphyridium purpureum Sphaerococcus coronopifolius
Eubacteria Archaea
form from the carposporophyte.
gametophyte
mitochondrion
70S ribosomes
thylakoid
sporophyte, remaining on the gameto
phycobilisomes
dictyosome
0
chl b chl a
20
green algae
Red light is the most strongly absorbed, therefore disappearing at
chl a
chl c
40
phycocyanin chl a
phycoerythrin
80
400 500 700
312 Megasystematics
4.4.3
Some basal groups within Viridiplantae are known as the specifically, the genera Ostreococcus and Micromonas can make
Prasinophytina. Previously, scalebearing flagellates with up a significant portion of marine plankton.
two, four, or eight flagella emerging from a single flagellar The Pyraminomonadales are marine and limnic and in
depression were combined under this name. However, mo clude large flagellates with four (rarely eight or sixteen) fla
lecular data show that this is a polyphyletic group, including gella and complex scales. Some species have transitioned to
the Mesostigmatophytina (as basal Streptophyta), as well as a mixotrophic (phagotrophic) feeding habit.
deepbranching paraphyletic groups. Molecular data lead to The Pycnococcaceae are marine and include flagellates
the exclusion of the Chlorodendrales (now ‘core’ Chloro with scales and without cell walls as well as flagellates with
phyta) and of the Mesostigmatophytina (now Streptophyta). out scales and with thin cell walls.
The remaining groups are paraphyletic, but are still known The marine and limnic Neproselmidophyceae are char
under the term Prasinophytina. acterised by large, asymmetric cells with two unequally long
The Picocystisclade includes scaleless coccoid cells with flagella as well as scales.
a thin cell wall. These occur in saline lakes and in marine The Prasinococcales are small, marine, scaleless coccoid
environments. cells with a thick cell wall.
The Mamiellophyceae include unicellular organisms lack The Palmophyllales form multicellular colonies, in which
ing a cell wall, sometimes forming scales. Most species have individual cells are embedded in a gelatinous matrix. The
two flagella, though in Monomastix the second flagellum is species occur mainly in deeper waters, where only low levels
reduced to only a basal body. Most species are planktonic; of light can penetrate.
See also:
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 313
stida Rh
Pyramimonas sp. pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
Prasinococcales rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
oph
op Re
Chr
hy
ae
y
Pycnococcaceae Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
ganisms bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
: These organisms form a phycoplast
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Chlorophyta
V
Ulvophyceae
Chlorophyceae
Volvox sp. Pediastrum sp.
Streptophyta
and then increase the diameter of the colony by
Chlamydomonas Volvox
Volvox carteri
Volvox aureus
314 Megasystematics
4.4.3.1
Streptophyta
The Streptophyta include all land plants (Embryophyta) the dryer environment led to further adaptations to cell archi
as well as a diverse paraphyletic collection of freshwater tecture, metabolism, and physiology.
green algae, such as the Mesostigmatophytina, Chlorokybo Many typical features and characteristics of Embryophy
phytina, Klebsormidiophytina, Zygnematophytina, Coleo ta had already developed in the ancestors of land plants. Im
chaetophytina, and Charophytina. portant developments in streptophyte algae included a cell
The land plants developed from the precursors of extant wall of cellulose, multicellularity, the formation of a phrag
streptophyte green algae. Land plants colonised terrestrial moplast during cell division, plasmodesmata, apical growth,
habitats around 450–470 mya, paving the way for the evolu threedimensional tissue, asymmetric cell division, and cell
tion of those groups of land plants which continue to domi differentiation. In addition, terrestrial plants and the strepto
nate Earth’s ecosystems (Embryophytes = Marchantiophyti phyte algae also share physiological and biochemical similar
na, Anthoceratophytina, Bryophytina, and Tracheophytes). ities, such as the type of photorespiration, the presence of a
Exposure to the atmosphere, increased solar radiation, and plastid, and thioredoxinregulated GAPDH (glyceraldehyde
3phosphatedehydrogenase).
Molecular data suggest a close relationship between the The phylogenetic relationship between land plants and
Mesostigmatophytina and Chlorokybophytina. The former streptophyte algae remains unknown. For a long time, the
include only genus Mesostigma, a group of asymmetric bi complex multicellular Charophytina were regarded as the
flagellate freshwater algae. Mesostigma is the only single closest relatives of land plants; however, molecular data sug
celled, scalebearing flagellate within the Streptophyta. The gest that Zygnematophytina and Coleochaetophytina are
Chlorokybophytina include only a single genus: Chlorokybus. more closely related to land plants than Charophytina.
These algae form small clusters comprising a few cells and Charophytina have multicellular, branched thalli and are
live in moist soil habitats for the most part. common in nutrientpoor, stagnant bodies of fresh water.
Klebsormidiophytina are the sister group of the ‘core’ They are characterised by the regular subdivision of their
Streptophyta, including some unbranched filamentous al thalli, often several decimetres long, into nodes, stem ele
gae. They are found in freshwater and soil habitats and are ments (internodes), and rhizoids. Side branches arise from
sporeforming. the nodes, with the same structure as the main axis. Sexual
The above groups reproduce asexually and divide by sim reproduction takes place by oogamy.
ple cleavage, whereas the ‘core’ Streptophyta form a phrag The Coleochaetophytina include parenchymatous fresh
moplast and reproduce sexually. They also have plasmodes water algae.
mata, secondarily reduced in Zygnematophytina, which are The Zygnematophytina comprise unicellular and filamen
designed for celltocell communication. tous freshwater algae.
apical: (Lat.: apex = peak) pertaining to the apex phragmoplast: microtubuli assembled perpendicular to the cell
oogamy: fertilisation of the ovum; union of an egg cell (large, plate during cell division
immotile gamete) with a sperm cell (smaller, highly motile gam plasmodesmata: channels between two plant cells enabling
ete) in sexual reproduction the transport of matter between them
photorespiration: (Grk.: phos = light, Lat.: respiratio = breath thioredoxin: small proteins which function as cofactors in the
ing) a process in plant metabolism in which oxygen instead of transfer of electrons
carbon dioxide is added to RubisCO during which phosphogly
colate is created
See also:
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 315
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
oph
op Re
Chr
hy
ae
y
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Chlorokybus atmosphericus, an alpine terrestrial algal species, is
S
Klebsormidium sp.
C
O
R
E
Chara virgata Chara vulgaris Chara globularis
S
Coleochaete soluta Coleochaete scutata
Merismopedia sp.
Asterionellopsis glacialis
Daphnia cucullata
316 Megasystematics
4.4.3.2
The term ‘bryophyte’ denotes an organisational form Most bryophytes have developed simple adaptations to
rather than a monophyletic group. Bryophytes were among terrestrial life, including structures to regulate water and
the first land plants (Embryophyta) and currently inhabit al gases (cuticula and stomata) as well as structures for water
most all terrestrial habitats. The oldest bryophyte fossils can absorption, conduction, and storage (rhizoids, hydroids).
be dated back to around 360 mya. They are thought to have These structures are, however, not found in all bryophyte
developed from the precursors of green algae, which explains species.
the presence of the photopigments chlorophyll a and b. In contrast to the tracheophytes (vascular plants), the ga
Bryophytes do not have true roots or stable water vessels metophyte is the dominant generation within the bryophyte
(trachea). As a result, their size is limited since they are not development cycle. The diploid sporophytes are only short
able to transport water across great distances within the or lived and are usually dependent on the gametophyte. The
ganism. Their cell walls consist of cellulose but do not, how sporophyte consists of a sporangium, which is connected to
ever, contain lignin. Bryophyte fertilisation and reproduction the gametophytes by a stem (seta), which also supplies nutri
processes are heavily dependent on the presence of water. ents and metabolites. The seta (shaft) positions the sporan
gium at a higher level, facilitating distribution.
The paraphyletic bryophytes are divided into three line The phylloides of the foliose gametophytes are arranged spi
ages. The liverworts (Marchantiophytina) are an early di rally on the caulloids and have a distinct midvein and sto
verging group, comprising around 10,000 species. They in mata to facilitate water and gas exchange. Some very large
habit moist, warmer areas, especially tropical rainforests, but mosses also possess specialised cells, hydroids, which hold
also temperate habitats. Liverworts are characterised by the a particular function in water transport within the gameto
presence of oil bodies, which are responsible for their typical phyte and sporophyte. The moss sporophyte can be either
smell. terminally (acrocarp) or laterally (pleurokarp) arranged.
Liverworts can be divided into two main morphological Mosses of the genus Sphagnum (peat mosses) differ from
types. The thallus type has a flat, dichotomously branched other moss species because the prothallus (protonema) does
gametophyte, with rhizoids on the bottom part of the organ not consist of a network of cell filaments but is thallose and
ism. The foliose type, however, is structured into ‘leaves’ rhizoids are lacking.
(phyllodes), ‘stems’ (caulloids), and rhizoids. Phyllodes have The hornworts (Acanthoceratophytina) are found in tem
no true midvein. Some species are able to hold water in spe perate and tropical regions and are able to survive in soil or
cialised sacs, while a number of species are distinguished by on rock in damp conditions. Roughly 100 species have been
a further row of leaves (amphigastria) on the underside of described. As an adaptation to drier locations, the stomata
the caulloids. The sporophyte of liverworts is usually smaller are located on the underside of the thallus and the antheridia
than that of the mosses (Bryophytina) and hornworts (An and archegonia are sunken into the thallus. In contrast with
thocerotophytina). Propagules (gemmae), which are located other bryophytes, the sporophytes of hornworts can feed
on the gametophyte, serve to enable vegetative proliferation, themselves and are also able to grow indefinitely, since their
during which the propagules fall and grow into a new thal basal region is capable of many cell divisions. Hornwort
lus. One of the most wellknown liverworts is the fountain sporophytes therefore continuously produce sporebearing
liverwort (Marchantia). tissue.
Mosses (Bryophytina) are always foliose and colonise al
most all terrestrial habitats. Over 15,000 species are known.
See also: Gametophyte: 2.3.3.11;
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 317
stida Rh
pla iza
Tracheophytes ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
oph
op Re
Chr
hy
ae
y
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Sporophyte: Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
E Megaceros fuegiensis Folioceros fuciformis
Sporophyte:
no elaters
Sporophyte:
Terrestrial organisms need to protect them
epidermis
tonoplast
plasmalemma
trial habitats.
318 Megasystematics
4.4.3.3
centripetal: from the outside to the centre ligule: part of the leaf at the junction of sheath and leaf
dichotomous: (Grk.: dichotomos = in two parts) splitting of a micropyle: canal between the integuments at the tip of the
shoot axis into two parts ovulum in seed plants
epilithic: (Grk.: epi = on, litho = stone) growing on the surface mycotroph: feeding on fungi or nutrition in a symbiotic asso
of rocks ciation with fungi
epiphytic: (Grk.: epi = on, phyton = plant) growing on plants
aa
idri
pRlahsitza Rh
izAar
Radiolaria
ae rciah
C
Vierid
Rh ercozoa
Sporophyte: h
rc a
Rhora
F
ta
rcip
G
hy
ep
odm
ozlaont
Cooksonia la ria
Eu uco ta tae
las
op
opinhif
† Replan
a ae
od
C
ata
gle ph
tC
idharom
i
yetraa
no yt
D rid hytata
ExcEaxvcaatva
z
Heistecoba oa a Vi ulvceoopla
rolob GlaA
osea
alveolata
ada Stra Hapto
onlia
asa men phyta
gia bodies Merab
Pa tam opile
otaa HaCry s
oozn
StCrypAto
a
pt ptop
etobk
soozzo oant
ra
op hy
mhois
m
zk
p hy ta
Ch
en
oa
A
to
O ta
eisb
op
lvpehoy
ro
poh
Sporophyte:
ile
AOm
m
AAppuu
s
al
latata
ve
† lat o
a
Eubacteria
Eubacteria Archaea
Archaea
E
Sporophyte:
L
Selaginellales
Sporophyte:
Selaginella canaliculata
S
Sporophyte:
† Sigillaria
Lepidodendron – bark
Isoetales
Sporophyte:
Isoetes melanospora
syngamy
Land plants: diploid and haploid
320 Megasystematics
4.4.3.4
The Monilophyta (monilophytes or ferns) are sister to the with just one or no vascular bundle. Ferns have primary plas
seed plants (Spermatophytina) within the Euphyllophyta. tids (chlorophyll a and b), as well as mitochondria.
The monilophytes include the extinct basal ferns Marattiop In addition, their protoxylem is limited to certain lobes of
sida, Psilopsida (forkleaved plants), Equisetopsida (horse the xylem. To that end, the name monilophytes comes from
tails), and the Polypodiopsida (‘true’ ferns). the necklaceshaped xylem arrangement. On the molecular
There are around 300 extant monilophyte genera com level, the group is characterised by the insertion of nine nu
prising roughly 9,000 species. Ferns have a worldwide dis cleotides in the plastid gene rpS4 (Small Ribosomal Protein).
tribution and can often be found in shady, moist forest areas The wall of fern sporangia was originally composed of sev
or wall cracks, crevices, ravines, and stream banks. However, eral cell layers (eusporangiate). This architecture can still be
the bulk of fern diversity can be found in the tropics, includ found in the Psilotopsida, Equisetopsida, and Marattiopsida.
ing tropical rainforests, home to the largest tree ferns. In what is currently the most diverse fern group, the Poly
Most monilophytes have underground shoots often ar podiopsida (true ferns), the sporangium comprises just one
ranged in rosettes and usually comprising multipennate cell layer (leptosporangiate). Most ferns are isospore with a
leaves in a wide variety of patterns. At one extreme, tree usually small prothallia (under 1 cm) and are bisexual (mo
ferns can reach heights of over 20 m; at the same time, the noecious).
Psilotopsida and Equisetopsida feature mostly smaller leaves
The Marattiopsida are eusporangiate ferns. Their isospore The Equisetales (horsetails) are isospores and usually in
sporangia are located on the underside of the leaves. The old clude terrestrial and aquatic perennial ferns. The trunks of
est known Marattiopsida fossils date back to the Carbonifer some fossil groups, such as the Calamites within coal forests,
ous; in the Lower/Middle Permian, the group was both spe were lignified and reached up to 30 m in height and 1 m in
ciesrich and the dominant plant group with individuals up diameter. In extant groups, the sporophyte can reach heights
to 10 m tall. Extant Marattiopsida are significantly smaller of 8 m, although it is smaller in the majority of species. The
and less diverse, and limited to the tropics. Species are long mostly distinctly ribbed stems arise from a rhizome, form
living, autotrophic, and associated with mycorrhizal fungi. ing adventitious roots at the nodes. The microphylls are ar
The prothallium, or gametophyte, is multilayered. The an ranged in whorls. The sporangiabearing structures are usu
theridia and archegonia are sunken into the underside of the ally arranged as conelike strobili.
plant. The Polypodiopsida (Pteridopsida) are leptosporangiate.
The Psilotopsida include Psilotales (forkleaved plants) The sporangia open along a predetermined breaking point,
and the Ophioglossales (adder’s tongues). Their relationship called the annulus. The majority of ferns are herbaceous
is mainly understood using molecular data. Their prothallia with a perennial rhizome. In eagle ferns (Pteridium aquili
cannot photosynthesise and live underground in association num), which can live for 70 years, these can reach up to 40 m
with mycorrhizal fungi. The Psilotales have no root. In con in length. Vascular bundles are concentric and include an in
trast with the Lycopodiophyta, the dichotomous branching ner xylem. The usually pinnate leaves grow from a double
of the sporophyte is secondary. The sporophyte forms rhi edged apical cell and are often characteristically curled. The
zomes with rhizoids. Sporangia sit in or above the dichoto sporangia sit in clusters (sori) on the underside of the leaves
mous sporophyte branches. Adder’s tongues feature reduced (sporotrophophyles). Most Polypodiopsida are isospore,
roots and usually just one leaf with a photosynthetic and forming monoecious prothallia, whereas the pepperworts
sterile lower part, and sporangia on the upper part. and floating ferns are heterosporous, forming dioecious pro
thallia.
adventitious root: plant root developing from stem or leave isospory: having identical spores
tissue or as the result of a wound leptosporangiates: sporangia consisting of a single layer of
eusporangiate: wall of the mature sporangium arising from cells
several cell layers prothallium: haploid gametophyte in ferns
heterospore: possessing different spores strobili: coneshaped sporangiabearing structures
See also:
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 321
aa
pRlhasiztaidri Rh
iAzra
Radiolaria
ae
Viridip
crhia
Cerc phfyetraa
a
h
rc a
Rhoram
Rh Cercozo
F
ta
G
hy
ep
o d o in
ozlaoa
la ria
uc ta tae
las
op
Eu
gle oph Ripelan
ntae
od
ta
tiCd
i
Disc nozo yta
ExcEaxvcaatvaa
rid ophlayta ta
haroma olata C
Sporophyte: Hete oba a Vi ulv c eo
rolob GlaA
osea
ada StraHapto
lve
Pa rab
e ta asa
m onlia men phyta
M opile
ota HCaryp s
oozn
St CrypA
a
teobk pt top
oa t
ra tlovpeho
ussooz kooan
op hy
hiso
m
tooz
pm hy ta
en
a
O A
heisb
ta
hr
op
Opo
om
ile
Am
s
AAppu
al
ylatata
ve
lat o
a
Eubacteria
Eubacteria Archaea
Archaea
Sporophyte:
M these are present in Ophioglossaceae
Ophioglossum vulgatum Psilotum nudum
Sporophyte:
fossil forest
Sporophyte of Gametophyte of
Equisetum hyemale
Sporophyte:
Sporophyte of the fern Gametophyte of the fern
phloem
phloem
Solanaceae
322 Megasystematics
4.4.3.5
The Cycadopsida originated in the Carboniferous and housed within a catkin or conelike sleeve, whereas the fe
reached their greatest distribution during the Mesozoic. At male gametes are housed within the axils of covering scales
present, the group comprises 11 genera with around 300 in cones. The plants are monoecious or dioecious.
species, living mainly in the subtropics and southern hemi The Cupressales are evergreen trees or shrubs with most
sphere. They have a palmlike appearance, including a trunk ly scalelike leaves. The group includes Cupressus (cypress),
of up to 20 m in height, and many large compound leaves at Thuja (arborvitae), and Chamaecyparis (false cypress). A few
its tip. Fertilisation is delayed by up to seven months after species also have needleshaped leaves, including Juniperus
pollination. (juniper). Their leaves are arranged opposite or in whirls,
The Ginkoopsida are trees up to 30 m in height, and are their cones are small, woody, and berrylike.
distinctive because of their forked leaf venation. They origi The Taxales include evergreen trees or shrubs. In particu
nated in the Carboniferous and diversified in the Upper Trias lar, the yew (Taxus baccata) is widespread in Central Europe.
sic becoming a widespread group in the Mesozoic. The only They feature spirally arranged, parted, and mucronate nee
extant species, Ginko biloba, is deciduous and is thought to dles. A middle vein is visible on the surface of the needles.
originate in a set of mountain valleys in China; however, it is All parts of the plant, except the seed coat (the aril), are toxic
also planted in a number of cities to create shading. Fertilisa as a result of taxane derivatives (taxin, taxol).
tion is delayed by up to four months after pollination. The Gnetales display features that would otherwise only
The Coniferopsida originated in the Carboniferous and be seen in Magnoliopsida, including the trachea and flower
are today the dominant group of gymnosperms. Coniferop like structures. The lineage only comprises Welwitschia (with
sida comprises the Pinales (approx. 200 species), the Cupres the single species Welwitschia mirabilis, a desert plant), Gne
sales (approx. 25 species), the Podocarpales (approx. 130 tum, and Ephedra. Molecular analyses place Gnetales in the
species), the Taxales (approx. 25 species), the Araukariales Coniferopsida as a sister group to Pinales.
(approx. 23 species), as well as the Scidaopitales (one spe The systematic position of the extinct Glossopteridopsida
cies) and the Cephalotaxales (one species). Most likely, the and the Bennettitopsida is unclear, although they can likely
Gnetales also belong to the Coniferopsida. group basal to Magnoliopsida but possibly also close to the
The order Pinales is the most speciesrich group of coni seed ferns. The Glossopteridopsida were originally distrib
fers (Pinus = pine; Abies = fir; Picea = sprice; Larix = larch). uted in temperate areas of the southern hemisphere during
The lineage is characterised by trees – rarely shrubs – with the Permian. The Bennettitospida were common and wide
needleshaped leaves, with either compressed, short shoots spread seed plants from the Triassic to the Cretaceous.
(larch) or long shoots (fir, spruce). The male flowers are
integument: (Lat.: integumentum = covering, shell) protective
layer covering the ovule
See also:
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 323
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
oph
op Re
Chr
hy
ae
y
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
A
Eubacteria Archaea
S Ginko bal
boa
S Pinales
Gnetales
lineage of the Cordaitopsida and Coniferopsida
Glossopteris
The Magnoliopsida (angiosperms) comprise the mono idioblasts with ethereal oils. These are absent in the Eud
cots (monocotyledonous), eudicotyledons (dicotyledonous), icotyledons.
as well as a number of basal groups (the ANITAclade and As the origins of the Magnoliopsida and their relation
magnoliids). ships – especially to the Bennettitopsida and Gnetales – are
While some monophyletic groups, such as the monocots, controversial, their evolutionary development remains un
are supported by many morphological synapomorphies, oth clear. Varying hypotheses differ specifically with respect to
er groups display few or no such morphological similarities, interpretations of the homology of ovule structure within
yet they are supported by molecular data. Bennettitopsida and Gnetales. With certainty, the Magno
Basal orders of Magnoliopsida as well as the monocots liopsida can be seen in fossils dating back to the transition
have pollen grains with a single opening (monocolpate); between the Jurassic and Cretaceous. Presumably, they were
Eudicotyledons, on the other hand, have pollen with three already present in the Lower Jurassic. Today, the group com
apertures (tricolpate). Similarly, the basal orders also have prises approximately 230,000 extant species, making them
the most diverse group of land plants.
Magnoliopsida ovules are enclosed in one or several car doublefertilised, subsequently forming a secondary triploid
pels, which enclose the seed at maturity. The group is char endosperm.
acterised by its fruits, which are only formed in those plants The monocots differ from other Magnoliopsida due to a
possessing closed carpels or ovules. The fruit is the flower of number of characteristics: firstly, they have only one coty
Magnoliopsida in the state of seed maturation. ledon. In addition, monocots have a secondary homorhizic
The carpel or the axis tissue or the perianth may be in root system, their vascular bundle is closed collaterally and
volved in the formation of a fruit. Fruit types are distin scattered across the shoot crosssection, the leaves are always
guished depending on whether the seeds are enclosed within alternating, the stipules are never formed, and the leaves are
the ripe fruit (dehiscent fruits) or set free (indehiscent fruits). either curved or parallelveined.
Other distinctive features of the angiosperms include the The eudicotyledons have two cotyledons, tricolpate pol
sieve tubes and companion cells of the phloem (developing len, their root system is allorhizic, their vascular bundle
from one common “mother cell”), stamens with two pairs of opens collaterally with an annular arrangement, and the
pollen sacks, and anthers with a hypodermal endothecium. leaves can be interchangeably arranged in alternate, oppo
The male gametophyte consists of only three cells. Cells are site, or whorled form; they also possess a netlike nervation.
allorhizy: term given to plants with different primary and sec hypodermal endothecium:
ondary roots of pollen sacs in Magnoliopsida
carpel: (Grk.: karpos idioblast: cells that differ in form and/or function from their
more ovules neighbours in surrounding tissue
companion cells: cells forming a complex with the sievetubes ovary: (Lat.: ovum = egg) female organ which holds the ovules
of the magnoliopsida secondary endosperm: nutritional tissue created by the fertili
convergence (evolutionary): similar characteristics which sation of polar nuclei in the seeds of most Magnoliopsida
have developed independently in unrelated taxa sieve elements: the type of cell in the phloem in Magnoliopsida
homorhizy: phenomenon in plants where all of the roots stem in which organic metabolites are transported
from the shoot synapomorphy: an evolved characteristic common to a mono
phyletic group
See also:
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 325
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
oph
op Re
Chr
hy
ae
y
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
many spirally arranged stamens onada
Stra
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
monocolpate
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
M
idioblasts
R
E
C
tricolpate
A
primordia free
primordia are connected to each other from
the beginning
primordia connected
Ephedra
Ephedra
this leads to a secondary endosperm.
from a common ancestor.
Gnetum sp.: seeds Gnetum
326 Megasystematics
4.4.3.7
The basal orders of Magnoliopsida include various dicot and the Eudicotyledons (plus the Ceratophyllales) on the
yledonous, mainly woody plants. They feature pollen grains other.
with a single germ opening and were therefore formerly The Monocotyledons have a number of distinctive char
grouped together as monosulcate dicots. Their idioblasts acteristics: they have only one cotyledon, a stunted primary
contain ethereal oils and their leaves are simple and have no root, and adventitious roots. The leaves are parallelveined
stipules. The arrangement of the reproductive organs is usu and have entire margins, and the closed vascular bundle in
ally spiral and the carpels are mostly not connate (not fused the shoot axis is arranged in a scattered formation (ataktost
to each other). ele). In general, there is no secondary growth in girth. Only
The basal orders of Magnoliopsida comprise around 8,600 a few species display secondary growth (Dracaena), which
species. They possess primary plastids with chlorophyll a differs from the pattern of gymnosperms and dicotyledon
and b as well as mitochondria. They do not, however, form a ous angiosperms and is known as atypical secondary growth.
monophyletic lineage. The ANITAclade includes Amborel The perianth usually appears in threes and is not separated
lales, Nymphaeales, and Austrobaileyales. These groups do into a calyx and corolla.
not have a benzylisoquinoline alkaloid and the organisation The phylogenetic position of the Ceratophyllales is dif
of their embryo sac differs from that of other Magnoliop ficult to assess. In aquatic plants, many features are highly
sida: in the Amborellales, the embryonic sac has four nuclei, derived. Morphologically, they possess a number features
as opposed to nine in the Nymphaeales and Austrobailey in common with the monocots, but also with the Chloran
ales. The embryo sac of all other Magnoliopsida contains thales. Similarly to the Eudicotyledons, the idioblasts con
eight nuclei, including in the Chloranthales and Magnoliids. taining ethereal oils are missing. In addition, the pollen of
The latter two groups are united by the characteristic ses Ceratophyllaceae has no aperture, and xylem tracheae are
quiterpene. All other angiosperms form a monophyletic line missing. Molecular data indicate that Ceratophyllaceae is
age and can be divided into the monocots on the one hand sister to the Eudicotyledons; therefore, morphological simi
larities are likely the product of convergent evolution.
The subset of groups covered here includes the Nym by the presence of UVfluorescent cell wall compounds of
phaeaceae (Nymphaeales, ANITAclade), the Magnoliaceae ferulic and coumaric acid, as well as silicic acid in the leaves.
(Magnoliales, Magnoliids), and the Poaceae (Poales, Mono Commelinids include palm trees and grasses, which are
cotyledons). mostly windpollinated (anemophily). As a result, flowers
The Nymphaeaceae (water lilies) include only about 75 are strongly reduced in these groups, although the number
species, most commonly found in freshwater habitats out of flowers is high for the most part. The ovule fuses with
side the polar regions. They are usually perennial, rarely an the carpel, forming a caryposis. The Poaceae (grasses) com
nual, herbaceous plants with rhizomes, which are anchored prise about 10,000 species and are distributed in all climates
to the ground with adventitious roots. The rhizomes can be around the world. Notable members of this group are maize,
bulbous; they have no cambium and no secondary growth. wheat, rice, millet, rye, barley, and oats, making up the ma
The seeds of many species can disperse by floating aided by jority of the humanity’s food supply.
air pockets in the aril and the seed wall. The Liliacea (lily family) comprise about 630 species and
The Magnoliaceae (magnolia family) comprise about 227 are distributed for the most part in the northern temperate
species and are mainly found in temperate to tropical areas zone and, in particular, in East Asia and North America.
of Southeast Asia and the Americas. They include woody They are mostly herbaceous plants, producing onions to en
trees or shrubs with alternating or spirally arranged leaves able overwintering.
with large stipules. They form bellows or legumes, arranged The Iridaceae (iris family) comprise around 2,000 species
in a conical spiral, which is an arrangement that has already and are found worldwide in temperate to subtropical cli
been found in early fossil Magnoliopsida. mates. They are usually perennial, herbaceous plants with a
Within the monocots, the Arecales, Poales, Commelina short creeping rhizome and an often swordshaped unifacial
les, and Zingiberales make up the Commelinids. This mono leaves.
phyletic subgroup within Monocotyledonae is characterised
aperture: germination pore on the wall of a pollen grain sesquiterpines: subgroup of terpenes
arillus:
See also:
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 327
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
oph
op Re
Chr
hy
ae
y
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
Nymphaea alba oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
Chloranthales
hyta
Apu
Canellales, Piperales, Laurales, Magnoliales
Eubacteria Archaea
Magnoliaceae
M
Magnolia sp.
Liliaceae
three carpels
Lilium sp. Lilium martagon
carpels
Iris varietega Crocus sp.
Poaceae
pels Zea mays Lagurus ovatus
Ceratophyllales
Colura
Drosera Nepenthes and Pleurozia
Dionaea muscipula mechanisms.
Drosera capensis Nepenthes sp.
habitats.
Dionaea muscipula
328 Megasystematics
4.4.3.8
Here, we use the Ranunculaceae as representatives of for the northern hemisphere. Roses are herbaceous plants,
basal Eudicotyledons, with the Fabaceae and Rosaceae as shrubs, or trees.
examples of eurosidsI (fabids) and the Brassicaceae as ex The Brassicaceae (mustard family) comprise around 4,000
amples of eurosidsII (malvids). Finally, we discuss the Car species, spread globally in all climates but with a preference
yophyllaceae as representatives of the basal asterids. to the Mediterranean region as well as Central and South
The Ranunculaceae (buttercup family) comprise about west Asia. They are usually annual or perennial herbaceous
2,500 species and are distributed worldwide, although pref plants, with only a few woody species. The Brassicaceae are
erentially in temperate zones in the northern hemisphere. important as crops (cabbage, rape), and the group also in
Buttercups are mostly herbaceous and perennial. Stipules are cludes thale cress (Arabidopsis thaliana), the most wellstudied
mostly lacking, with some species featuring only one cotyle plant in botanical research.
don. The Caryophyllaceae (the pink or carnation family) com
The Fabaceae (legume family) are one of the most spe prise around 2,200 species and are distributed worldwide,
ciesrich plant families, comprising around 20,000 species although this is centred on the temperate latitudes of the
worldwide. Legumes include both herbaceous and woody northern hemisphere. There are usually annual or perennial
plants. herbaceous plants, and occasionally woody plants. Mycor
The Rosaceae (rose family) comprise approximately 3,000 rhizae have never been observed in the Caryophyllaceae or
species and are found worldwide, although with a preference in other families within the Caryophyllales.
achene: fruit of the Asteraceae synapomorphy: an evolved characteristic common to a mono
annual plants: yearlings, annuals phyletic group
gynoecium: (Grk.: gyne = woman, oikos = house) collective whorl: arrangement of leaves in which two or more leaves arise
from a single node
pentacyclic:
See also: Centripetal: 4.4.3.3
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 329
stida Rh
Ranunculales, Proteales, pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
Ranunculaceae
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
oph
op Re
Chr
hy
ae
y
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
Ranunculus sp. zo
a Ha s
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
Gunnerales
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Zygophyllales, Celastrales, Malpighiales, Rosales, Eubacteria Archaea
Ononis spinosa Trifolium medium
Rosaceae
Prunus padus
Geraniales, Myrtales, Huerteales, Malvales, Brassicales
Brassicaceae
Brassica napus
Santalales, Caryophyllales
Caryophyllaceae
Silene sp.
lion achenes.
Carbaea scandens
330 Megasystematics
4.4.3.9
See also:
Archaeplastida: Viridiplantae 331
stida Rh
Garryales, Solanales, Boraginales pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
Boraginaceae
z
G
Cerco
od
la
uc ria
ta
oph
op Re
Chr
hy
ae
y
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
onada
Stra
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Lamium maculatum
Plantaginaceae
A
S
T Digitalis purpurea Linaria alpina
E Scrophulariaceae
R
I
D
S
Verbascum nigrum Buddleja davidii
Asteraceae
Carduus platypus Echinacea sp.
Apiaceae
Daucus carota Angelica sylvestris
332 Megasystematics
4.5
Rhizaria
The Rhizaria is one of the major groups of the SAR clade, dia, reticulopodia, or axopodia. The rhizarian fossil record
along with the Alveolata and the Stramenopiles. is dominated by Retaria, since they possess skeletal elements
Rhizaria comprise a diverse range of protists divided into of chalk or silicate.
two groups: Cercozoa and Retaria. The phylogenetic posi Very few Cercozoa can be seen in the fossil record, even
tion of Gymnosphaerida remains unresolved, but they likely though they are an important component of aquatic (ben
belong to the class Granofilosea and, therefore, to the Cer thic) and terrestrial food webs and presumably also have
cozoa. been so in the past.
The Rhizaria are rich in morphological diversity, with
most taxa displaying pseudopodia, usually either as filopo
The Cercozoa are a morphologically diverse group and are often grouped as Radiolaria, even though this group is
their internal systematic relationships are still unresolved. polyphyletic. The main component of their skeletons (tests)
They are roughly divided into taxa with predominantly filose is mostly lime (Foraminifera), silicate (Polycystinea), or
pseudopodia (especially Monadofilosa) and those with pre strontium sulfate (Acantharia). The skeletons of Foraminif
dominantly reticulose pseudopodia (especially Granofilosea era and Polycystinea are frequently observed within the
and Chlorachniophyta). fossil record. Since lime is almost entirely dissolved below
The locomotion of Cercozoa is mostly by gliding on the the compensation depth, sediments at such depths consist
substratum. In benthic marine and freshwater habitats, Cer largely of the skeletons of Polycystinea (‘radiolarian ooze’).
cozoa are one of the most common eukaryotic groups and The hardening of these sediments results in radiolarite, a si
among the most important bacterivorous protists. liceous, homogeneous sedimentary rock.
The Retaria, which are mostly marine, include the Fo
raminifera, the Acantharia and the Polycystinea. The latter
See also:
Rhizaria 333
Retaria
Cercozoa
Filosa
a,b
Bigelowiella natans
Guillardia theta
Nucleomorph
334 Megasystematics
4.5.1
Cercozoa
The Cercozoa and Retaria (Foraminifera, Acantharia and sess chloroplasts, obtained by secondary endocytobiosis of
Polycystinea) jointly make up the Rhizaria. a green algae.
The monophyletic Cercozoa comprise both flagellated Paulinella chromatophora, within the class Imbricatea, has
and amoeboid organisms, some of which were earlier clas chromatophores (cyanelles — plastids in a wider sense) of
sified as Rhizopoda. Several clades that were previously cyanobacterial origin. This is the only known example of a
thought to belong to Stramenopiles are also members of photosynthetic organelle originating through uptake of a cy
Cercozoa. anobacterium, apart from the origin of plastids.
Most Cercozoa are heterotrophic and inhabit both aquatic Cercozoa also have mitochondria and dictyosomes. Lo
and terrestrial habitats. Only the Chlorarachniophyta pos comotion is driven by two anisokont flagella or by pseudo
podia.
The Cercozoa are subdivided into the Filosa and En The Imbricatea are unicellular organisms whose cell sur
domyxa (including Phytomyxea and Vampyrellida). The face is covered with overlapping silicate scales. Filopodia
Filosa comprise the Monadofilosa (gliding, weakly or non protrude through two openings between the scales. Their
amoeboid organisms), the Granofilosea (with fine granulore mitochondria have tubular cristae. The Silicofilosea, part of
ticulopodia), Chlorarachniophyta (amoebae with secondary the Imbricatea clade, is divided into two groups: Thaumato
plastids), and the Metromonadea (gliding, nonamoeboid monadida and Euglyphida (which includes Paulinella).
flagellates). Chlorarachniophyta are naked amoebae that use their
The Thecofilosea, Cercomonadida, and the Imbricatea filopodia to capture prey. Food is taken up by phagotrophy
are examples of the Monadofilosa. (phagocytosis) of bacteria, flagellates and algae. Chlorarach
The Thecofilosea, at least the basal taxa, have an extracel niophyta plastids contain chlorophyll a and b and are sur
lular organic theca. The Phaeodarea, which were formerly rounded by four membranes (secondary endocytobiosis with
placed in Radiolaria, also belong to this group, characterised green algae). They contain a nucleomorph in an indentation
by a central capsule with three openings: a large one, the on the surface of the pyrenoid. Thylakoids are arranged in
astrophylum, through which extend pseudopodia used for twos and threes and form lamellae. Chlorarachniophyta are
feeding; and two smaller ones, the parapylae, through which known to form cysts and flagellated zoospores. The group
microtubules extend to the axopodia. In the centre of the cell contains four genera (Bigelowiella, Chlorarachnion, Chryp
is the phaedium, a dense mass of darkly pigmented, granular tochlora, Lotharella) comprising roughly 100 known species.
cytoplasm. However, the capsule of the Phaeodarea is not The Endomyxa contain a number of taxa with unknown
homologous to the central capsule of Polycystinea. phylogenetic relationships. For example, Phytomyxea are
The Cercomonadida are freeliving amoeboflagellates obligate intercellular parasites in the roots of plants, form
without a cell wall that are found in aquatic and terrestrial ing multinucleate plasmodia within the host. Invasion of the
habitats across the planet. They have two asynchronously host uses a unique set of organelles derived from differen
beating flagella without mastigonemes. Food is acquired us tiation of the endoplasmic reticulum. After the plant host
ing pseudopodia. disintegrates, fruiting bodies and spores are released. Sexual
reproduction has also been observed.
anisokont:
cyst: resting stages in singlecelled organisms, plants and ani ment
rhizopodal:
incertae sedis: (Lat.: incerta sedes
certain systematic taxonomy this term
pyrenoid: structure in the plastids in several algae and horn
See also:
Rhizaria: Cercozoa 335
stida Rh
Cercozoa pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
h ria
ozoa
rc
Rh
G
A
Filosa
odo
la ria
Cerc
uc ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
Imbricatea: a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
Paulinella:
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
a, b
Ascetosporea:
Gromia:
Filoreta:
Euglypha Eocercomonas
Orciraptor agilis
Metopus Chlorarachnion
Paulinella chromatophora
i.e.
Paulinella chromatophora
Paulinella
336 Megasystematics
4.5.2
Retaria
The Retaria are a monophyletic group within the After the death of individual polycystine cells, their skel
Rhizaria. They include the Foraminifera (forams), as well eton is deposited on the ocean floor and forms a radiolarian
as the Acantharia and Polycystinea (polycystines), both for ooze before solidifying into radiolarite. Radiolarian ooze can
merly grouped with Phaeodarea (Cercozoa) as ‘Radiolaria’. reach a thickness of several hundred metres. Below the cal
Retaria are amoeboid, marine, heterotrophic organisms cium carbonate compensation depth, pure radiolarite depos
with reticulopodia or axopodia. Most have skeletons, which its can be found. The oldest ‘Radiolaria’ fossil (thought to be
are made of a range of substances depending on the group: Polycystinea) is from the Neoproterozoic, whereas the oldest
calcium carbonate in forams, strontium sulfate in Acantha radiolarite rock strata are from the Upper Cambrian.
ria, and silicon dioxide in Polycystinea.
The Acantharia are spherical or elongated and reach a sellaria have a conical central capsule, with pores concen
size of between 50 µm and 5 mm. Their skeleton is made trated at one pole. Spumellaria, however, are characterised
of 10–20 spines converging in the centre and composed of by a generally spherical central capsule with uniformly dis
strontium sulfate. Acantharian cells are surrounded by a cap tributed pores.
sule from which axopodia, spines, and pseudopodia extend Most of the fossil ‘Radiolaria’ belong to Polycystinea. Ac
outward. The network of outer pseudopodia forms a hyaline cording to the fossil record, Spumellaria became important
ectoplasm whereas the inner endoplasm is granular and con in the Triassic in terms of biomass, with Nassellaria emerg
tains the organelles and often also endosymbiotic algae (but ing as the dominant group in the Jurassic and Cretaceous
no plastids). Since strontium sulfate is soluble in seawater, periods. After the Cretaceous–Palaeogene boundary mass
the skeletons of fossil Acantharia do not become fossilised. extinction, Spumellaria once again emerged to represent
The Polycystinea are 30 µm to 2 mm in size and usually the most successful group of polycystines, and continues
have a central capsule and skeletal elements of silicon diox to dominate the marine environment. Because they lack a
ide, though some do not have any skeletal parts at all. The skeleton, collodarian remains cannot be found in the fossil
group includes the Collodaria, Nassellaria and Spumellaria. record.
With a few exceptions, Colladaria usually have no skeletal The Foraminifera usually have skeletons made of calcium
parts. Many colladarian species are colonial and, together, carbonate. They are a sister group to Acantharia, thus ‘Ra
make up a significant proportion of marine plankton. Nas diolaria’ are polyphyletic.
biogenic: (Grk.:
hyaline: with a glassy or translucent appearance
See also:
Rhizaria: Retaria 337
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la ia
uc t ar
op
phy
Re
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
R
Col
lozoum
Nassellaria
Spumellaria
3
4 3
2 2
Fe3 4
338 Megasystematics
4.5.2.1
Along with Acantharia and Polycystinea, Foraminifera ral, helical, and concentric tests are also known. Forams
(forams) belong to Retaria. Together with Cercozoa, these have mitochondria but not plastids. However, they are often
form the Rhizaria. associated with symbiotic algae and probably have a range
Forams are amoeboid testate protists. The foram test is of hostspecific symbionts. Among others, Dinophyta, Chlo
generally composed of calcium carbonate, but may also be rophyta, Rhodophyta, and Bacillariophyceae live within the
composed of agglutinated particles. The test is riddled with tests and can occupy up to 75 % of their volume.
pores (Lat.: foramen = small hole; ferre = to carry). Reticulo Although most forams are benthic, the Globigerinida
podia emerge from the pores, creating a net for catching prey, are planktonic. Forams are capable of surviving at extreme
such as Bacillariophyceae or bacteria. However, the reticulo depths in the marine environment. Live forams have been
podia also serve for locomotion and collecting mineral par found in the deepest known oceanic point, at 10,896 m depth
ticles for the construction of the shell. The earlystage foram at the Challenger Deep within the Western Pacific’s Mariana
test is made of glycoproteins. Forams grow through the ad Trench. Very few (around 50) foram species live in freshwa
dition of new chambers. Calcium carbonate or other con ter environments.
densed organic materials can become embedded within the Although they are unicellular, forams can reach a size
test. It is likely that multichambered testate forams evolved of several centimetres (Cycloclyperus carpenteri can reach up
from singlechambered lineages. Foram tests have a broad to 12 cm; Acervulina species are known to reach 20 cm in
morphological diversity: chambers may be straight and may length). They live for several months to years.
be positioned in one or two rows one behind the other. Spi
Around 40,000 fossil species of forams have been de as a result of this economic importance, fossil forams are
scribed. The oldest known foram fossils date from the Cam relatively well studied.
brian period. Foraminifera undergo a heterophasic generation between
Foraminifera play an integral role in the formation of sexual haploid and asexual diploid generations. The genera
sediment in marine areas, as a result of their calcareous tions are heteromorphic.
test. Nummulitic limestone, for example, which was used Most species of forams build tests with multiple chambers
for the construction of the Egyptian pyramids, is made pri (multilocular), but some species may build tests with just one
marily of foram remains. Both the planktonic Globigerina chamber (unilocular). These chambers can be arranged uni
and benthic Foraminifera formed an essential part of Mio serially (in one row), biserially (in two staggered rows), tri
cene sediments. Forams are important index fossils, making serially (three staggered rows), or in a flat spiral (spiral and
it possible to date sedimentary rocks from different regions aligned in a plane). The ordering of the chambers and the
(for example, Fusulinida in the Carboniferous and Permian materials used in the test are the basis of foram systematics,
periods or the nummulites in the Palaeogene period). They as their molecular systematics remain unclear.
are also important index fossils for petroleum exploration;
glycoproteins:
See also:
Rhizaria: Retaria 339
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la ia
uc t ar
op
phy
Re
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Amphisorus
340 Megasystematics
4.6
Alveolata and Stramenopiles
The Alveolata and Stramenopiles are closely related to menopiles is the heterokont flagellum, which features special
each other and, together with Rhizaria, make up what is hairs on the long, anteriorly facing flagellum. The hairs are
known as the SARclade. tubular and can be divided into three parts (tripartite): the
The Alveolata include Dinophyta (dinoflagellates), Cili base, shaft, and thinner terminal end. The second flagellum
ophora, and the parasitic Apicomplexa. They are charac is usually hairless and shorter. In some species, such as dia
terised by alveoli, an endomembrane system made of small toms, the flagella are secondarily reduced.
membraneenclosed spaces found just beneath the cell mem Molecular data suggest that Alveolata and Stramenopiles
brane. Stramenopiles include several major groups of algae, are closely related; in addition, the plastid in phototrophic
including the Phaeophyceae, Bacillariophyceae, and Chrys representatives of both groups, appears to have a common
ophyceae, as well as various heterotrophic groups and the origin.
parasitic oomycetes. A common characteristic of the Stra
The ‘Chromalveolate Hypothesis’ describes the common Haptophyta is probably the sister group of SAR. To what
origin of plastids in all organisms with secondary plastids extent the cryptophytes are related to haptophytes or to Ar
as coming from red algae. The hypothesis is based on the chaeplastida for that matter remains unclear. Since the re
assumption that secondary endocytobiosis is a very complex lationship between haptophytes and cryptophytes remains
process involving a number of different genes and metabolic unclear, we treat it within a separate chapter (Hacrobia).
pathways. Molecular phylogenies of plastids show the rela The term ‘Chromalveolata’ is used here to describe the core
tionship of all plastids dating back to their red algal origins. groups, i.e. alveolate and stramenopile groups.
However, host cell relationships (Alveolata, stramenopiles, Many groups within Rhizaria, the stramenopiles, and al
haptophytes, and cryptophytes) are difficult to reconcile with veolata have no plastids. For many taxa, there is no convinc
those of their plastids. ing evidence that their ancestors had plastids. Therefore, the
Regarding the host cells, the monophyly of alveolates is assumption that a common ancestor of all of these groups
supported by both molecular and morphological data. Simi obtained a plastid through secondary endocytobiosis and
larly, the monophyly of stramenopiles is wellsupported. The that this was subsequently lost in some groups remains un
relationship between alveolates and stramenopiles is mainly likely. It is more likely that either secondary endocytobio
supported through molecular data. It is thought that the sis occurred on multiple occasions or that an ancestor of a
group comprising alveolates and stramenopiles is the sister subset of lineages obtained a plastid from red algae through
group of Rhizaria. Together, the three groups are called the secondary endocytobiosis and that this organelle reached the
SARclade (Stramenopiles, Alveolata, Rhizaria). Moreover, other lineages through tertiary endocytobiosis.
See also: Heterokonts: 4.3.2.2; Monophyly: 4.1.1.6; Endocytobiosis: 2.2.2.5
Alveolata and Stramenopiles 341
Alveolata:
Ciliophora
Apicomplexa
Chromerida
Dinophyta
Stramenopiles:
Bigyra: Labyrinthulida, Bicosoecida
Clade I: Phaeophyceae, Xantophyceae, Chrysomerophyceae, Raphidophyceae, Phaeothamniophyceae
Clade II:
Ochrophyta
Clade III: Bacillariophyceae, Dictyochophyceae, Pelagophyceae, Bolidophyceae
Pseudofungi: Peronosporomycetes, Hyphochytridiomycetes
(Peridinium species)
genes for photosynthesis. Only two genes are shared by both line
, which
Gene pool of strameno
can likely be traced back to a common origin.
Membranebound compartments within cells are though mitochondria are capable of autonomous
referred to as cell organelles (small organs). These
include the nucleus, mitochondria, Golgi appara
ont membrane), mitochondria are completely sepa
lysosomes, whereas photosynthesis occurs in chloro and some parts became integrated into the genome
plasts. The mitochondria are the energy powerhouse
of the cell, where ATP energy is generated from the the emergence of mitochondria can be traced back
to a single endosymbiosis. All eukaryotes (with mito
Mitochondria originate from the phagocytosis of an chondria) can therefore be traced back to a common
aerobic bacterium related to ancestor.
primordial cell. The host cell and the endosymbiont
Organelles
342 Megasystematics
4.6.1
Alveolata
The Alveolata (alveolates) include Dinophyta, Chromeri cavity system, which opens a narrow channel to the outside;
da, Ciliophora, and the Apicomplexa. As a group, alveolates the parasomal sack in Ciliophora, an infolding of the plas
are wellsupported by both morphological and molecular malemma in the immediate vicinity of the cilia between the
data. alveoli; and the micropores of the Apicomplexa, also located
Alveolates are characterised by the presence of alveoli, between the alveoli invaginations of the plasmalemma. The
flattened vesicles packed into a continuous layer supporting hypothetical ancestor of alveolates had heterokont flagella
the membrane, typically forming a flexible pellicle. The os with mastigonemes, a morphological structure found in pre
moregulatory structures of alveolata are also probably ho sentday dinoflagellates.
mologous: pusules in dinoglagellates, a membranebound
apicoplast: a derived plastid found in Apicomplexa polar ring: thickening of the membrane complex at the anterior
apikal complex: an organ complex of the Apicomplexa on the and posterior ends of the cells in Apicomplexa
tapered end of the cell containing: polar rings, rhoptries and co rhoptries: clubshaped secretory organelles in the apical com
noids plex in Apicomplexa containing lytic enzymes
conoid: structure consisting of spirallyarranged microtubuli in
the apical complex of the Apicomplexa
See also: Algal blooms: 4.7.1; Babesiosis: 4.2.2.1
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Alveolata 343
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
Ciliophora oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Apicomplexa
Eubacteria Archaea
conoids
Chromerida
four membranes, chlorophyll
betacarotene present
sp.
in . Algae are also of great importance as model organisms,
, and
organism’s response to light can be more easily studied in these species.
is consid
) was
Model organisms
344 Megasystematics
4.6.1.1
Ciliophora
The Ciliophora (ciliates) belong within Alveolata which, Ciliates are between 10 µm and 3 mm long, inhabiting
together with Stramenopiles and Rhizaria, form the SAR both aquatic (freshwater and marine) and terrestrial habitats.
clade. Some species live commensally, whereas others are symbi
Ciliates are unicellular, heterotrophic protists featuring a otic or parasitic. Their distribution is cosmopolitan.
number of special features, including the presence of many Most species are motile, but some may also live in colo
cilia. These have the same structure as the flagella of other nies or are sessile. Ciliates possess mitochondria. The exist
protist groups, but they are usually shorter and have different ence of plastids has until now not been detected in ciliates;
locomotory patterns. however, it is assumed that their ancestors possessed plastids
Under their cell surface, ciliates possess both alveoli, char and that these were secondarily reduced. Ciliates feed via a
acteristic of alveolates, but also trichocysts. When stimu cystostome, with food (bacteria, algae, fungi, or other pro
lated, these are able to project forwards a protein filament. tists) being digested in food vacuoles. Nondigestible residues
Ciliates possess two nuclei: a small generative diploid micro are discharged through an anal orifice known as a cytoproct.
nucleus and a large polyploid somatic macronucleus. Within In addition to the food vacuoles, freeliving ciliates also have
the macronucleus, genes lie in a high number of copies; these contractile vacuoles, which have an osmoregulatory func
are vital for somatic processes. The macronucleus can be re tion.
generated from the micronucleus, whereas after removal of The oldest known fossil ciliates are tintinnids from the
the micronucleus, ciliates are still viable but can no longer Ediacaran (around 580 mya).
reproduce.
Asexual reproduction usually occurs by transverse nucleus remains in each respective individual (stationary
division, although peritrichous ciliates perform this nucleus), whereas the other (floating nucleus) passes into the
function using longitudinal division. The genus Colpoda second individual along the plasma bridge and merges with
forms division cysts, in which several daughter cells grow. the stationary nucleus to form a diploid nucleus. This diploid
Sexual reproduction occurs by conjugation, where DNA nucleus then undergoes mitosis and a macronucleus, formed
is exchanged between two different individuals through by polyploidisation, emerges from one of its daughter nuclei.
a plasma bridge. During conjugation, the macronucleus Sexual recombination in ciliates is thus not associated with
degenerates and micronuclei from both conjugation partners an increase in numbers of individuals, a task accomplished
undergo meiosis. Three of the resulting four nuclei dissolve through asexual reproduction.
and the remaining nucleus undergoes further mitosis. One
See also:
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Alveolata 345
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
Spirotrichea: Heterotrichea: Prostomatea: Peritrichia: ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
sp. sp. sp. sp. sp.
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
phism): a large polyploid macronucleus (white
arrow) and a small diploid micronucleus (black
cytosome arrow). The macronucleus controls the nonre
(cell mouth)
:
anew macro and micronucleus
table:
stability.
by other trichocysts
(ingested diatoms in ) : Trichocysts
Triassic.
green algae of the genus Many Retaria also host endosymbionts, which can
appear green or golden.
(notably chloroplasts) from algae are sequestered
tors and obtain metabolic products produced by by host organisms. During periods of food shortage,
nicates, and molluscs, are colloquially referred to as
Ciliate with
346 Megasystematics
4.6.1.2
Dinophyta
The Dinophyta (dinoflagellates) are grouped within Al epitheca. Unarmoured (‘naked’) taxa also possess alveoli,
veolata alongside Ciliophora (ciliates), Apicomplexa, and but they do not contain cellulose plates. During asexual re
Chromerida. Along with the Stramenopiles and Rhizaria, production, the cell divides, with each new cell retaining a
Alveolata form the SARclade. flagellum and a part of the theca, and forming all missing
Dinoflagellates comprise species with both types of sec parts anew. Dinoflagellates do not possess histones in their
ondary plastids (with three membranes and chlorophyll a nucleus; as a result, their DNA is not bound to such histones
and c) as well as with tertiary plastid types (four membranes as it is during interphase in other eukaryotes. The chromo
and either chlorophyll a and c, or chlorophyll a and b). All somes are also condensed during interphase.
of the approximately 2,500 known both phototrophic and The oldest fossil dinoflagellates date back to the Cambrian
heterotrophic species possess mitochondria. Dinoflagellates and Silurian. In total, around 4,000 fossil species have been
have a global distribution and can be found in aquatic and described. Along with the Bacillariophyceae, dinoflagellates
benthic habitats, although most species belong to marine make up the largest component of marine phytoplankton
plankton. Some species, however, are also able to live as sym (primary producers). In nutrientrich coastal waters, they
bionts or parasites. can occur in masses and lead to characteristic, often red
Dinoflagellates have two heterokont flagella with differ dish algal blooms known as red tides. As some of the most
ing movement dynamics. These were originally inserted api frequently bloomforming species also produce toxins, these
cally, but the flagella are inserted ventrally in more developed algal blooms have significant economic impacts. In addition,
forms. One flagellum runs along a longitudinal groove of the the toxic Pfiesteria piscicida feeds heterotrophically on animal
cortex (sulcus) in the direction of the longitudinal axis of the prey, releasing chemicals to attract more individuals to prey
cell, extending beyond the rear end of the cell and is either items. Infected fish eventually die as a result of the toxins
naked or surrounded by two rows of stiff cilia. The second and wounds. Dinoflagellates are also found as intracellu
flagellum beats transversely within the equatorial groove lar symbionts of radiolarians, foraminifera, molluscs, and
(cingulum), carrying a number of fine cilia. This flagellar ar cnidarians, as well as some ciliates. These socalled zooxan
rangement causes the dinoflagellate cell to swim in an alter thellae provide phototrophic nutrition to the host cells, thus
nating motion. Some dinoflagellates are immobile, but these enabling them to survive in nutrientpoor environments. This
form reproductive cells (swarmers) with the typical flagellar symbiosis is significant in coral reefs, where the death of cor
arrangement. Many taxa are armoured, with cellulose plates als is mainly due to zooxanthellae injury. Finally, some dino
within the alveoli sitting just below the plasmalemma. The flagellates are able to produce flashes of light (marine phos
shells formed below the cingulum are known as the hypoth phorescence) using a luciferinluciferase chemical system.
eca, whereas those formed above the cingulum are called the
Phototrophic taxa contain a wide variety of plastids of or from secondary serial endocytobiosis, i.e. when one of
differing origin. The original plastid type, the Peridiniumtype, the secondarily lost plastids is renewed following secondary
can be traced back to secondary endocytobiosis with red al endocytobiosis. The genus Lepidodinium possesses plastids
gae. This plastid is closely related to the apicoplast of Api which arose by serial secondary endocytobiosis, where the
complexa and the plastids of Stramenopiles, Cryoptophyta plastid can be traced back to the ingestion of a green algae, is
and Haptophyta, whose plastids also can be traced back to surrounded by four membranes and has, notwithstanding all
the ingestion of red algae. This plastid type is surrounded other plastids of chromalveolates, chlorophyll a and b. Plas
by three membranes. The outer membrane is, unlike in Stra tids which arose by way of tertiary endocytobiosis can be
menopiles, Cryptophyta, and Haptophyta, not connected to found in the genera Kryptoperidinium (ingestion of a diatom),
the endoplasmic reticulum. The plastids have thylakoids in Karenia (ingestion of algae from the group Haptophyta), and
stacks of three, chlorophyll a and c, as well as the accessory Dinophysis (ingestion of an algae from the group of crypto
pigments betacarotene and xanthophylls (peridinin). phytes).
The plastids of several taxa stem from tertiary endocy
tobiosis, i.e. the ingestion of algae with secondary plastids,
histones: basic proteins forming part of the structure of longitudinal: relating to length or longitude
nucleosomes luciferin: compounds which generate light (bioluminescence)
See also:
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Alveolata 347
cellulose plates stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
thylakoid
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
mitochondrion
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
epitheca Alve
Golgi apparatus Stra
a
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
pyrenoid mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
cingulum
Eubacteria Archaea
dinokaryon
hypotheca
cellulose plates
sulcus
ellates on the Spanish Mediter
is a bloom
micrograph (right)
fungi
glowworm
sea anemone ctenophore
Bioluminescence
348 Megasystematics
4.6.1.3
Apicomplexa
The Apicomplexa, along with Ciliophora, Chromerida, apparatus. The alveoli of the endomembrane surround the
and Dinoflagellata, are summarised as Alveolata and form entire cell body with the exception of the front and rear end
one of the major groups within the SARclade. as well as the micropore openings.
Apicomplexans are obligate endoparasites of animals. Apicomplexans are named after their distinctive apical
They usually have a two or threephase generation with ge complex, though they are also characterised by an apico
nusspecific infection, growth, propagation, and sexual stag plast, an organelle usually surrounded by four membranes
es. A generational change is often connected with a change sitting in close proximity to the nucleus and mitochondria.
in the host. The infection occurs mostly through long, spin As in plastids of dinoflagellates, the presence of the apico
dleshaped sporozoites, either directly or protected within a plast dates back to a secondary endocytobiosis with red al
sporocyst and oocyst, transferred to a new host through the gae. The apicoplast has a greatly reduced genome and has
sucking action of a bloodsucking insect. lost its photosynthetic function, although it is involved in the
Apicomplexa are characterised by a number of distinc biosynthesis of fatty acids and isoprenoids. Since the host
tive structures located at the apical, pointed end of the cell, organisms (vertebrates) do not have plastids, this is a poten
known as the apical complex: pole rings are thickenings of tial target for the pharmacological control of apicomplexan
the inner pellicular membrane complex and can be found at parasites.
the front and rear of the cell; conoids, a set of spirally ar Among the most important apicomplexan taxa are Plas
ranged microtubules, enable the cell to penetrate hosts; rhop modium, the trigger of malaria, and Toxoplasma, the causative
tries, specialised bottleshaped secretory organelles; and, agent of toxoplasmosis.
finally, micronemes, enzymefilled derivatives of the Golgi
apicoplast: a derived plastid found in Apicomplexa oocyst: (Grk.: oo = egg, kystis = bladder) developmental stage
erythrocytes: (Grk.: erythros = red, kytos = container) red of the apicomplexa containing sporocysts
blood cells schizogony: asexual reproduction in which daughter cells are
gametocyte: sex type developing from merozoites formed by mitosis in the mother cell; these are then freed when
microgametocyte: male gametocyte the mother cell disintegrates
obligate endoparasite: (Lat.: obligare = to bind, to tie) para sporozoite: infectious stage in parasitic Apicomplexa
sites living inside their host and are totally dependent on their
host, i.e. they cannot survive independently
See also: Parasites: 4.2.2.1, 4.3.1, 4.3.2
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Alveolata 349
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
A
conoid
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
apical polar rings
Chr
hy
ae
conoid Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opile
a Ha s
micronemes zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
micronemes ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
rhoptries Eubacteria Archaea
microtubules Golgi apparatus
nucleus
apicoplast
mitochondrion
nucleus
Golgi apparatus
ments, the interior of which is separated from the cytoplasm. This
Mitochondrial intermembrane space:
the mitochondrion
350 Megasystematics
4.6.2
Stramenopiles
Stramenopiles are a sister group to Alveolata. They form Individual groups of stramenopiles are well characterised
a very diverse, heterogeneous lineage, so much so that their and their respective monophyletic lineage is well supported.
diversity by far exceeds that of Metazoa (animals) and Em The relationship of the groups to each other is more diffi
bryophyta (plants). This group is also important from an eco cult to reconstruct. Stramenopiles include many groups of
logical and economic perspective. organisms that possess plastids (algae), but also many groups
All stramenopiles feature hollow tripartite Mastigonema, without them. Even within the groups of plastidbearing
which sit in longitudinal rows on their longer, anterior flagel stramenopiles, many lineages feed heterotrophically and
lum. This characteristic is responsible for the group’s name bear greatly reduced plastids.
(Lat.: stramen = straw, hollow stems, pilus = hair, bristle).
The plastidbearing stramenopiles are considered to be gyra, which includes Opalinata, the Labyrinthulomycetes,
monophyletic and are known as Ochrophyta. Based on mo and Bicosoecida. Bigyra may form the sister group of all of
lecular data, the Ochrophyta comprise three large groups, the remaining stramenopiles, although this has not yet been
each consisting of several important lineages. In addition to confirmed.
their genetic differences, the dominant synthetic pathways of The Opalinata comprises four genera and a total of
carotenoids between these groups are different: around 400 species. They were formerly classified within the
The Raphidophyceae, Phaeothamniophyceae, Phaeophy ciliates because their flagella are arranged in oblique rows.
ceae, and Xantophyceae form a lineage based on this charac However, they do not display other typically ciliate char
teristic; in this group, carotenoids are synthesised in a variety acteristics, such as a nuclear dualism or alveoli. Opalinata
of different pathways. are nonpathogenic endocommensals of a number of ver
The second group mainly consists of Pinguiophyceae, the tebrates.
Chrysophyceae, Synchromophyceae, and Eustigmatales; this Labyrinthulea mostly colonise marine habitats but are
group primarily relies on the violaxanthinantheraxanthin sometimes found on rotting plant material in freshwater hab
cycle to synthesise carotenoids. itats as well. Very few species are known within this lineage.
The third group comprises the Dictyochophyceae, the Pel Some species live as parasites on marine plants and algae.
agophyceae, and the Bacillariophyceae; the diatoxanthindi Labyrinthula macrocystis is the causative agent of eelgrass dis
adinoxanthin cycle dominates in this group. In addition, the ease.
flagella are largely reduced, specifically in the derived taxa. The Bicosoecida are important consumers of pelagic bac
In addition to the Ochrophyta, the Stramenopiles com teria and form a vital part of the heterotrophic nanoplankton
prise groups that do not contain plastids. These groups are community. All of the approximately 40 known species are
likely paraphyletic, although they seem to belong to at least either unicellular or colonyforming. They are found on a
two kinship groups: number of different substrates or freefloating in marine and
Pseudofungi, which includes Peronosporomycetes freshwater habitats. Some species have a lorica.
(Oomycetes) and the Hyphochytridiomycetes; as well as Bi
See also:
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Stramenopiles 351
stida Rh
Bigyra pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
H la
uc ria
Opalinata ta
op Re
phy
E
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
cells connected by polysaccharidecontaining mu T oba olata
oma
Labyrinthulomycetes Alve
E a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
Bicosoecida R a Ha
opil
es
zo
oa nta
O eb
o pt
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
T A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Pseudofungi R
Op
hyta
Apu
O
Hyphochytridiomycetes P
forms a hyphal network and possesses a cell wall of H
Eubacteria Archaea
Peronosporomycetes
glucan and cellulose
Ochrophyta:
Raphidophyceae
Phaeothamniophyceae
Phaeophyceae
or rhiyoid, some species with an eye spot; cell wall made of cellulose and alginates
Xanthophyceae
P
H
O
T
Pinguiophyceae coccoid, cells naked or with a lorica, no eye spot
O
T
Chrysophyceae
R
O
Synchromophyceae P
H
coccoid single cellcells or colonyforming, cell wall of cellulose
Dictyochophyceae pressed to the nucleus
Pelagophyceae
no eye spot
Bacillariophyceae
brane, and releases it by fusing with the mem
brane or through a porus to the outside.
Organisms in coastal areas or estuaries, on the
ronmental changes. These species are therefore
Peronosporomycetes (Oomycetes)
The Peronosporomycetes belong to the stramenopiles, secreted enzymes break down organic macromolecules,
making up a sister group to Alveolata. Together with which may then be absorbed into the cell. Most taxa live
Rhizaria, these groups form the SARclade. parasitically and can cause significant plant disease like, for
Lineages within Peronosporomycetes (‘egg fungi’, algal example, Phytophthora infestans, the causative agent of potato
fungi, or cellulose fungi) are heterotrophic organisms, in blight, which infects the lenticels of potato tubers. As a re
cluding some 400 species. They have mitochondria but no sult, P. infestans can infect stored potatoes, but it also affects
plastids. Most Peronosporomycetes are singlecelled, but other solanaceous plants, including the tomato as well as
may also feature highly branched, multinucleate filaments representatives of certain other plant families.
without cross walls. These species were previously regarded P. infestans spreads very quickly, firstly by the transport of
as fungi as a result of their morphology and diet. However, infested fruits and plants and also by wind dispersal of its
molecular data and the cell wall structure, which is predomi spores. The first documented outbreak of the disease was in
nantly made up of cellulose and hemicellulose, as well as the the eastern United States (New York and Philadelphia) in
fact that most lack chitin in their cell walls, supported their 1843. Two years later, the disease had already spread across
subsequent exclusion from fungi. The zoospores form during the last parts of the eastern US and, through the transporta
the course of asexual reproduction of two flagella, as typical tion of seeds, carried over to Ireland, causing the Great Po
for stramenopiles. tato Famine from 1845 to 1853, which killed over a million
The Peronosporomycetes feed osmotrophically and in people and caused one of the most severe waves of emigra
habit both aquatic and terrestrial habitats. Their outwardly tion from Europe.
Most species of Peronosporomycetes undergo both Similarly, Peronosporales are saprophytic or parasites of
asexual and sexual reproduction. In asexual reproduction, plants and form branched nonseptated mycelia. This group
zoospores or sporangia (conidia on conidiophores, an ad includes many agricultural crop pests, including Phytophtora
aptation to life on land) are spread whereas during sexual infestans, the blue tobacco mould genus Peronospora, and the
reproduction, male and female reproductive organs are fused downy mildewcausing genus Plasmopara.
(gametangiogamy). From the fertilised egg, a thickwalled The genus Pythium also infects plants and can cause a so
oospore develops, a structure that is able to survive unfavour called damping off disease. The species Pythium insidiosum
able conditions until it germinates again. can also infect mammals. Rhipidiales is a group of aquatic
The internal classification of Peronosporomycetes re oomycetes, which is commonly found in polluted waters
mains unresolved. Lagenidiales are probably the ancestral and forms rhizoids for attachment of the organism to the
members of the group. The most widely dispersed group is substrate. Leptomitales have thickened sections of their cell
Saprolegniales, comprising saprophytes as well as parasites. wall; cell walls in this group also contain chitin.
See also: Blight: 3.2.1.7;
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Stramenopiles 353
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opil
a Ha es
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
The oomycete Potato infected with
causes downy mildew. mold’)
Eubacteria Archaea
nucleus is subsequently surrounded by cell membrane. The
swarmer
cyst
sporangium
oogonia
antheridia
Mostly large, round female gametan
gia (oogonia) and smaller male gametangia (antheridia)
arise at the top of hypha. Meiosis occurs in gametangia,
to the oogonia through plasma tubes, i.e. the gametangia
merge (gametangiogamy)
hyphae
H H
bon compounds. This is no coincidence,
R C C R
ible than carbon: double bonds in silicon H H
H
R C C R
chains, as well as making ringshaped mol pounds, i.e. based on carbon, are known,
H
of carbon and silicon. Silicon is therefore R C C R
Carbon atoms can form long chains, interlinked by means
compared to silicon in the cosmos, as well of single, double, or triple bonds
The chemical basis for life
354 Megasystematics
4.6.2.2
Phaeophyceae
Along with the Raphidiophyceae, Phaeothamniophyceae, regions of their colloid and phyllodes, whereas the inner sec
Xanthophyceae, and some other groups, the Phaeophyceae tions are made up of strands of tubular cells serving a role
form a lineage within Ochrophyta. The Ochrophyta in turn, in transport.
along with Pseudofungi and Bigyra, form the stramenopiles, The main constituents within brown algae cell walls are
which, together with Alveolata and Rhizaria, makes up the cellulose and the salts of 1,4glycosidically linked mannu
SARclade. ronic and galuronic acids, making up alginic acid (alginate).
The Phaeophyceae (brown algae) are multicellular and The cellulose fibrils are embedded in an amorphous alginate
some species, such as the giant kelp of genus Macrocystis, gel, ensuring that the organism is strong and flexible enough
can grow up to 60 m in length. The group comprises around to survive conditions in the waverich intertidal zone. Algi
1,800 known almost exclusively marine species, growing nates are also commercially used as emulsifiers in ice cream
mostly in shallow marine coastal areas up to the splash zone or cosmetics.
on rocky terrain. Some species (Sargassum spp.) can also be Flagella are found only in the brown algae’s reproductive
found drifting in the open sea. The brown algae are the only cells. These have two laterally inserting flagella, one an ante
stramenopiles forming differentiated tissues: the thallus of riorlyfacing flagella with two rows of tripartite hairs and the
brown algae is differentiated into various tissues and sec other a smooth, whipshaped flagellum facing the posterior.
tions. Species that are fixed to one location form a rootlike The brown algae most often have one plastid per cell. This
attachment organ called a rhizoid, sprouting colloids (stem organelle is secondary, surrounded by four membranes and
swelling or tubercle), and leaflike phyllodes (part laminar comprising chlorophyll a, c1 and c2, as well as the accessory
branched stem). Several species are characterised by gas pigments ßcarotene, fucoxanthin, and to a lesser extent dia
filled sacks (aerocysts), which help with buoyancy. Most dinoxanthin and diatoxanthin. Chrysolaminarin is formed
brown algae are only photosynthetically active in the outer as a storage polysaccharide.
See also:
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Stramenopiles 355
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opil
a Ha es
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Eubacteria Archaea
Oogonia Antheridia
top: sp.
middle: middle: aerocysts of a bubble tange
sp.
which they regulate swimming depth and are able to stabilise
by constantly swimming. Cyanobacteria and some other bacteria
able to water and solutes, but not to gases. Another form of buoy
lated in air bags, increasing their dispersal range once released
sp. Pine pollen with airbags
Buoyancy
356 Megasystematics
4.6.2.3
Chrysophyceae
Along with the Synchromophyceae, Pinguiophyceae, Eu one of the most important constituents in algal communities,
stigmatophyceae, and a number of other groups, the Chryso especially in nutrientpoor habitats. The Synurales are all
phyceae (golden algae or chrysophytes) form a lineage with phototrophic. Other groups of chrysophytes are mixotrophic
in Ochrophyta. Along with the Pseudofungi and Bigyra, the or heterotrophic, feeding phagotrophically on bacteria and
Ochrophyta make up the Stramenopiles which, with Alveo other small particles. Mixotrophic chrysophyte groups com
lata and Rhizaria, form the SARclade. prise all gradations of predominantly photogrophic to het
Chrysophytes possess two flagella, although the short erotrophic taxa. Mixotrophic nutrition allows organisms to
flagellum may be greatly reduced in some species. Chryso take up nutrients in food and thus circumvent the nutrient
phytes are morphologically diverse, including both unicellu limitations of photosynthesis in nutrientpoor waters.
lar species and colonyforming moulds. At least five lineages have independently lost the ability to
Many chrysophytes produce resting stages (stomato perform photosynthesis, and the plastid is greatly reduced in
cysts), which are made of silicate. These resting stages have these. However, the plastid is also important in these hetero
a variety of ultrastructural surface patterns, and have a porus trophic species, playing a role in various metabolic pathways,
through which the organism can hatch. such as the synthesis of fatty acids. Heterotrophic chryso
Some groups (Synurales, Paraphysomonadales) have sili phytes are some of the most commonly observed eukaryotes
cate scales on their cell surface. in aquatic and terrestrial habitats. In contrast with photo
In many lineages, the ability to photosynthesise is second trophic chrysophytes, heterotrophic species are also found
ary reduced, although even these colourless species possess in marine environments, in lakes with high pH values and
rudimentary plastids. in soil. They are therefore able to colonise a wider range of
Photosynthetic chrysophytes mostly inhabit freshwater habitats than the phototrophs.
habitats at neutral or slightly acidic pH values. They make up
autotrophy: (Grk.: autos = self, trophe = nourishing) the ability mixotrophy: (Grk.: mixis = mixture, trophe = nutrients) ability
of organisms to produce and store organic nutrients exclusively of some organisms to absorb both carbon dioxide and to survive
from anorganic substances on organic sources of energy
heterotrophy: (Grk.: heteros = different, trophe = nutrition)
ability of organisms to use existing organic carbon to form nutri
ents and store energy
See also: Scales: 4.7.2
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Stramenopiles 357
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opil
a Ha es
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
sp. (Synurales; phototro (Synurales;
phic) phototrophic) Eubacteria Archaea
trophic)
Golgi apparatus
mitochondrion shorter
thylakoid
TEM image of heterotrophic (colourless) golden algae
chloroplastendoplasmic
i.e.
quires the inclusion of a phototrophic endosymbiont and its subsequent
also feeding autotrophically, are able to capture and digest animal food the gradual loss of the ability to perform photosynthesis.
Phototrophy, mixotrophy, heterotrophy
358 Megasystematics
4.6.2.4
Bacillariophyceae
The Bacillariophyceae (diatoms) form, along with the them together. During cell division, the cell halves are di
Pelagophyceae and Dictyochophyceae, a lineage within vided amongst the daughter cells, becoming their epitheca,
Ochrophyta. Ochrophyta belong to the Stramenopiles which whereas the hypotheca is formed anew. Shell components
are part of the SARclade (together with Alveolata and are formed within the vesicles of the Golgi apparatus (silica
Rhizaria). deposition vesicles – SDVs). Since the smaller shell half is
Bacillariophyceae are a diverse group of primarily unicel always newly formed, asexual reproduction always leads to
lular algae, although in some groups, these may form simple a reduction in size of the cells in a population. This makes
cell clusters. Diatoms live in marine, freshwater, and terres regular sexual reproduction cycles necessary for the popula
trial habitats, and can be observed in samples dating back to tion to survive. During sexual reproduction, a zygote with
the Jurassic. However, their diversity and distribution grew out a cell wall (auxospore) is produced, which is capable
to what it is today during the Cretaceous. In the sea, diatoms of growing in size. Diatoms have no flagella and even their
form an important component of phytoplankton, and these flagellar basal bodies are greatly reduced. Only the gametes
are responsible for roughly a quarter of global primary pro of some centric diatoms form the flagellum, with tripartite
duction. Diatoms have mitochondria and secondary plastids, mastigonemes, characteristic of Stramenopiles. In all other
which are surrounded by four membranes. Their plastids are taxa, flagella are completely reduced.
coloured brown due to the presence of fucoxanthin, and Diatom deposits may be rockforming and are mined as
these also contain chlorophyll a and c. Diatoms use chrys diatomaceous soil. Diatoms are commercially important, for
olaminarin as a nutrient storage material. example as abrasives in toothpaste, as a reflector material in
Diatoms are characterised by their silicate casing, known road markings, as support material for nitroglycerin in dy
as a frustule. The frustule is composed almost purely of sil namite, and also used in polishing agents, filter media, or
ica, and is coated with a organic layer. The frustule struc in insecticides (shells clog the tracheae of insects). They are
ture is usually composed of two overlapping sections, known an important group of indicators for water quality and are
as thecae (epitheca and hypotheca). The join between the therefore routinely included in environmental water analy
two thecae is supported by bands of silica, which hold ses.
Morphologically, diatoms can be grouped as either round, Diatoms are the only diploid group within the algae,
radially symmetrical taxa (centric – Centrales) or longitudi meaning that they have a double set of chromosomes in all
nally stretched, bilaterally symmetrical taxa (pennate – Pen but their reproductive cells, which are formed by meiosis
nales). Many pennate diatoms are able to move using spe (gametes).
cialised structures known as raphes, which centric diatoms Due to their double gene pool, diatoms are not often di
do not possess. Many species also form floating extensions rectly affected by mutations, which may explain their rela
or vacuoles and oil droplets, in order to increase buoyancy. tively high evolutionary rate of and, thus, their broad diver
sity.
chrysolaminarin: a storage polysaccharide found in strameno
philes; 13 and 16glycosidic bonds
See also:
Alveolata and Stramenopiles: Stramenopiles 359
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
a Stra
lveolata
Meta monad men
opil
a Ha es
zo
oa nta
o pt
eb
Cry
op
o
mo
ok
A hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
, a pennate diatom , a centric diatom
Eubacteria Archaea
epitheca
toothpaste
epipleura
hypotheca
hypopleura
a raphe. Raphes are slitshaped apertures in the silica shells, which are
of the shell, but may also be arranged eccentrically or on the edge of
(mollusc) and sp. (Cyanobacteria)
360 Megasystematics
4.7
Hacrobia and eukaryotes of uncertain placement (incertae sedis)
Together, Haptophyta and Cryptophyta make up Hacro The relationship of Haptophyta and Cryptophyta with
bia. this SARclade and with the ‘core Chromalveolates’ is still
In line with the ‘chromalveolate hypothesis’, these groups uncertain; however, it is likely that Haptophyta is a sister
have conventionally been grouped with Alveolata and Stra group of the SARclade. The Cryptophyta, in contrast, may
menopiles as Chromalveolata, as a result of their chloro be more closely related to Archaeplastida.
phyll ccontaining plastids. However, the relationship of Since the relationships of these groups are not clear, they
these groups to each other remains unclear. Alveolata and are listed as incertae sedis eukaryotes; those without a known
stramenopiles can be summarised as ‘core Chromalveolates’ phylogenetic position.
which, along with the sister group Rhizaria, is known as the
SARclade.
The Haptophyta include algaecarrying plastids contain arctica has alveoli beneath the cell membrane and tripartite
ing chlorophyll c. Studies indicate that Haptophyta and the hair on its longer flagellum.
SARclade are related. The Picozoa are a phylum of tiny flagellates that are only
Also, the Centrohelida as well as the flagellate group Tel a few micrometres in size. They are among the smallest
onema are probably related to Haptophyta. known eukaryotes and are mostly found in the oligotrophic,
The Centrohelida comprise part of the organisms previ cold coastal seas where they make up a significant part of the
ously known as Heliozoa (heliozoans). These spherical cellls biomass. They possess two flagella and their cells are divided
of roughly 3080 µm in size are characterised by their radial into two hemispheres. The phylogenetic position of Picozoa
axopods, supported by microtubules placed in a triangular is controversial.
hexagonal arrangement. These microtubules emerge from The Cryptophyta, also of controversial taxonomic af
central tripartite granules (centroplasts). filiation, include the phototrophic Cryptophyceae and the
The genus Telonema is a deepbranching lineage of uncer heterotrophic Kathablepharidaceae. They are thought to be
tain taxonomic affiliation. Telonema are biflagellated with related to Haptophyta, but some studies group them with Ar
a proboscislike structure and a complex skeleton made of chaeplastida instead.
microtubules and microfilaments. The species Telonema ant
See also: Mycorrhizae: 4.2.2.2
Hacrobia 361
Telonema
Telonema
Picozoa
Cryptomonadales
Goniomonadales
362 Megasystematics
4.7.1
acid rain: precipitation possessing a lower pH level than pure nanoplankton: (Grk.: planktos = errant) organisms between
rainwater (approx. pH 5.5)
ER: endoplasmatic reticulum toxins: (Lat.: toxicum = poison) poisonous substance produced
greenhouse gases: gaseous matter which absorbs infrared by living organisms
radiation emitted from the Earth, thereby contributing to the
warming of the atmosphere
See also:
Hacrobia 363
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
ptop
ist
ta
soz
h
Op
hyta
Apu
Emiliania huxleyi Prymnesium parvum Pleurochrysis Eubacteria Archaea
)
Algal blooms
364 Megasystematics
4.7.2
Cryptophyta (cryptophytes) include the heterotrophic nucleus from the red algal symbiont), are visible between
Kathablepharidaceae, the genus Goniomonas, as well as the the second and third membranes. The nucleomorph itself
Cryptophyceae discussed here. As with the haptophytes, contains only three chromosomes. The outermost plastid
the taxonomic position of cryptophytes remains unknown, membrane is connected to the nuclear membrane and the
though they are thought to be related to Archaeplastida. endoplasmic reticulum.
Cryptophyte species are unicellular protists which colo Unlike in cyanobacteria and red algae, the watersoluble
nise marine and freshwater. They can reach high abundance phycobilins of cryptophytes are not organised in phycobili
levels and therefore make up a high relative biomass despite somes. The one or two chloroplasts per cell are, depending
their small size of under 50 µm. Sixteen genera with around on their accessory pigments, coloured differently (blue, blue
200 species of cryptophytes have been described. green, reddish, redbrown, olivebrown, brown, or yellow
Many of these are specialists in lowlight conditions, sur brown).
viving as a result of the particular photopigments targetin the Colourless, phagotrophic cryptophytes also exist, which
‘green gap’ of chlorophylls. They are therefore able to form still contain reduced secondary plastids with a nucleomorph
denser populations at relatively greater depths within the wa and plastid. Three lineages of such cryptophytes are known
ter column, near the chemocline. They can also survive and to exist; these lineages were formerly combined in the genus
multiply under ice during winter. Chilomonas.
Cryptophyceae obtained plastids with chlorophyll a and A number of species from other groups, including the cili
c2 with four membranes through secondary endocytobiosis ate Mesodinium and various dinoflagellates, use cryptophytes
of a red algae. Starch grains and a nucleomorph, a reduced or their plastids as endosymbionts or as kleptoplastids.
Cryptophytes have a periplast instead of a cell wall. The The main furrow system is inwardly densely lined with
periplast is a threelayered structure consisting of inner and large ejectosomes (explosive organelles). Further more, ejec
outer protein layers (or protein plates) with a protein mem tosomes, invisable by way of conventional microscopy, of
brane embedded in between the two. the same type are scattered underneath the periplast. Ejec
In addition, cryptophytes are characterised by two dis tosomes consist of two spirally wound bands which, when
tinctly different flagella, emerging from an invagination in chemically or mechanically stressed, sling the ejectosomes
the cell. The longer flagellum has stiff bipartite hairs (com projectile. The specific function of ejectosomes is still un
prised of a shaft and terminal filaments) on both sides and clear, although they may possibly serve as a defence mecha
beats back and forth for locomotion to pull the flagellum (lo nism against predators.
comotive flagellum). In contrast, the shorter flagellum only Cryptophyte cells are asymmetrical, causing them to ro
has one row of hair; the genus Goniomonas has hairs on only tate around their longitudinal axis and rock back and forth
one flagellum. as they swim.
chemocline: the sudden point of division between bodies of periplast: intracellular layer made of protein plates which form
water differing in chemistry within the water column a strong cell membrane
kleptoplastidy: process in which plastids are sequestered by phytoplankton: (Grk.: phyton = plant, planktos = drifting)
an organism but are not passed on to the next generation (not
endosymbiosis)
See also:
Hacrobia 365
stida Rh
pla iza
ae
Viridiplant ta
ria
oa
h
rc
Rh
z
G
Cerco
odo
la
uc ria
ta
op Re
phy
Chr
hy
ae
Disc ta
Excavata
oba olata
oma
Alve
Stra
onada
lveolata
men
Metam opile
a Ha s
zo
oa nta
bo pt
Cry
oe op
o
ok
Am hy
pto
ist
ta
soz
h
phy
Op
Apu
ta
Eubacteria Archaea
Chroomonas . Cryptomonas
Goniomonas .
Cryptomonas ovata
Surface scales
Glossary 367
Glossary
16S: the small subunit of prokaryotic ribosomes, as well as plastids alveoli: (Lat.:
ambulacral grooves:
18S: the small subunit of eukaryotic ribosomes with a sedimentati ambulacral system
ambulacral system:
70Sribosome: prokaryotic ribosome with a sedimentation coef noderms
amniotes:
abiotic: (Grk.: a = not, bios and mammals
accessory pigments: antenna pigments which capture light and amorphous: unformed, shapeless
generate the energy necessary for photosynthesis anaerobe: (Grk.: an = not, aer = air, bios
achene: fruit of the Asteraceae
acid rain: anapsids:
acidophile: preferring low pH conditions anatexis: partial melting of rocks in the continental crust during
acoelomate: highgrade regional metamorphism
anisokont:
Acrisol: annual plants: yearlings, annuals
lated subsurface layers of clay, this soil group is produced by anoxia: the total depletion of oxygen
anoxygenic: producing no molecular oxygen
acrodont: antheridium:
fused to the jaw bone at their base anthropogenic: (Grk.: anthropos = man, gen
adaptation: the process of adapting
adaptive mutation: aperture: germination pore on the wall of a pollen grain
adaptive radiation: the emergence of a multitude of new life aphotic zone: the deep water layers which sunlight fails to pe
forms from a single ancestor as the result of adaptation to diffe netrate
apical: (Lat.: apex
adaptive zone: apical complex: an organ complex of the Apicomplexa on the
tapered end of the cell containing: polar rings, rhoptries and
that exploit the same resources in a similar way conoids
adhesion: (Lat.: adhaesio apicoplast:
substances or particles cling to one another apomorphy:
adventitious root: taxa which was not present in their ancestors
sue or as the result of a wound aragonite: an orthorhombic crystal made of calcium carbonate
aerobe: (Grk.: aer = air, bios (CaCO3
archegonium:
agglutinated: consisting of clumps of particles arid: dry
aggregation: (Lat.: aggregatio arillus:
clustering articulated:
air embolism: ascocarp ( = ascoma): fruiting body of the ascomycete
assimilation:
aldehyde: organic compound containing an aldehyde group body's own materials
ATP:
algae: photoautotrophic, eukaryotic organisms not belonging to autapomorphy:
species or one terminal monophyletic taxon
well autospores:
Alisol: acidic soil caused by leaching with accumulated subsurface autospores resemble the mother cell
layers of clay, less eroded than Acrisols autotrophy: (Grk.: autos = self, trophe
alkaliphile: preferring high pH conditions
allantois: embryonic urinary bladder from anorganic substances
allorhizy: axostyle: a sheet of microtubules forming a thin rod behind the
dary roots main body
Baltica:
banded iron: capsoid (capsal):
taining ironrich layers
basal body: carbonisation: formation of organic fossil materials releasing wa
gellum
basalt: carnivorous: (Lat.:
base triplet: carotenoid: a type of terpene, the liposoluble accessory pigments
in photosynthesis
benthic: carpel: (Grk.: karpos
tom of a body of water
binary (binomial) nomenclature: in taxonomy, the system of carposporophyte: formed by the fusion of haploid gametes in
the threestage lifecycle of red algae
the genus and the epithet catalysis: (Grk.: katalysis
biodiversity: ting or decelerating a chemical reaction using a catalyst
cell adhesion: state of binding between cells
Cenozoic Era:
centrioles:
ratus
centripetal: from the outside to the centre
biogenic: (Grk.: bios chelicerae: mouth parts of the chelicerata
biostratigraphy: chemical weathering: processes leading to the chemical alterati
of rock strata using fossils on or dissolution of minerals
biotic: (Grk.: bios chemocline:
bipedal: locomotion by means of two legs ter differing in chemistry within the water column
bitumen: (Lat.: bitumen chemoorganotroph: organisms that obtain their energy from
from petroleum oxidising organic electron donors
bituminous slate: oil slate, a soft form of clay slate impregnated chorda dorsalis:
with bitumen dates
blastopore: embryonic mouth chorion: outer membrane around the amniotic sac surrounding an
bothrosomes: organelles of the labyrinthulomycetes, which se
Chromalveolata: a supergroup including all organisms contai
cells ning plastids with chlorophyll c
branchial gut: part of the foregut containing gill slits. The gill slits
enable the animal to breathe as well as extract particles of food
browning: process of soil formation in which iron compounds chronostratigraphy:
age of rocks according to time and in relation to their absolute
bryozoa:
buccal pumping: (Lat.: bucca chrysolaminarin: a storage polysaccharide found in stramenophi
circumpolar:
cisterna:
while its mouth is closed the Golgi apparatus
bundle sheath cells: clastic sediments: rock fragments consisting of other rocks and
plants
burial metamorphism: metamorphism caused when rocks are process of soil formation yielding smaller clasts as
buried at great depth in the ground the result of silicate weathering and the new formation of clay
buttress root: large, riblike roots arranged in a star formation minerals
around a tree to increase stability coccoid (coccoidal): class of algae which are spherical in shape,
C5sugar:
Calcisol: soil that possess a strong secondary calcic horizon coelom: (Grk.: koiloma
calcite: trigonal crystal made of calcium carbonate (CaCO3 lined with mesodermal cells
tituent of numerous biogenic sediments coenobium:
Calvin Cycle: a series of reactions during photosynthesis in which bedded in mucilage
coiled:
CAM: Coleoptera: order of beetles
columella: central column in the sporecase of mosses
Glossary 369
cormus: (Grk.: kormus
diversity:
cosmopolitan: DNA bank:
costa: rodlike structure consisting of proteins at the base of the nisms can be stored for future testing
DOC:
craton: domain: : eukarya, bac
formed in the early Precambrian and which has suffered no tec teria and archaea
tonic deformation since the Precambrian dominance structure:
cristae: (Lat.: crista
membrane of mitochondria DoushantuoFormation:
cuttlebone:
drifting:
cyst: resting stages in singlecelled organisms, plants and animals, phological phases
dynein: one of the motor proteins in eukaryotic cells which enab
cytokinesis: (Grk.: cytos = cell, kinesis ecdysone:
cytoplasm: cell contents excluding cell nucleus and organelles phosis and reproduction
cytoskeleton: ECM: extra cellular matrix
ecoregion:
a geographically distinct assemblage of species, natural commu
370 Glossary
erosion:
scholarship (meaning a 'recurring pattern of ecosystems associ
ated with characteristic combinations of soil and landform that location to another
erythrocytes: (Grk.: erythros = red, kytos
ectoderm: (Grk.: ektos = outside, derma cells
termost germ cell layer which differentiates to form the skin, estuary: (Lat.: aestuarium
elaters: euphotic zone: the uppermost layer of water, the sunlight zone
disperse spores eusporangiate: wall of the mature sporangium arising from se
electron microscopy:
surface or the interior of an object using electrons instead of euthermic: maintaining an optimal temperature
evaporation:
than light microscopes the surface of a body of water
ellagic acid: a polyphenol exoskeleton: (Grk.: exo = outside, skeletos
an agent which enables two normally un
mixable materials to be mixed together and stabilised extinction rate:
enation: (Lat.: enatere
extrapolation:
endemic:
graphical area extremophile:
endobenthic: conditions
endocommensalism: (Grk.: endon = inside, skeletos = frame: exudation: (Lat.: exsudatio
com = together, mensa losing organic molecules through a cell membrane
facies: characteristics of rocks related to the history of rock for
mation
endocytobiosis: faunal provinces:
regions that differ markedly from other regions due to their en
les. This term is more precise than endosymbiosis because, in the demic taxa
case of organelles, they are no longer independent organisms felsic:
igneous minerals rich in silicic acid
being the association of cells of different species fertile strobili: fertile cones
endoderm: (Grk.: endon = inside, derma fertility: the ability to produce offspring
layer which differentiates to form the respiratory system and the
endophytes:
which the relationship between plant and organism can be eit possible
her symbiontic or parasitic
endoskeleton: (Grk.: endon = inside, skeletos
biogeographical region that differs markedly
endosymbiotic bacteria:
ganisms
endothermic: regulation of body temperature from within (such
loess:
occurring or existing within a species or between longitudinal: relating to length or longitude
lorica:
intron: luciferin:
Luvisols:
involucre: acidic as acrisol
plants dark, rockforming minerals which are rich in magnesium
isoprenoids: natural compounds arising from isoprenes (2me and iron (Lat.: ferrum
mangrove:
isospory:
isotherm: (Grk.: isos = same, therme mannan:
cating the same temperature mastigonemes: (Grk.: mastigo
isotope:
number of protons in each atom but which differ in neutron megafauna:
number and the early Quaternary
karyogamy: fusion of two nuclei meiosis: (Grk.: meiosis
kinetid: structure in eukaryotic cells used for locomotion
kinetoplast: meiospores: spores produced by meiosis
netoplastids mesoderm: (Grk.: derma
kinetosome:
mesophilic: preferring moderate conditions (mostly in respect to
metamerism:
Glossary 373
metamorphic rock: rock formed by being subjected to high pres NADPH: reduced form of nicotinamide adenine dinucleotide phos
sure or temperatures without losing its solid form
metamorphism: (Grk.: metamorphosis
tion of the composition or structure of rock, usually by heat, te consisting of compacted pebbles
pressure, or other natural phenomena nanoplankton: (Grk.: planktos
metanephridia: excretory glands connected to the coelom by a
nemoral: deciduous
neural tube:
the metanephridia neurocranium: part of the skull protecting the brain
metapopulation: niche: (Lat.: nidus
motility: (Lat.: motio Triassic
palmelloid: colony of algae in which the cells are embedded in
mRNA (messenger RNA): molecule in cells that carries a porti
number of cells
of proteins parabasal apparatus:
murein:
mycelium:
mycotroph: feeding on fungi or nutrition in a symbiotic associa
tion with fungi
374 Glossary
polar ring: thickening of the membrane complex at the anterior
partial pressure of carbon dioxide: the degree of pressure and posterior ends of the cells in Apicomplexa
exerted by carbon dioxide in a mixture of gases Polymerase Chain Reaction (PCR):
peak:
pedoturbation: polyploidisation: multiplication of the number of sets of chro
mosomes in a cell
pelagic: relating to the open water ppm: parts per million
pelliclula: (Lat.: pellicula PQCycle:
pentacyclic: primary producers: autotrophic organisms that synthesise com
PEP carboxylase: plex organic molecules from inorganic compounds
perhumid: primary production: the synthesis of biomasses from inorganic
months compounds
periplast: intracellular layer made of protein plates which form a primary succession:
strong cell membrane
phagocytosis: (Grk.: phagein cytos primers: primers are short strands of nucleic acid with comple
phagotrophy:
culate matter
pharynx: (Grk.: pharyngs primeval ocean:
part of the alimentary canal
photooxidation: oxidation caused by the action of light
photorespiration: (Grk.: phos = light, Lat.: respiratio = brea primordium: (Lat.: primordium
prosoma: anterior part in Chelicerata
colate is created prothallium: haploid gametophyte in ferns
phragmoplast: microtubuli assembled perpendicularly to the cell protists: a large group of unrelated eukaryotic organisms with no
specialised tissue
phycobilisome: large protein complex associated with colour pig protocyanobacteria: extinct ancestors of current cyanobacteria
protonema:
the phycobilines absorb green and yellow light protonephridia: simple excretory gland beginning with a termi
phycoplast: microtubuli assembled parallel to the cell plate du
members of the Chlorophyceae the animal
phyllotaxis: protoplanet: (Grk.: protos
phylogenetics:
provincialism:
phytoplakton: (Grk.: phyton = plant, planktos
pseudoparenchyma:
planation: relocation in one plane real tissues, celltocell structures such as plasmodesmata are
planktic or planktonic:
water column and cannot swim against the current pseudoplasmodium: aggregation of numerous cells to form a
planktivorous: feeding on plankton
plant litter: dead organic material on the top layer of soil to real plasmodia, in which a multinucleate mass of cytoplasm
plant litter decomposition: breaking down and mineralisation is formed
of organic substances by decomposers pseudopodia:
planula:
plasmodesmata: channels between two plant cells enabling the ents
transport of matter between them psychrophilic:
plasmogamy: the fusion of the cytoplasms of two cells
Glossary 375
punctiform distribution: only in one place or at a point, little ribosome:
spatial distribution RNA polymerase: enzyme which acts as a catalyst in the synthesis
pusules:
pygidium: rock: mixture of minerals occurring in solid form
also the unsegmented section of annelids rock metamorphism: changes in rocks under high pressure and
pyrenoid:
rstrategists:
pyroclasts: RuBisCo:
pyruvate: Rugosa:
cycle and is the endproduct of glycolysis septa in only four of the six sectors, therefore displaying bila
quadruped: an animal which has four feet teral symmetry
Quarternary: sailing ballast:
quasispecies (viral): saproby:
organic matter
radiation: saprophytes: heterotrophic organisms which feed on dead orga
of new forms nic matter and in doing so break it down into its constituent
rangeomorphs: parts
reactive oxygen species (ROS): on the one hand free radicals, saprotrophic: feeding on dead organic matter and in doing so,
such as the hyperoxide anion, the hydroxyl radical, and the per breaking it down into its constituent parts
oxyl radical, on the other hand stable molecular oxidising agents SARclade:
such as peroxide, ozone and the hypochlorite anion, as well as schizogony: asexual reproduction in which daughter cells are for
unstable oxygen molecules, also known inaccurately as oxygen
radicals mother cell disintegrates
recent: (Lat.: recens Scleractinia:
red sediment: sediment which is coloured red due to the pre ta are present in all six sectors, therefore displaying radial sym
metry
redox reaction: sclerites:
in which electrons are transferred between species sclerophytes:
reducing equivalent:
secondary endosperm: nutritional tissue created by the fertilisa
corresponds to one mole of electrons (due to the transfer of tion of polar nuclei in the seeds of most Magnoliopsida
secretory enzymes: enzymes secreted by excretory glands
sediments:
reduction: gain of electrons or a decrease in oxidation state by a ted by wind, water or ice
molecular, atom, or ion semiarid:
regression: marine regression takes place when the sea retreats
semihumid:
relative frequency: septum:
series: stratigraphic timescale
reproductive isolation: serrated leaf: leaf possessing sharp subteeth between the teeth
on its margin
geographical separation, genital incompatibility, sesquiterpines: subgroup of terpenes
differences sessile: sessile organisms are attached to a substrate and cannot
rhabdosomes: rodlike colonies of graptolites
rhizoids: sexual dimorphism: (Lat.: sexus dimorphos =
the ground
rhizopodal: shortgrass prairie: prairie dominated by short grasses
siderite: (Grk.: sideros
3
from this term sieve elements: the type of cell in the phloem in Magnoliopsida
rhoptries: clubshaped secretory organelles in the apical complex in which organic metabolites are transported
in Apicomplexa containing lytic enzymes siphonal: polynuclear, singlecelled
rhyolite: acid igneous rock
376 Glossary
Slayer: layer of paracrystalline protein lining the cell wall in many stratotype: layer of rock in a particular location on the basis of
prokaryotes
Small Subunit (SSU): strobili: coneshaped sporangiabearing structures
stromatoliths: (Grk.: stroma = blanket, lithos
sedimentary rock formed by the trapping and binding of sedi
Snowball Earth: mentary particles or the accumulation of salts resulting from the
growth of microorganisms
Stromatoporoida:
Precambrian ice ages, but it remains a moot point whether the
thioredoxin: small proteins which function as cofactors in the undergrowth:
transfer of electrons nopy
thoracic respiration: inhalation by expanding the ribcage and undifferentiated soils: soils are not or only weakly differentiated
into horizons
respiration, thoracic respiration takes place through an open unsaturated fatty acids: in contrast to saturated fatty acids, un
mouth saturated fatty acids possess at least one carboncarbon double
thylakoids: (Grk.: thylakoeides bond in their chain
in chloroplasts uridine monophosphate: an intermediate product in pyrimidine
tight junctions: celltocell conjunctions with no gap between biosynthesis
epithelial cells, forming a barrier to diffusion uroid: posterior bulb in amoebae
tillite: sedimentary rock composed of compacted glacial till (rock Variscan orogeny:
caused by the collision of Gondwana and Laurussia
torpor: vesicle: (Lat.:
rate viviparity: term describing organisms which produce their off
toxins: (Lat.: toxicum
transition: point mutation in which a purine nucleotide is repla zoochlorellae: endosymbiontic green algae
ced by another purine, or a pyrimidine nucleotide is replaced by zoospore:
another pyrimidine zooxanthellae: endosymbiontic dinophytes
translation: zygote: (Grk.: zygotos
gamete cells in sexual reproduction
transversion: point mutation in which a purine is substituted for
trichal:
gae
trichocyst:
they are used for defence or to capture food
triploblastic: organism with three primary germ layers
trochophore larvae:
Tropical Convergence Zone:
as a band of thick cloud and is an area of high precipitation
true diversity: term describing the number of species that accord
trunked mammals:
tubulin: a protein, the main constituent of microtubuli
tussock grasses: grasses which grow close together in tufts or
clumps
type locality:
ubiquitous:
ultraviolet:
References 379
References
Illustrations (if not otherwise stated): © Jens Boenigk Boenigk; © HansPeter Schertl, Mineralogische Sammlung,
RuhrUniversität Bochum
2.1.2.2: © Till Niermann, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY 2.3.1.4: Images 1,2 und 4: Reprinted from Global and Planetary
SA3.0; © Suzanne MacLeod, Wikimedia Commons, public Change, Volume 77, Jiang HS, Lai X, Yan C, Aldridge RJ, Wignall
domain; © Jim Champion, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CC P, Sun Y, Revised conodont zonation and conodont evolution
BYSA3.0; © Rosel Eckstein/pixelio.de; © Massimo Catarinella, across the Permian–Triassic boundary at the Shangsi section,
Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © National Park Service, Guangyuan, Sichuan, South China, Pages 103115, 2011 with
Wikimedia Commons, public domain; © Mgloor, Wikimedia permission from Elsevier; Images 3, 5, 6 und 7: Reprinted from
Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Tomasz Kuran, Wikime Global and Planetary Change, Volume 55, Jiang HS, Lai X, Luo
dia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Ricampelo, Wikimedia G, Aldridge R, Zhang K,Wignall P, Restudy of conodont zonati
Commons, GFDL&CCBY3.0; © Major John/pixelio.de; © Jens
on and evolution across the P/T boundary with permission from geocollections database SARV, GIT 152021/Timofeevia lancarae,
Elsevier by Hagenfeldt, S., Institute of Geology at TUT, 2011; 3 images:
2.3.1.5: © Dan Lehrmann; © Jun Chen; © Wenkun Qie; © Jean Van Reprinted by permission from Macmillan Publishers Ltd: Nature
nier, Université Lyon (doi:10.1038/nature09943), copyright (2010)
2.3.2: © Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore (www.fos 2.3.3.2: © Jens Boenigk; © Gisela Kollmann; © Michael Steiner,
snet.de); © porshunta, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY FU Berlin; © M.Buschmann, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CC
SA3.0; © Lubman04, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © BYSA3.0; © Luc Viatour, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY
H.Zell, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Ghedoghe SA3.0; © Courtesy of Smithsonian Institution; © Peter von
do, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © Didier Descouens, Bechen/pixelio.de; © Luc Viatour, Wikimedia Commons, GF
Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0, Collections of the Museum DL&CCBYSA3.0; © Sean Harriman, U.S. Army, Wikimedia Com
of Toulouse; © Steve Hess, EXTINCTIONS.com; © Oxford Muse mons, public domain
um of Natural History; © Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet Fos 2.3.3.3: © Courtesy of Smithsonian Institution; © Estonian geo
silienStore (www.fossnet.de); © Georg Rosenfeldt, Michael He collections database SARV,GIT 152829/Timofeevia lancarae by
semann, www.mikrohamburg.de; © Mark A.Wilson, Wikimedia Paalits, I., Institute of Geology at TUT, 2011; © Christian Person
Commons, public domain nic; © James L. Stuby, Wikimedia Commons, public domain; ©
2.3.2.1: 7 images: © Georg Rosenfeldt, Michael Hesemann, www. Michael Steiner, FU Berlin; © The Trustees of the Natural History
mikrohamburg.de; © Mark A.Wilson, Wikimedia Commons, Museum, London; © Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet Fossilien
public domain Store (www.fossnet.de); © The Trustees of the Natural History
Museum, London
2.3.2.2: © Géry Parent, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0;
© Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore (www.fossnet. 2.3.3.4: 5 images: © Philippe Steemans, Université de Liège; ©
de); © Kevmin, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Johanna Mellgren; © Kevin Walsh, Wikimedia Commons, CC
Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore (www.fossnet.de); BY2.0; © Dwergenpaartje, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0;
© Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore (www.fossnet. © Steve Hess, EXTINCTIONS.com
de); © Mark A.Wilson, Wikimedia Commons, public domain; 2.3.3.5: © Ghedoghedo, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; ©
© Chris Traxon; © Al Fagerstrom; © Naturhistorisches Museum Smith609, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © H. Zell, Wiki
Wien; © Michael Steiner, FU Berlin; © Michael Steiner, FU Berlin; media Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0, Staatliches Museum für
© Ulrich Lieven Naturkunde Karlsruhe, Germany, SMNKPAL. 6679; © James L.
2.3.2.3: 3 images: © Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore Stuby, Wikimedia Commons, public domain, Courtesy of Smith
(www.fossnet.de) sonian Institution; © Hannes Grobe, Wikimedia Commons, CC
BYSA2.5; © The Trustees of the Natural History Museum, Lon
2.3.2.4: © Mark A.Wilson, Wikimedia Commons, public domain; © don
Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore (www.fossnet.de);
© Dwergenpaartje, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0 2.3.3.6: © Isabella Pfenninger/Shutterstock; © Mark A. Wilson, Wiki
media Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © Mark A. Wilson, Wikimedia
2.3.2.5: Illustration trilobite modified from: © Sam Gon; 4 illustra Commons, public domain; aus Peng, Y; Makarkin, V.N; Wang, X;
tions: © Sam Gon; Dalmanites limulurus: © Steve Hess, EXTINC Ren, D. (2011). „A new fossil silky lacewing genus (Neuroptera,
TIONS.com; Reedops cephalotes: © Steve Hess, EXTINCTIONS. Psychopsidae) from the Early Cretaceous Yixian Formation of
com; Boedaspis ensifer: © Steve Hess, EXTINCTIONS.com China“. ZooKeys 130: 217–228. DOI:10.3897/zookeys.130.1576/
2.3.2.6: © Didier Descouens, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0, public domain/ CCBY4.0; © Jennifer Clack, The Natural Histo
Collections of the Museum of Toulouse; © Thomas Gerasch; © ry Museum of Denmark, Copenhagen; © FunkMonk, Wikime
Hamish Hudson; © Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore dia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Ghedoghedo, Wikimedia
(www.fossnet.de); © Sharon Mooney, Wikimedia Commons, Commons, CCBYSA3.0, Senckenberg Naturmuseum; © Ghe
CCBY2.5; © Géry Parent, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY doghedo, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0, Senckenberg
SA3.0; © Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore (www. Naturmuseum; From Redecker D, Kodner R, Graham LE, 2000.
fossnet.de); © Daderot, Wikimedia Commons, public domain, Glomalean fungi from the Ordovician. Science 289, 19201921.
Courtesy of Smithsonian Institution Reprinted with permission from AAAS; From Redecker D, Kodner
R, Graham LE, 2000. Glomalean fungi from the Ordovician. Sci
2.3.2.7: 2 images: Reprinted from Global and Planetary Change,
ence 289, 19201921. Reprinted with permission from AAAS; ©
Volume 77, Jiang HS, Lai X, Yan C, Aldridge RJ, Wignall P, Sun Y,
Michael Steiner, FU Berlin
Revised conodont zonation and conodont evolution across the
Permian–Triassic boundary at the Shangsi section, Guangyuan, 2.3.3.7: Archaeopteris: © Ghedoghedo, Wikimedia Commons,
Sichuan, South China, Pages 103115, 2011 with permission CCBYSA3.0, Took the photo at Musee d‘Histoire Naturelle,
from Elsevier; © Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore Brussels; Koralle: © Ziko van Dijk, Wikimedia Commons, GF
(www.fossnet.de); © Christian Personnic; © Silvio Keller, FossNet DL&CCBYSA3.0, Collections of the Museum für Naturkunde
Internet FossilienStore (www.fossnet.de); © Christian Personnic Dortmund; Brachiopode Bild 1: © Dwergenpaartje, Wikimedia
Commons, CCBYSA3.0; Brachiopode Bild 2: © Dwergenpaart
2.3.2.8: © Nobumichi Tamura; © Ghedoghedo, Wikimedia Com
je, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; Nautilida: © Ulrich
mons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0, Staatliches Museum für Naturkunde
Lieven; Goniatit: © Hamish Hudson
Stuttgart; © Nobumichi Tamura; © Royal Tyrrell Museum; © No
bumichi Tamura; © Silvio Keller, FossNet Internet FossilienStore 2.3.3.8: © Deutsches BergbauMuseum, Bochum; © Deutsches
(www.fossnet.de); © The Trustees of the Natural History Muse BergbauMuseum, Bochum; © John Crossley; © Hamish Hud
um, London; © Haplochromis, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CC son; © Mark A. Wilson, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; ©
BYSA3.0, Museum für Naturkunde Berlin Ballista, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL& CCBYSA3.0
2.3.2.9: © Oxford Museum of Natural History; 3 images: © Hans 2.3.3.9: © Nobumichi Tamura; © Helmut Knoll, www.hmknoll.de;
Kerp, Universität Münster © Hans Kerp, Universität Münster; © Steve Hess, EXTINCTIONS.
com; © Dwergenpaartje, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; ©
2.3.3.1: 3 images: © Michael Steiner, FU Berlin; © Eduard Solà
Mark A. Wilson, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © Ulrich
Vázquez, Wikimedia Commons, CCBY3.0; © Michael Steiner,
Lieven
FU Berlin; © Michael Steiner, FU Berlin; © Estonian geocollec
tions database SARV,GIT 152134/Baltisphaeridium stipaticum 2.3.3.10: © Silkanni Forrer
Hagenfeldt, S., Institute of Geology at TUT, 2011; © Estonian
References 381
3.2.1.4: Illustrations Galapagos islands and Carribean islands mod Kent Miller, CCBY2.0; © Marc Steensma, Wikimedia Commons,
ified from: R. H. MacArthur and E. O. Wilson (1963) Evolution CCBYSA3.0
17:373387; The Theory of Island Biogeography, Princeton Uni 3.2.2.5: illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001)
versity Press Princeton, N.J. (1967) Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth.
3.2.1.5: Illustration modified from: Duffy J.E. (2009) Ecosystems BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; illustration climate diagram modified
and Human WellBeing: Volume 1: Current State and Trends: Bi from: http://www.wwis.dwd.de/016/c01343.htm; © W. Zech,
odiversity; Illustration modified from: Barry Saltzman (2002) Dy „Böden der Welt“; © W. Zech, „Böden der Welt“; © Christian
namical Paleoclimatology: Generalized Theory of Global Climate Pedant/fotolia.com; © Erni/Fotolia; © S.H.exclusiv/fotolia.com; ©
Change, Academic Press, New York, fig. 13 Martina Berg/fotolia.com; © Martina Berg/fotolia.com
3.2.1.6 : 4 images: © Josephine Scoble 3.2.2.6: illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001)
3.2.1.7: © Walter P. Pfliegler; © Ferran Turmo Gort; Illustration Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth.
modified from: http://www.cabi.org/isc; © Rasbak, Wikime BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; Illustration climate diagram modi
dia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Scott Bauer, USDA ARS, fied from: Deutscher Wetterdienst und internationalen Wetter
public domain; Illustration modified from: http://www.cabi. diensten; © W. Zech, „Böden der Welt“; © W. Zech, „Böden der
org/isc; © United States Geological Survey, public domain; Il Welt“; © Steffen Dittrich; © katsrcool, Wikimedia Commons,
lustration modified from: http://www.cabi.org/isc; © Francisco CCBY2.0; © Scottthezombie, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL& CC
WelterSchultes, public domain, www.animalbase.org; © Piet BYSA3.0; © Le.Loup.Gris, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY
Spaans, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0 SA3.0; © Avenue, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA2.5;
© Matt Lavin, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA2.0; © Elke
3.2.1.8: Illustration modified from: Barnosky A.D. et al. (2011) Has Freese, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Gunnar
the Earth`s sixth mass extinction already arrived? Nature Vol. Ries, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA2.5
471; © NOAA Fisheries, public domain; © Simo Räsänen, Wiki
media Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Simo Räsänen, Wiki 3.2.2.7: illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001)
media Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © The Trustees of the Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth.
Natural History Museum, London; © The book of the animal BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; Illustration climate diagram modified
kingdom, William Percival Westel, Wikimedia Commons, public from: Deutscher Wetterdienst und internationalen Wetterdien
domain; © Willem v Strien, Wikimedia Commons, CCBY2.0 sten; © Jens Boenigk; © Jens Boenigk; © Parafux, Wikimedia
Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © Jens Boenigk; © Jacques Descloi
3.2.2: Illustration modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001) Terrestrial tres, MODIS Rapid Response Team, NASA/GSFC; © National Park
Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth. BioScience Service Digital Image Archives, Wikimedia Commons, public do
Vol. 51 No. 11. main; © Ryulong, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; ©
3.2.2.1: Illustration annual precipitation modified from: UN FAO Getty Images/iStockphoto
Sustainable Development Department and Leemans, R. and 3.2.2.8: illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001)
Cramer, W., 1991. The IIASA database for mean monthly values Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth.
of temperature, precipitation and cloudiness on a global terres BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; Illustration climate diagram modified
trial grid. Research Report RR9118. November 1991. Interna from: http://www.wwis.dwd.de/083/c01765.htm; © W. Zech,
tional Institute of Applied Systems Analyses, Laxenburg, pp. 61; „Böden der Welt“; © Nikater, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CC
Illustration climate diagram modified from: http://www.wwis. BYSA3.0; © Kiril Kapustin, Wikimedia Commons, CCBY2.5; ©
dwd.de/066/c01565.htm; Illustration annual temperatures mod S Molteno, Wikimedia Commons, public domain; © Jens Boe
ified from: UN FAO Sustainable Development Department and nigk; © Gabi Rau, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; ©
Leemans, R. and Cramer, W., 1991. The IIASA database for mean Joachim Huber, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA2.0; © Hannes
monthly values of temperature, precipitation and cloudiness on Grobe, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA2.5
a global terrestrial grid. Research Report RR9118. November
1991. International Institute of Applied Systems Analyses, Lax 3.2.2.9: illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001)
enburg, pp. 61. Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth.
BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; Illustration climate diagram modi
3.2.2.2: illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001) fied from: Deutscher Wetterdienst und internationalen Wet
Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth. terdiensten; © W. Zech, „Böden der Welt“; © W. Zech, „Böden
BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; 9 Illustrationen: climate diagram der Welt“; © Getty Images/iStockphoto; © Álvaro Rodríguez
modified from: Deutscher Wetterdienst und internationalen Alberich, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA2.0; © Jens Boenigk;
Wetterdiensten © Rosel Eckstein/pixelio.de; © Yuriy Danilevsky, Wikimedia Com
3.2.2.3: illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001) mons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Wollw, Wikimedia Commons,
Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth. CCBYSA3.0; © Christer Johansson, Wikimedia Commons, CC
BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; Illustration climate diagram modified BYSA3.0; © James Steakley, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CC
from: Deutscher Wetterdienst und internationalen Wetterdien BYSA3.0; © André Karwath, Wikimedia Commons, CCBY
sten; © W. Zech, „Böden der Welt“; © Thomas Rasel; © Thom SA2.5
as Rasel; Illustration Körpertemperatur modified from: Williams 3.2.2.10: Illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001)
C.T. et al. (2011) Hibernating above the permafrost: effects of Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth.
ambient temperature and season on expression of metabolic BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; Illustration climate diagram modified
genes in liver and brown adipose tissue of arctic ground squir from: http://www.wwis.dwd.de/085/c01540.htm; © W. Zech,
rels. The Journa of Experimental Biology 214, 13001306; © „Böden der Welt“; © W. Zech, „Böden der Welt“; © bluefeeling/
Matti Paavonen, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Fotolia.com; © Gerard McDonnell/fotolia.com; © Hans Thiele; ©
Andewa, Wikimedia Commons, public domain Hans Thiele; © USDA ARS, public domain
3.2.2.4: illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001) 3.2.2.11: Illustration map modified from: Olson D.M. et al. (2001)
Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth. Terrestrial Ecoregions of the World: A New Map of Life on Earth.
BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; Illustration climate diagram modi BioScience Vol. 51 No. 11; Illustration climate diagram modified
fied from http://www.wwis.dwd.de/107/c01007.htm; © W. from: http://www.wwis.dwd.de/066/c01565.htm; © W. Zech,
Zech, „Böden der Welt“; © abdallahh, Wikimedia Commons, „Böden der Welt“; © Axel Graf; © javarman/Fotolia.com; ©
CCBY2.0; © Zoo Leipzig; © gotoole/Fotolia.com; © NPS Photo, Bernhard Loewa; © Diorit, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY
SA3.0; © Getty Images/iStockphoto; © Marco Schmidt, Wikime
References 383
4.1.1.8: © Albert Kok, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY3.0; © 4.2.1.6: © Patrick Steinmann; © Alvaro E. Migotto, banco de im
Eduard Solà, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © Kenneth agens de biologia marinha; © Reinhardt Møbjerg Kristensen,
Brockmann/pixelio.de; © Getty Images/iStockphoto; © Sebas Natural History Museum of Denmark; © Alexander Kieneke,
tian Hess; © Keisotyo, Wikimedia Commons, GFDLBYSA 3.0; Institut Senckenberg am Meer Wilhelmshaven; © Eduard Solà,
© Peter Röhl/pixelio.de; © stylephotography.de/Fotolia.com; Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © Martin V. Sørensen, Nat
3 Images: © Wolfgang Bettighofer; © Jens Boenigk; © Julia ural History Museum of Denmark; © Reinhardt Møbjerg Kris
Walochnik; © Alexander Kudryavtsev; © Wolfgang Bettighofer; tensen, Natural History Museum of Denmark; © Gerd Günther;
© Jerry Kirkhart, Wikimedia Commons, CCBY2.0; © David Bass; © Neil Campbell, University of Aberdeen, Scotland, UK, Wikime
© Sebastian Hess; © Stefanie Schumacher; © Georg Rosenfeldt, dia Commons, public domain; © Ria Tan, www.wildsingapore.
Michael Hesemann, www.mikrohamburg.de; © Alastair Simp com; © Paul Young, Mermaid Underwater Photographic; Bra
son; © Julia Walochnik; © Rosser1954, Wikimedia Commons, chiopoda: © Didier Descouens, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA
CCBYSA3.0; © Gerd Günther; © Gerd Günther; © Wolfgang 3.0; Illustration Brachiopoda: © Jens Boenigk; © Hilmar Hinz;
Bettighofer; Reprinted from International Review of Cell and © Keisotyo, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY3.0; © Michael
Molecular Biology, Volume 306, Oborník M and Lukeš J, Chapter Linnenbach, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; © Hans
Eight Cell biology of chromerids, the autotrophic relatives to Hillewaert, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © Daniela
apicomplexan parasites, International Review of Cell and Mo Messerschmidt/pixelio.de; © Hans Hillewaert, Wikimedia Com
lecular Biology, Pages 333–369, 2013, with permission from El mons, CCBYSA3.0; © Hans Hillewaert , Wikimedia Commons,
sevier; © Jenkayaks, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0; CCBYSA3.0; © Acélan, Wikimedia Commons, GFDL&CCBY
SA3.0; © Didier Descouens, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA 3.0
384 References
4.5: © Scott Fay; 4 images: © Georg Rosenfeldt, Michael Hesemann,
www.mikrohamburg.de; © Lysippos, Wikimedia Commons, GF
DL&CCBYSA3.0; 4 Images: © Georg Rosenfeldt, Michael Hese
mann, www.mikrohamburg.de; © David Bass; © Gerd Günther;
© NEON_ja, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA2.5
4.5.1: © Sebastian Hess; © David Bass; © Gerd Günther; © David
Bass; © David Bass; © Sebastian Hess; © David Bass; © NEON_ja,
Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA2.5; © Sebastian Hess, Culture
Collection of Algae at the University of Cologne (CCAC)
4.5.2: 3 images: © David A. Caron, University of Southern Califor
nia; 4 images: © Georg Rosenfeldt, Michael Hesemann, www.
mikrohamburg.de
4.5.2.1: 4 images: © Stefanie Schumacher; © Scott Fay, University
of California; © Michele Weber; © Marco d‘Itri, Wikimedia Com
mons, CCBYSA2.0; © Sbertazzo, Wikimedia Commons, CCBY
SA3.0; © NOAA, Exploring Deep Sea Coral Expedition 2010; ©
NOAA, Exploring Deep Sea Coral Expedition 2010
4.6: © Louisa Howard, Dartmouth Electron Microscope Facility,
Dartmouth College, public domain
4.6.1: © Gerd Günther; © Jenkayaks, Wikimedia Commons, GF
DL&CCBYSA3.0; 2 Images: abgedruckt aus: International Re
view of Cell and Molecular Biology, Volume 306, Oborník M and
Lukeš J, Chapter Eight Cell biology of chromerids, the auto
trophic relatives to apicomplexan parasites, International Review
of Cell and Molecular Biology, Pages 333–369, 2013, Reprinted
with permission from Elsevier.; © Wolfgang Bettighofer
4.6.1.1: © Gerd Günther; © Gerd Günther; © Wolfgang Bettig
hofer; © Bettina Sonntag; © Wolfgang Bettighofer; 4 images: ©
Bettina Sonntag; © Wolfgang Bettighofer
4.6.1.2: © J. Camp; © Angelika Preisfeld and David Patterson; ©
Wolfgang Bettighofer; 3 images: © Mona Hoppenrath; © Ken
neth Mertens; © William W. Ward, Rutgers University; © Ylem,
Wikimedia Commons, public domain; © Gerd Günther; © Heiko
Wagner; © William W. Ward, Rutgers University; © Shane Ander
son, National Oceanic and Atmospheric Administration, public
domain
4.6.1.3: © Dolores Hill and J.P. Dubey; © Jenkayaks, Wikimedia
Commons, GFDL&CCBYSA3.0
4.6.2.1: © Jody Fetzer, New York Botanical Garden, Wikimedia
Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © USDA ARS, public domain; © Ger
ald Bassleer
4.6.2.2: © Michael Neugebauer; © Michael Neugebauer; © Man
fred Jensen; © Barolloco, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA 3.0; ©
Jörg Weiß, Mikroskopisches Kollegium Bonn, www.mikroskopie
bonn.de; © Manfred Jensen; © Heidi Fahrenbruch; © Ria Tan,
www.wildsingapore.com; © Barolloco, Wikimedia Commons,
CCBYSA3.0; © Hans Hillewaert, Wikimedia Commons, CC
BYSA3.0; © Michelle Jo, Wikimedia ommons, CCBY3.0; © J.
Baecker, Wikimedia Commons, public domain; © W. Barthlott,
www.lotussalvinia.de
4.6.2.3: 3 images: © Wolfgang Bettighofer; © Jens Boenigk; © Jens
Boenigk; © Lars Großmann; © Lars Großmann
4.6.2.4: 3 images: © Wolfgang Bettighofer; © Alexandra H./pixelio.
de; © Lars Kunze/pixelio.de; © Thomas Graser, Wikimedia Com
mons, public domain; © Wolfgang Bettighofer
7.7.1: © Wolfgang Bettighofer; © John W. La Claire; © John W. La
Claire; © PDUS GOVNASA, public domain; © KarlHeinz Bau
mann, Universi tät Bremen; © Sascha Böhnke/pixelio.de; © Lami
ot, Wikimedia Commons, CCBYSA3.0; © Marufish, Wikimedia
Commons, CCBYSA2.0;
4.7.2: 4 images: © Kerstin HoefEmden; © Wolfgang Bettighofer; ©
Sabina Wodniok; © Jens Boenigk; © Jens Boenigk;
Index 387
Index
A Agnostida 88 Definition 230, 238
Air embolism 372 Animalcules 230
Abiogenesis 188, 235 Akashiwo 347 Anisokont 367
Abiotic 367 Albertosaurus 134 Anisotremus 183
Acanthamoebida 293 Aldehydes 50, 367 ANITA clade 324, 326
Acantharia 332, 336 Algae 236, 287, 367 Ankylosauria 133
Acanthocephala 273 Origins 56 Annelida 269, 273
Acanthoceratophytina 316 Proterozoic 58 Annual plants 367
Acanthodii 94, 276 Algal blooms 347, 363 Anoxia 367
Acanthostega 112 Alismatales 327 Anoxygenic 367
Accumulation 367 Alisol 216, 367 Antheridium 316, 355, 367
Acephala 285 Alkaliphilic 367 Anthracocrinus 107
Acer 143 Allantois 129, 367 Anthracoidea 291
Acervulina 338 Allogromiida 80 Anthropogenic 367
Acetyl-CoA 52 Allopatric speciation 182 Apatite 102, 337
Acetylglucosamine 281 Allorrhiza 367 Aperture 367
Acetylmuramic 281 Allosaurus 133 Aphelidea 260
Achene 367 Alps 18, 140, 142 Aphotic zone 367
Acidophilic 367 Alpine belt (Alpine-Himalayan orogenic Apiaceae 330
Acineta 309 belt) 140 Apical 367
Acoelomate 272, 367 Aluminium silicate 22 Apical complex 348, 367
Acorales 327 Alveolata 247, 255, 257, 340, 342 Apicomplexa 257, 340, 342, 348
Acorn worms. See Enteropneusta Alveoli 340, 342, 347, 365, 367 Apicoplast 348, 367
Acrania 274 Alytes 129 Apomorphy 242, 367
Acrasidae 300 Amaranthus 155 Apusomonas 259
Acrisol 216f, 367 Amasia 154 Apusozoa 256, 258
Acrispumella 357 Amastigote 305 Arabidopsis thaliana 343
Acritarchs 59, 101, 105 Amber 72, 141 Aragonite 26, 102, 337, 367
Acrodont 278, 367 Ambitisporites 107 Araukariales 322
Acrogymnosperms 322 Amborellales 326f Arbor vitae 322
Actinopterygii 94, 276 Ambulacral groove 367 Arbuscular mycorrhiza 284
Adaptation 128, 248, 314, 367 Ambulacraria 274 Arcellinida 293
Adaptive mutation 367 Ambulakral system 274, 367 Archaea 248, 252
Adaptive radiation 367 Ammonitida 85, 131 Archaeocyatha 82
Adaptive zone 367 Ammonoidea 84, 112, 131 Archaeopteris 113
Adenine 36 Amnion 129, 278 Archaeopteryx 95, 130
Adenosine diphosphate. See ADP Amniota 94, 277f, 367 Archaeplastida 247, 255f, 306
Adhesion 367 Amoeba 293 Archamoebae 294
ADP 39, 43, 53, 147 Amoebae 292 Archean 28–40
Adventitious 367 Amoebozoa 247, 258, 292 Atmosphere 32
Aegocrioceras 135 Amorphea 256, 258. See Unikonta Earth’s crust 32
Aerobe 367 Amorphous 367 Genetic expansion 38
Aerobic respiration 52 Amphibians 276 Archegonium 316, 367
African lungfish 277 Amphisorus 339 Arecales 327
Afrotropical 195 Anaerobes 367 Arid 367
Agaricomycotina 290 Anapsida 94, 116, 278, 367 Aril 367
Age (geochronological) 28, 74. See also Anatexis 20, 367 Aristotle 230
Stratigraphic layer Ancyloceratina 135 Armillaria ostoyae 280
Agglutinated 367 Angiosperms 8, 96, 134, 277, 324. See also Armoured fish. See Placodermi
Aggregation 367 Magnoliopsida Arthropoda 88, 269
Agnatha. See jawless Animal. See Metazoa Articulata 268
Conodonts 75, 77, 92, 369 Plastids 56 Detoxification 102, 110, 369
Conoid 348, 369 Crystallization, differential 17 Detoxification enzymes 51
Conosa 256, 292, 294 Crystals 22 Detritivore 369
Consumers 369 Ctenophora 266 Detritus particle 369
Contact metamorphism 372 Ctenophores. See Ctenophora Deuterostomia 274
Continent 18. See also Supercontinent Cucurbitales 329 Devon 98, 112
Continental crust 16, 18, 20, 48 Cupressales 322 Diagenese 20, 24, 369
Continental or tectonic plate Cupressus 322 Diapir 63
Adriatic 18 Cuticula or cuticle 9, 317 Diapsida 94, 116, 278, 369
African 18 Cuttlefish 84, 355, 369 Diatoms. See Bacillariophyceae
Eurasian 18, 68, 130, 142, 154, 195 Cyanelles 308 Dicerorhinus 193
Indian 18, 138 Cyanidiophytina 310 Dichotomous 369
Nazca 18 Cyanobacteria 40, 50, 201, 236, 250 Dickinsonia 100f, 267
Pacific 18 Plastid origins 56 Dicksonia 121, 123, 321
Continental shelf 369 Cyanobiont 172 Dicot 325
Convection 369. See also Earth’s mantle, Cyanophora 308f Dicranoweisia 123
Ocean Cycadopsida 96, 130, 322 Dicroidium 127
Convergence 369 Cyclidium 345 Dictyochophyceae 350
Convergence zone, tropical 369 Cycliophora 273 Dictyonema 92, 105
Cooksonia 108f Cycloclyperus 338 Dictyosome 298, 309, 334, 369
Corals 82 Cycloneuralia 270 Dictyosphaerium 313
Cordaitopsida 96, 323 Cynaobacteria 201 Dictyostelia 293f
Core chromalveolates 360 Cynodontia 127 Didymograptus 93, 107
Corms 118, 369 Cynognathus 127 Differential Interference Contrast (DIC)
Development 118 Cypress 322 369
Cornales 330 Cysts 369 Differentiated soils 369
Corrosion protection 9, 261, 315 Cysts 369 Digitalis 331
Corvus 159 Cytochrome-b6f-complex 41 Dilleniales 329
Corynexochida 88 Cytokinesis 369 Dimetrodon 117
Cosmoclaina 109 Cytoplasma 369 Dinobryon 357
Cosmopolitan 369 Cytosine 36 Dinoflagellates. See Dinophyta
Costa 299, 369 Cytoskeleton 369 Dinophysis 347
Cotyledon 369 Cytosol 369 Dinophyta 257, 340, 342, 346
Craniata 94, 274 Cytostome 369 Plastids 56
Craniformea 86 Dinosaurs 8, 130, 132, 134, 277, 279
Craton 18, 32, 369 D Dionaea 237, 327
Crenal 222 Dioscoreales 327
Cretaceous 77, 125, 134, 362 Dactylopodida 293 Diphasiastrum 318
Cretaceous-Paleogene boundary 64 Daphnia 315 Diplobiontic 369
Crinoidea 90, 107, 274 Dark brown soil 207 Diplograptidae 92
Cristae 296, 300, 306, 334, 361, 369 Darwin, Charles 234 Diplograptus 93
Crocus 327 Dating 74 Diploid 369
Crommium 141 Daucus 331 Diplomonadida 298
Crossosomatales 329 Decomposers 369 Diplonemea 302
Crude oil 73, 131 Deep sea 34 Diplonts 120
Prospecting 92 Demospongiae 264 Diplophyllum 317
Crurotarsi 279 Dendroidea 92 Dipnoi or Lungfish 277
Crustacea 271 Dentalium 143 Diptera 137, 369
Cryogenian 100 dentate leaves 369 Discoba 296, 300, 304
Cryopreservation 271 Deoxyribonucleic acid. See DNA Discosauriscus 95
Cryosol 200 Deposits 70 Discosea 256, 292
Cryoturbation 200 Dermamoebida 293 Dissociation 369
Cryptomonadales 361 Desert 212 Distigma 303
Cryptomonas 365 Desilication 218, 369 Distribution area 158
Cryptophyceae 360, 364 Desmin 277, 369 Ditomopyge 117
Cryptophyta 257, 333, 360, 364 Dessication 370 Diversity 4, 8
Index 391
Exoskeleton 102, 128, 337, 370 345 Glacial 148, 150, 371
Extinction 66, 184f, 192, 370 Forests 112 Glacial till 25, 371
Extremophile 370 Boreal 202 Glaciation 24, 30, 32, 38, 48, 62, 68, 101,
Exudation 361, 370 Deciduous 204 106, 114, 140. See also Ice age
Eye 303 Temperate 204 Glaucocystis 308f
Eyespot 303 Tropical rainforest 218 Glaucocystophyta 306, 308
Xerophytic 216 Glaucophyta 256
F Fornicata 256, 299 Glissomonadida 335
Fossil deposits 70 Global Stratotype Section and Point 76
Fabaceae 329 Fossilisation 72, 273 Globigerinida 80, 338
Fabales 329 Fossils 8, 78, 273 Gloeochaete 308
Fabomonas 259 Founder population 184, 370 Glomeromycota 256, 280, 284, 286
Facies 98, 100, 370 Frost shattering 25 Glossopteridopsida 322
Fagales 329 Fucus 237, 355 Glossopteris 114, 116f, 322, 371
Fatty acids, unsaturated 370 Fungi 247, 280. See also Mushrooms Glucan 371
Faunal 86, 88, 134, 370 Definition 240 Glucose 38, 281
Fauna-rich 194 Diversity 177 Glugea 283
Feldspar 13, 16, 23f Fusulinida 80, 115 Glycimeris 143
Felsic 16, 22, 370 Future 154 Glycocalyx 371
Fenton reaction 51 Fynbos 210 Glycogen 256, 371
Fermentation 38, 47 Glycolysis 38, 47
Alcoholic 39 G Glycoproteins 371
Lactic acid (or Hydroxypropionic acid) Glyoxylate 50
39 Gabbro 16, 22 Glyptodon 149
Ferns 122, 287. See also Polypodiopsida Gallery forest 370 Gnathifera 273
Ferralisation 218 Gametangiogamy 371 Gnathostomata 94, 108, 274, 276
Ferralsol 219 Gametangium 371 Gnathostomulida 273
Ferredoxin 41 Gamete 371 Gnetales 96, 322, 325
Fertile strobili 370 Gametocytes 371 Gnetum 322, 325
Fertility 370 Gametophyte 120, 317, 319, 321, 371 Golden algae. See Chrysophyceae
Fertilization, inner 129 Ganglia 371 Golden Spike 29
Fig wasp 331 Gap junctions 60, 371 Gondwana 18, 68, 104, 106, 108, 112, 114,
Filasterea 260 Garnet 22 130, 134
Filopodia 293, 332 Garrulus 159 Goniatitida 84, 113, 115
Filoreta 335 Garryales 331 Goniomonadales 361
Filosa 334 Gas planets 15 Goniomonas 364
Fire 6, 215 Gaskiers glaciation 63 Gradualism 234, 371
Flabellinia 292 Gastrotricha 273 Granatpteridotid 23
Flagallum 259. See also Cilia Gemuendia 95 Granite 23
Flagellar groove 302 Generalists 370 Granofilosea 334
Flagellation 256 Generational alternation 8f, 120–123, 283, Graptolites 92, 105, 107, 274, 371
Flagellin 259, 370 319 Graptoloidea 92
Flagellum 55, 259 Genesis 230 Grasses 134, 141, 143
Floating appendages 329 Genesis 230 Grasslands 141, 144
Flood basalt 66, 126, 370 Genome size 8, 301 Flooded 208
Flora-rich 194, 370 Gentianales 331 Montane 208
Floridean starch 310 Geochemical cycles 46 Subtropical 214
Florideophyceae 310 Geochronology 28, 74, 371 Temperate 206
Flower constancy 368 Geophytes 371 Tropical 214
Fluviate 24, 370 Geraniales 329 Great Oxidation Event 32, 371
Flysch 25, 370 Giardia 298 Green algae 312
Folioceros 317 Giganotosaurus 133 Green non-sulfur bacteria 40, 43
Foliose 316, 370 Gini-Simpson Index 166, 168 Green sulfur bacteria 40, 43
Food vacuole 345, 370 Ginkgo 137, 322 Greenhouse effect 26, 46
Foramen 87 Ginkgoopsida 322 Carbon dioxide 38, 46, 63
Foraminifera 79, 80, 257, 332, 336, 338, Giraffa 309 Methane 38, 46, 48
Index 393
Neural tube 106, 373 Ophiuroidea 90, 274 Pangea 18, 68, 114, 116, 126, 132
Neurocranium 274, 373 Opisthosoma 373 Panthalassic Ocean 104
Neutral Theory 180 Orciraptor 335 Parabasal apparatus 296, 298, 373
Niche 180, 373 Ordovician 68, 82, 84, 88, 98, 106 Parabasalia 256, 298
Differentiation 182 Organelle 9, 341, 349, 373 Parabodonida 305
Nicotinamide dinucleotide. See NAD Organisational form 8, 290, 316 Paradox of the plankton 180
Nitrogen oxides 373 Ornithiscians 130–134 Paramecium 239, 345
Nomenclature 160, 230, 232, 373 Ornithodira 130, 132, 278 Paramylon 257, 303, 374
North Atlantic 130 Ornithopoda 133 Paranthropus 153
Notochord 274, 368, 373. See also Chorda Orobanche 237 Paraphyletic 243
dorsalis Orogeny 26, 68, 140, 373 Paraphysomonas 189
Novopangaea 154 Alpine 140 Parasites 6, 240, 283, 286, 301, 304, 348,
Nuclear envelope 54 Variscan 114, 373 352
Nucleariidae 247, 280 Osmoregulation 9, 351 Paraxonemal rod 296, 302, 374
Nucleic acids 36 Osmotrophy 240, 373 Parenchymula larva 264, 374
Nucleomorph 9, 56, 333, 364 Osteichthyes 94, 276 Pasteur, Louis 188, 234
Nummulitidae 80 Otozamites 97 Paulinella 254, 257, 306, 334
Nymphaea 327 Outgroup 243 Pavlovophyceae 361f
Nymphaeaceae 326 Ovary 373 PCR (polymerase chain reaction) 160, 164,
Nymphaeales 326f Ovule 136 244, 374
Oxalidales 329 Peak 374
O Oxidases 46, 50, 52 Pecopteris 323
Oxidation 373 Pediastrum 313
Obligate 373 Oxidative decarboxylation 53 Pedospumella 357
Ocean 224 Oxygen 16, 30, 34, 47, 48 Pedoturbation 214, 374
Convection 42, 49 Cytotoxic effects 50 Pelagial 221, 374
Formation 14 Evolution geochemical feedback 46 Pelagophyceae 341, 350
Neoproterozoic 62 Molecular 373 Pelagothrix 345
Oxygenation 62, 100 Poisoning 46 Pellicula 296, 302, 374
Paleozoic 104 Radicals 50 Pelmatozoa 90, 274
Primordial 14, 34 Reactive oxygen species (ROS) 375 Pelomyxa 293
Proterozoic 58 Oxygenation 373 Pelycosauria 116
Oceania 195 Oxygenation of the oceans 62, 100 Pentacyclic 328, 374
Oceanic crust 16, 18, 20 Oxymonadida 298 PEP carboxylase 146, 374
Ochrophyta 350, 354, 356, 358 Peptidoglycan 57, 250, 281, 308
Octoglena 269 P Peranema 303
Odontopleurida 88 Percolomonas 300f
Oil shale 70, 373 Pachycephalosauria 133 Percolozoa 256, 300
Old Red Continent 68, 108 Pachycephalosaurus 133 Perhumid 374
Oligocene 138, 140 Pacific Ocean 225 Perhumid (climate) 210, 218, 374
Olivine 16, 22 Palaeocene 138, 140 Peridotite 17, 22
Ononis 329 Palaeoecology 78 Period 28, 74. See also Stratigraphic layer
Ontogeny 90, 373 Palaeogene 77, 138, 140 Periplast 257, 374
Onychophora 110, 271 Palaeolithic 152 Peritrichia 345
Oocyst 348, 373 Palaeoniscus 117 Perkinsiella 304
Oogamy 314, 373 Palaeontology 167, 192, 373 Permafrost 201f
Oogonia 352, 355 Palaeophytic 64 Permian 77, 98, 116
Oomycetes 350, 352 Palaeoproterozoic 29, 31, 45 Permian-Triassic boundary 64
Oospores 373 Palaeozoic 64, 98 Peronospora 352
Opal 337 Palearctic 195 Peronosporomycetes 257, 350, 352
Opalinata 350 Paleoarchean 33 Peroxisomes 51
Opalinida 257, 351 Palmelloid 350, 373 Petromyzontida 276
Operational Taxonomic Unit (OTU) 164 Palmophyllales 313 Petrosalviales 327
Ophioglossales 320 Panarthropoda 270 Pezizomycotina 288
Ophioglossum 321 Pandanales 327 Pfiesteria piscicida 346
Ophistokonta 258 Pangaea Ultima 154 Phacopida 88
Index 397
Substitution 246, 376 Temporomandibular joint (see Jaw) 276 Triceratops 133
Substrate 376 Terminal oxidation 52, 53 Trichal 310, 377
Succulence 213 Termites 214, 216 Trichocysts 344, 377
succulent 376 Terrestrial vertebrates. See Tetrapoda Trichomonas 298
Sulfate respiration 59f Tertiary 138. See also Neogene Trichophycus 44
Sulfide 64 Tesselaria 356 Trichoplax 266f
Summer rainy season 214, 216 Testudines 279 Tricolpate 324
Sunlight 49 Tethys 130, 376 Tridacna 239
Supercontinent 18,126, 323, 376 Paleo-Tethys Ocean 108, 126, 373 Trifolium 329
Superoxide dismutase 51, 52 Paratethys Ocean 140 Trigonia 131
Surface scales 9, 365 Tetrahymena 343 Trilobita 88, 105, 271
Suspensor 128, 376 Tetrapoda 94, 112, 276, 278 Trimastix 299
Suture 78, 88, 376 Tetraspores 376 Tripartite hairs 340
Sutures 84, 376 Tetrasporophyte 310, 376 Triploblastic 377
Symbiontida 302 Tetrastrum 313 Trochodendrales 329
Symbiosis 6, 172f, 258, 284, 291. See also Textulariida 80 Trochophore larvae 377
Endocytobiosis Thalassiosira 359 Trochozoa 272f
Sympatric speciation 182 Thallos or Thallus 316, 376 Trophy 220
Sympetaly 330, 376 Thallus 316, 376 Trypanosoma 304
Symplesiomorphy 242, 376 Thecamoeba 293 Trypanosomatida 304, 305
Synapomorphy 242, 376 Thecamoebida 292 Trypomastigote 304
Synapsids 94, 116, 278 Thecodont 278, 376 Tubulin 377
Synchromophyceae 350 Thecofilosea 334 Tubulinea 256, 292
Syngamy 120, 376 Theophrastus 230 Tuff 23
Synorisporites 107 Therapsida 94 Tundra 200
Synthesis 376 Theria 278 Tunicata 274
Synura 356 Thermophile 376 Turtles 278
Synurales 356 Theropoda 132f Type locality 76, 377
Synurophyceae 356 Thioredoxin 314, 377 Tyrannosauroidea 133
System 28, 74. See also Stratigraphic layer Thorax 88f Tyrannosaurus 65, 134
Systema Naturae 232, 236 Three-domain model 248
Systematics 160 Thrinaxodon 95 U
Fundamentals 232 Thuja 322
Thylacinus 193 Ubiquitous 377
T Thylakoid 42, 308, 310, 377 Ulothrix 313
Thylakoid membrane 42 Ulva 313
Tabulata 82, 108, 376 Thymine 36 Ulvophyceae 313
Taiga 202 Tight junctions 274, 377 Undergrowth 377
Tall-grass prairie 372 Tillite 24, 376 Unikonta 254–259
Tange 355 Timofeevia 105 Unio 191
Taphrinomycotina 288 Tomentella 285 Universe 14
Tardigrada 271 Torpor 200, 377 Ur 18
Tardigrades. See Tardigrada Toxins 377 Uracil 36
Taxales 322 Toxoplasma 348 Ural 116
Taxon, Taxa 8, 323 Toxoplasmosis 348 Uranium-lead dating 75
Taxonomy 160, 376 Trace fossil 59 Uranus 15
Rank 306 Tracheae 110, 205, 270, 325, 358, 377 Uridine monophosphate 258, 377
Taxus 322 Trachelomonas 303 Urochordata 274
Tectosilicates 17 Transcription 377 Uroid 292, 377
Teleoblastic growth zone 270, 376 Transcriptome 377 Uromyces 291
Teleostomi 276 Transgression 377 Ustilaginomycotina 290
Telome 376 Transition 377 UV radiation 14, 208, 377
Telome theory 118 Translation 377
Telonema 360 Transversion 377 V
Temperature distribution, global 196 Trebouxiophyceae 313
Temporal window 278 Triassic 77, 124f Vacuole, contractile 344, 351, 377
Index 401
Vahlkampfia 301 Z
Vahlkampfiidae 301
Vampyrella 335 Zamites 65, 131
Vampyrellida 334 Zea mays 155, 327
Vannellida 293 Zebra mussel 191
Variosea 294 Zechstein (rock layers) 98
Vascular bundle, types 9, 321 Zingiberales 327
Velociraptor 133 Zoochlorellae 312, 345, 377
Venus 15 Zoogeography. See Biogeography
Verbascum 331 Zoopagomycotina 286
Vertebrata 94, 106, 110, 178f, 274, 303 Zoophagus 286f
Species diversity 177 Zoospores 377
Vertisol 214 Zooxanthellae 345f, 377
Vesicles 60, 377 Zosterophyllopsida 96, 108
Viridiplantae 306, 312 Zygnema 315
Virion or Virus particles 170 Zygnematophytina 314
Virus 170 Zygomycota 256. See Zygospore-forming
Vitales 329 fungi
Viteus 191 Zygophyllales 329
Vitis 191 Zygospore 286
Vitrella 343 Zygospore-forming fungi 286
Viviparity 377 Zygote 377
Volcanism 22, 48, 377
Carbon dioxide 48
Volcano 22
Volvox 313, 343
Vorticella 345
Vulcanite 20, 23
Xanthoria 173
Xantophyceae 350
Xeromorphic 202, 377
Xestospongia 265
Xylem 321
Yeasts 287
Yolk 129
Yolk sac 377